The
Chronicles of the Cheysuli:
An
Overview
THE
PROPHECY OF THE FIRSTBORN:
"One
day a man of all blood shall unite. In peace.
four
warring realms and two magical races.
Originally
a race of shapechangers known as the
Cheysuli,
descendants of the Firstborn, Homana's
original
race, held the Lion Throne, but increasing
unrest
on the part of the Homanans, who lacked
magical
powers and therefore feared the Cheysuli,
threatened
to tear the realm apart. The Cheysuli
royal
dynast voluntarily gave up the Lion Throne
so that
Homanans could rule Homana, thereby
avoiding
fullblown internecine war.
The
clans withdrew altogether from Homanan
society
save for one remaining and binding tradi-
tion:
each Homanan king, called a Mujhar, must
have a
Cheysuli liege man as bodyguard, council-
lor,
companion, dedicated to serving the throne
and
protecting the Mujhar, until such a time as
the
prophecy is fulfilled and the Firstborn rule
again.
This
tradition was adhered to without incident
for
nearly four centuries, until Lindir, the only
daughter
of Shaine the Mujhar, jilted her prospec-
tive
bridegroom to elope with Hale, her father's
Cheysuli
liege man. Because the jilted bridegroom
was the
heir of a neighboring king, Bellam of So-
linde,
and because the marriage was meant to seal
an
alliance after years of bloody war, the elope-
ix
Jennifer
Roberson
ment
resulted in tragic consequences. Shaine con-
cocted
a web of lies to salve his obsessive pride,
and in
so doing laid the groundwork for the anni-
hilation
of a race.
Declared
sorcerers and demons dedicated to the
downfall
of the Homanan throne, the Cheysuli
were
summarily outlawed and sentenced to imme-
diate
execution if found within Homanan borders.
Shapechangers
begins the "Chronicles of the
Cheysuli,"
telling the tale of Alix, daughter of
Lindir,
once Princess of Homana, and Hale, once
Cheysuli
liege man to Shaine. Alix is an unknown
catalyst
bearing the Old Blood of the Firstborn,
which
gives her the ability to link with all lir and
assume
any animal shape at will. But Alix is
raised
by a Homanan and has no knowledge of her
abilities,
until she is kidnapped by Finn, a Chey-
suli
warrior who is Hale's son by his Cheysuli
wife,
and therefore Alix's half-brother. Kidnapped
with
her is Carillon, Prince of Homana. Alix learns
the
true power in her gifts, the nature of the
prophecy
which rules all Cheysuli, and eventually
marries
a warrior, Duncan, to whom she bears a
son,
Donal, and, much later, a daughter, Bronwyn.
But
Homana's internal strife weakens her de-
fenses.
Bellam of Solinde, with his sorcerous aide,
Tynstar
the Ihlini, conquers Homana and assumes
the
Lion Throne.
In The
Song of Homana, Carillon returns from
a
five-year exile, faced with the difficult task of
gathering
an army capable of overcoming Bellam.
He is
accompanied by Finn, who has assumed the
traditional
role of liege man. Aided by Cheysuli
magic
and his own brand of personal power, Caril-
lon is
able to win back his realm and restore the
Cheysuli
to their homeland by ending the purge
begun
by his uncle, Shaine. Alix's grandfather. He
marries
Bellam's daughter to seal peace between
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
xf
the
lands, but Electra has already cast her lot with
Tynstar
the Ihlini, and works against her Homa-
nan
husband. Carillon's failure to father a son
forces
him to betroth his only daughter, Aislinn,
to
Donal, Alix's son, whom he names Prince of
Homana.
This public approbation of a Cheysuli
warrior
is the first step in restoring the Lion
Throne
to the sovereignty of the Cheysuli, required
by the
prophecy, and sows the seeds of civil
unrest.
Legacy
of the Sword focuses on Donal's slow as-
sumption
of power within Homana, and his per-
sonal
assumption of his role in the prophecy.
Because
by clan custom a warrior is free to take
both
wife and mistress, Donal has started a Chey-
suli
family even though he will one day have to
marry
Carillon's daughter to cement his right to
the
Lion Throne. By his Cheysuli mistress he has
two
children, lan and Isolde; by Aislinn, Carillon's
daughter,
he eventually sires a son who will be-
come
his heir. But the marriage is rocky immedi-
ately;
in addition to the problems caused by a
second
family, Donal's Homanan wife is also
under
the magical influence of her mother, Electra,
who is
mistress to Tynstar. Problems are com-
pounded
by the son of Tynstar and Electra, Strahan,
who has
his father's powers in full measure. On
Carillon's
death Donal inherits the Lion, naming
his
legitimate son, Niall, to succeed him. But to
further
the prophecy he marries his sister, Bron-
wyn, to
Alaric of Atvia, lord of an island kingdom.
Bronwyn
is later killed by Alaric accidentally
while
in /ir-shape, but lives long enough to give
birth
to a daughter, Gisella, who is mad.
In
Track of the White Wolf, Donal's son Niall is
a young
man caught between two worlds. To the
Homanans,
fearful of Cheysuli power and inten-
tions,
he is worthy only of distrust, the focus of
Jennifer
Roberson
xU
their
discontent. To the Cheysuli he is an "un-
blessed"
man, because even though far past the
age for
it, Niall has not linked with his animal.
He is
therfore a lirless man, a warrior with no
power,
and such a man has no place within the
clans.
His Cheysuli half-brother is his liege man,
fully
"blessed," and lan's abilities serve to add to
Niall's
feelings of inferiority.
Niall
is meant to marry his half-Atvian cousin,
Gisella,
but falls in love with the princess of a
neighboring
kingdom, Deirdre of Erinn. Lirless,
and
with Gisella under the influence of Tynstar's
Ihlini
daughter, Lillith, Niall falls prey to sorcery.
Eventually
he links with his lir and assumes the
full
range of Cheysuli powers, but he pays for it
with an
eye. His marriage to Gisella is disastrous,
but two
sets of twins are bom—Brennan and Hart,
Corin
and Keely—which gives Niall the opportu-
nity to
extend his range of influence via betrothal
alliances.
He banishes Gisella to At via after he
foils
an Ihlini plot involving her, and then settles
into
life with his mistress, Deirdre of Erinn, who
has
already borne Maeve, his illegitimate
daughter.
A Pride
of Princes tells the story of each of Niall's
three
sons. Brennan, the eldest, will inherit Ho-
mana
and has been betrothed to Aileen, Deirdre's
niece,
to add a heretofore unknown bloodline to
the
prophecy. Brennan's twin. Hart, is Prince of
Solinde,
a compulsive gambler whose addiction
results
in a tragic accident involving all three of
Niall's
sons. Hart is banished to Solinde for a year,
and the
rebellious youngest son, Corin, to Atvia.
Brennan
is tricked into siring a child on an Ihlini-
Cheysuli
woman; Hart loses a hand and nearly his
life in
a Solindish plot; in Erinn, Corin falls in
love
with Brennan's bride, Aileen, before going to
Atvia.
One by one each is captured by Strahan,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS xiii
Tynstar's
son, who intends to turn Niall's sons
into
puppet-kings so he can rule through them. All
three
manage to escape, but not until after each
has
been made to recognize particular strengths
and
weaknesses.
For
Keely, sister of Niall's sons, things are dif-
ferent.
In Daughter of the Lion, Keely herself is
caught
up in the machinations of politics, evil sor-
cery,
and her own volatile emotions. Trained from
childhood
in masculine pursuits such as weap-
onry,
Keely prefers the freedom of choice and life-
style,
and as both are threatened by the imminent
arrival
of her betrothed, Sean of Erinn, she fights
to
maintain her sense of self in a world ruled by
men.
She is therefore ripe for rebellion when a
strong-minded,
powerful Erinnish brigand—and
possible
murderer—enters her life.
But
Keely's battles are increased tenfold when
Strahan
chooses her as his next target. Betrayed,
trapped,
and imprisoned on the Crystal Isle, Keely
is
forced through sorcery into a liaison with the
Ihlini
that results in pregnancy. But before the
child
can be born, Keely escapes with the aid of
the
Ihlini bard, Taliesin. On her way home she
meets
the man believed to be her betrothed, and
realizes
not only must she somehow rid herself of
the
unwanted child, but must also decide which
man she
will have—thief or prince—in order to be
a true
Cheysuli in service to the prophecy.
Flight
of the Raven is the story of Aidan, only
son of
Brennan and Aileen. Hounded in childhood
by
nightmares, Aidan grows to adulthood con-
vinced
he is not meant to hold the Lion Throne
after
all, but is intended to follow a different path,
This
path becomes more evident as he sets out to
visit
his kin in Solinde and Erinn in order to find
a
bride; very quickly it becomes apparent that
Aidan
has been singled out by the Cheysuli gods
Jennifer
Roberson
xtv
to
complete a quest for golden links personifying
specific
Mujhars. In pursuing his quest, Aidan be-
comes
the target of Lochiel the Ihlini, Strahan's
son.
Bound
by their mutual Erinnish gift of kivama,
a
strong empathy, Aidan and Shona of Erinn
marry.
The child of this union wilt bring the Chey-
suli
one step closer to completion of the prophecy,
and is
therefore a grave threat to Lochiel. The Ih-
lini
attacks Clankeep, kills Shona, and cuts the
child
from her belly. Aidan, seriously wounded,
falls
victim to epilepsy; in his "fits" he prophesies
of the
coming of Cynric, the Firstborn. To get back
his
stolen child, Aidan conquers his weakness to
confront
Lochiel in Valgaard itself, where he wins
back
his son. But Aidan realizes he is not meant
for
thrones and titles; he renounces his rank, gives
his
son, Kellin, into the keeping of Aileen and
Brennan,
and takes up residence as a shar tahl on
the
Crystal Isle, where he begins to prepare the
way for
the coming of the Firstborn.
Prologue
In
thread, on cloth, against a rose-red stone wall
gilt-washed
by early light: Lions. Mujhars. Chey-
suli,
and Homanan; and the makings of the world
in
which the boy and his grand-uncle lived.
"Magic,"
the boy declared solemnly, more in-
tent
upon his declaration than most eight-year-
olds;
but then most eight-year-old boys do not dis-
cover
magic within the walls of their homes.
The old
man agreed easily without the hesita-
tion of
those who doubted, or wished to doubt, put
off by
magic's power; magic was no more alien to
him
than to the boy, in whose blood it lived as it
lived
in his own, and in others Cheysuli-bom.
"Woman's
magic," he said, "conjured from head
and
hands." His own long-fingered left hand, once
darkly
supple and eloquent, now stiffened bone be-
neath
wrinkled, yellowing flesh, traced out the intri-
cate
stitchwork patterns of the massive embroidered
arras
hung behind the Lion Throne. "Do you see,
Kellin?
This is Shame, whom the Homanans
would
call your five times great-grandfather.
Cheysuli
would call him hosa'ana."
It was
mid-morning in Shaine's own Great Hall.
Moted
light sliced through stained glass case-
ments
to paint the hall all colors, illuminating the
vast
expanse of ancient architecture that had
housed
a hundred kings long before Kellin—or
lan—was
born.
/5
16 Jennifer Roberson
The
boy, undaunted by the immensity of history
or the
richness of the hammer-beamed hall and
its
multitude of trappings, nodded crisply, a little
impatient,
black brows drawn together in a frown
old for
his years; as if Kellin, Prince of Homana,
knew
very well who Shaine was, but did not count
him
important.
lan
smiled. And well he might not; his history is
more
recent, and his youth concerned with now, not
yesterday's
old Mujhars.
"Who
is this?" A finger, too slender for the char-
acteristic
incomplete stubbiness of youth—Chey-
suli
hands, despite the other houses thickening his
blood—transfixed
a stitchwork lion made static by
the
precise skill of a woman's hands. "Is this my
father?"
"No."
The old man's lean, creased-leather face
gave
away nothing of his thoughts, nothing of his
feelings,
as he answered the poorly concealed hope
in the
boy's tone. "No, Kellin. This tapestry was
completed
before your father was born. It stops
here—you
see?—" he touched thread, "—with
your
grandsire."
A
dirt-rimmed fingernail bitten off crookedly in-
serted
itself imperatively between dusty threads,
once-brilliant
colors muted by time and long-set
sunlight.
"But he should be here. My father.
Somewhere."
The
expression was abruptly fierce, no longer
hopeful,
no longer clay as yet unworked, but the
taut
arrogance of a young warrior as he looked up
at the
old man, who knew more than the boy what
it was
to be a warrior; he had even been in true
war,
and was not merely a construct of aging
tales.
lan
smiled, new wrinkles replacing old between
the
thick curtains of snowy hair. "And so he would
be, had
it taken longer for Deirdre and her women
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
17
to
complete the Tapestry of Lions. Perhaps some-
day
another woman will begin a new tapestry and
put you
and your father and your heir in it."
"Mujhars,"
Kellin said consideringly. "That's
what
all of them were." He glanced back at the
huge
tapestry filling the wall behind the dais, fix-
ing a
dispassionate gaze upon it. The murmured
names
were a litany as he moved his finger from
one
lion to another: "Shaine, Carillon, Donal,
Niall,
Brennan . .." Abruptly the boy broke off and
took
his finger from the stitching. "But my father
isn't
Mujhar and never will be." He stared hard
at the
old man as if he longed to challenge but
did not
know how. "Never will be."
It did
not discomfit lan, who had heard it
phrased
one way or another for several years. The
intent
was identical despite differences in phrase-
ology:
Kellin desperately wanted his father, Aidan,
whom he
had never met. "No," lan agreed. "You
are
next, after Brennan .. . they have told you
why."
The boy
nodded. "Because he left." He meant to
sound
matter-of-fact, but did not; the unexpected
shine
of tears in clear green eyes dissipated former
fierceness,
"He ran awayl"
lan
tensed. It would come, one day; now I must
drive
it back, "No." He reached and caught one
slight
shoulder, squeezing slightly as he felt the
suppressed,
minute trembling. "Kellin—who said
such a
monstrous thing? It is not true, as you well
know .
. . your father ran from nothing, but to his
tahlmorra—"
"They
said—" Kellin's lips were white as he
compressed
them. "They said he left because he
hated
me."
"Who
said this?"
Kellin
bit into his bottom lip. "They said I
wasn't
the son he wanted."
18
Jennifer
Roberson
"Kellin—"
It was
very nearly a wail though he worked to
choke
it off. "What did I do to make him hate me
so?"
"Your
jehan does not hate you."
"Then
why isn't he here! Why can't he come?
Why
can't I go there?" Green eyes burned fiercely.
"Have
I done something wrong?"
"No.
No, Kellin—you have done nothing wrong."
The
small face was pale. "Sometimes I think I
must be
a bad son."
"In
no way, Kellin—"
"Then,
why?" he asked desperately. "Why can't
he
come?"
Why
indeed? lan asked himself. He did not in
the
least blame the boy for voicing what all of
them
wondered, but Aidan was intransigent. The
boy was
not to come until he was summoned. Nor
would
Aidan visit unless the gods indicated it was
the
proper time. But will it ever be the proper time?
He
looked at the boy, who tried so hard to give
away
none of his anguish, to hide the blazing pain.
Homana-Mujhar
begins to put Jesses on the fledgling.
Strength
waned. lan desired to sit down upon
the
dais so as to be on the boy's level and discuss
things
more equally, but he was old, stiff, and
weary;
rising again would prove difficult. There
was so
much he wanted to say that little of it
suggested
a way to be said. Instead, he settled for
a
simple wisdom. "I think perhaps you have spent
too
much time of late with the castle boys. You
should
ask to go to Clankeep. The boys there know
better."
It was
not enough. It was no answer at all. lan
regretted
it immediately when he saw Kellin's
expression.
"Grandsire
says I may not go. I am to stay here,
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOfVS
19
he
says—but he won't tell me why. But I heard—
I heard
one of the servants say—" He broke it off.
"What?"
lan asked gently. "What have the ser-
vants
said?"
"That—that
even in Clankeep, the Mujhar fears
for my
safety. That because Locniel went there once,
he
might again—and if he knew / was there .. ."
Kellin
shrugged small shoulders. "I'm to be kept
here."
It is
no wonder, then, he listens to castle boys. lan
sighed
and attempted a smile. "There will always
be boys
who seek to hurt with words. You are a
prince—they
are not. It is resentment, Kellin. You
must
not put faith in what they say about your
Jehan.
They none of them know what he is."
Kellin's
tone was flat, utterly lifeless; his at-
tempt
to hide the hurt merely increased its poi-
gnancy.
"They say he was a coward. And sick- And
given
to fits."
All
this, and more . .. he has years yet before they
stop,
if any of them ever will stop; it may become a
weapon
meant to prick and goad first prince, then
Mujhar.
lan felt a tightness in his chest. The win-
ter had
been cold, the coldest he recalled in sev-
eral
seasons, and hard on him. He had caught a
cough,
and it had not completely faded even with
the
onset of full-blown spring.
He drew
in a carefully measured breath, seeking
to lay
waste to words meant to taunt the smallest
of boys
who would one day be the largest, in rank
if not
in height. "He is a shar tahl, Kellin, not a
madman.
Those who say so are ignorant, with no
respect
for Cheysuli customs." Inwardly he chided
himself
for speaking so baldly of Homanans to a
young,
impressionable boy, but lan saw no reason
to lie.
Ignorance was ignorance regardless of its
racial
origins; he knew his share of stubborn Chey-
20 Jennifer Roberson
suli,
too. "We have explained many times why he
went to
the Crystal Isle."
"Can't
he come to visit? That's all I want. Just
a
visit." The chin that promised adult intransi-
gence
was no less tolerant now. "Or can't I go
there?
Wouldn't I be safe there, with him?"
lan
coughed, pressing determinedly against the
sunken
breastbone hidden beneath Cheysuli jerkin
as if
to squeeze his lungs into compliance. "A shar
tahl is
not like everyone else, Kellin. He serves the
gods ...
he cannot be expected to conduct himself
according
to the whims and desires of others." It
was the
simple truth. lan knew, but doubted it
offered
enough weight to crush a boy's pain. "He
answers
to neither Mujhar nor clan-leader, but to
the
gods themselves. If you are to see your jehan,
he will
send for you."
"It
isn't fair," Kellin blurted in newborn bitter-
ness.
"Everyone else has a father!"
"Everyone
else does not have a father." lan
knew of
several boys in Homana-Mujhar and Clan-
keep
who lacked one or both parents. "Jehans and
jehanas
die, leaving children behind."
"My
mother died." His face spasmed briefly.
"They
said I killed her."
"No—"
No, Kellin had not killed Shona; Lochiel
had.
But the boy no longer listened.
"She's
dead—but my father is alive' Can't he
come?"
The
cough broke free of lan's wishes, wracking
lungs
and throat. He wanted very much to answer
the
boy, his long-dead brother's great-grandson,
but he
lacked the breath for it. "—Kellin—"
At last
the boy was alarmed. "Su'fali?" lan was
many
generations beyond uncle, but it was the
Cheysuli
term used in place of a more complex
one
involving multiple generations. "Are you sick
still?"
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOIVS 21
"Winter
lingers." He grinned briefly. "The bite
of the
Lion .. ."
"The
Lion is biting you?" Kellin's eyes were
enormous;
clearly he believed there was truth in
the
imagery.
"No."
lan bent, trying to keep the pain from the
boy. It
felt as if a burning brand had been thrust
deep
into his chest. "Here—help me to sit . . ."
"Not
there, not on the Lion—" Kellin grasped a
trembling
arm. "I won't let him bite you, su'fali."
The
breath of laughter wisped into wheezing.
"Kellin—"
But the
boy chattered on of a Cheysuli warrior's
protection,
far superior to that offered by others
unblessed
by lir or shapechanging arts and the
earth
magic, and guided lan down toward the
step.
The throne's cushion would soften the harsh-
ness of
old wood, but clearly the brief mention of
the
Lion had burned itself into Kellin's brain; the
boy
would not allow him to sit in the throne now,
even
now, and lan had no strength to dissuade
him of
his false conviction.
"Here,
su'fali." The small, piquant face was a
warrior's
again, fierce and determined. The boy
cast a
sharp glance over his shoulder, as if to ward
away
the beast.
"Kellin—"
But it hurt very badly to talk through
the
pain in his chest. His left arm felt tired and
weak.
Breathing was difficult, Lir ... It was imper-
ative,
instinctive; through the fir-link lan sum-
moned
Tasha from his chambers, where she lazed
in a
shaft of spring sunlight across the middlemost
part of
his bed. Forgive my waking you—
But the
mountain cat was quite awake and mov-
ing,
answering what she sensed more clearly than
what
she heard.
And
more— With the boy's help lan lowered
himself
to the top step of the dais, then bit back a
^ Jennifer Roberson
grimace.
Breathlessly, he said, "Kellin—fetch your
grandsire."
The boy
was all Cheysuli save for lighter-hued
flesh
and Erinnish eyes, wide-sprung eyes: dead
Deirdre's
eyes, who had begun the tapestry for her
husband,
Niall, lan's half-brother, decades before
—green
as Aileen's eyes— ... the Queen of Ho-
mana,
grandmother to the boy; sinter to Sean of
Erinn,
married to Keely, mother of Kellin's dead
mother.
So many bloodlines now .. . have we
pleased
the gods and the prophecy?
The
flesh of Kellin's Cheysuli face was pinched
Homanan-pale
beneath thick black hair. "Su'fali—"
lan
twitched a trembling finger in the direction
of the
massive silver doors gleaming dully at the
far end
of the Great Hall. "Do me this service,
Kellin—"
And as
the boy hastened away, crying out loudly
of deadly
lions, the dying Cheysuli warrior bid his
mountain
cat to run.
One
''
Summerfair,'' Kellin whispered in his bed-
chamber,
testing the sound of the word and all its
implications.
Then, in exultation, " Summefiair\"
He
threw back the lid of a clothing trunk and
fetched
out an array of velvets and brocades, toss-
ing all
aside in favor of quieter leathers. He de-
sired
to present himself properly but without
Homanan
pretension, which he disliked, putting
into
its place the dignity of a Cheysuli.
Summerfair.
He was to go, this year. Last year
it had
been forbidden, punishment as much for his
stubborn
insistence that he had been right as for
the
transgression itself, which he still believed nec-
essary.
They had misunderstood, his grandsire and
granddame,
and all the castle servants; they had
all
misunderstood, each and every one, regardless
of
rank, birth, or race.
lan
would have understood, but Kellin's harani
was two
years' dead. And it was because of lan's
death—and
the means by which that death was
delivered—that
Kellin sought to destroy what he
viewed
as further threat to those he loved.
None of
them understood. But his mind jumped
ahead
rapidly, discarding the painful memories of
that
unfortunate time as he dragged forth from
the
trunk a proper set of Cheysuli leathers: soft-
tanned,
russet jerkin with matching leggings; a
25
Jennifer
Roberson
26
belt
fastened with onyx and worked gold; soft,
droopy
boots with soles made for leaf-carpeted
forest,
not the hard bricks of the city.
"—still
fit—?" Kellin dragged on one boot and
discovered
that no, it did not fit, which meant the
other
didn't either; which meant he had grown
again
and was likely in need of attention from Ai-
leen's
sempstresses with regard to Homanan cloth-
ing ...
He grimaced- He intensely disliked such
attention.
Perhaps he could put on the Cheysuli
leathers
and wear new Homanan boots; or was
that
sacrilege?
He
stripped free of Homanan tunic and breeches
and
replaced them with preferred Cheysuli garb,
discovering
the leggings had shrunk; no, his legs
had
lengthened, which Kellin found pleasing. For
a time
he had been small, but it seemed he was
at last
making up for it. Perhaps now no one would
believe
him a mere eight-year-old, but would under-
stand
the increased maturity ten years brought.
Kellin
sorted out the fit of his clothing and
clasped
the belt around slender hips, then turned
to
survey himself critically in the polished bronze
plate
hung upon the wall. Newly-washed hair was
drying
into accustomed curls—Kellin, frowning,
instantly
tried to mash them away—but his chin
was
smooth and childish, unmarred by the disfig-
uring
hair Homanans called a beard- Such a thing
marked
a man less than Cheysuli, Kellin felt, for
Cheysuli
could not ordinarily grow beards—al-
though
some mixed-blood Cheysuli not only could
but
did; it was said Corin, in distant Atvia, wore
a
beard, as did Kellin's own Errinish grandfather,
Sean—but
he would never do so. Kellin would
never
subscribe to a fashion that hid a man's heri-
tage
behind the hair on his face.
Kellin
examined his hairless chin, then ran a
finger
up one soft-fleshed cheek, across to his nose,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
27
and
explored the curve of immature browbone
above
his eyes. Everyone said he was a true Chey-
suli,
save for his eyes—and skin tinted halfway
between
bronze and fair; though in summer he
tanned
dark enough to pass as a trueblood—but
he
could not replace his eyes, and his prayers in
childhood
that the gods do so had eventually been
usurped
by a growing determination to overlook
the
improper color of his eyes and concentrate on
other
matters, such as warrior skills, which he
practiced
diligently so as not to dishonor his heri-
tage.
And anyway, he was not solely Cheysuli; had
they
not, all of them, told him repeatedly he was
a
mixture of nearly every bloodline there was—or
of
every one that counted—and that he alone could
advance
the prophecy of the Firstborn one step
closer
to completion?
They
had. Kellin understood. He was Cheysuli,
but
also Homanan, Solindish, Atvian, and Erin-
nish.
He was needed, he was important, he was
necessary.
But
sometimes he wondered if he himself, Kel-
lin,
were not so necessary as his blood. If he cut
himself,
and spilled it, would that satisfy them—
and
then make him unimportant?
Kellin
grimaced at his reflection. "Sometimes
they
treat me like Gareth's prize stallion ... I
think
he forgets what it is to be a horse, the way
they
all treat him.. . ." But Kellin let it go. The
image
in the polished plate stared back, green eyes
transmuted
by bronze to dark hazel. The familiar-
ity of
his features was momentarily blurred by
imagination,
and he became another boy, a strange
boy, a
boy with different powers promised one
day-
"Ihlini,"
Kellin whispered. "What are you really
like?
Do you look like demons?"
"I
think that unlikely," said a voice from the
Jennifer
Roberson
28
doorway:
Rogan, his tutor. "I think they probably
resemble
you and me, rather than horrid specters
of the
netherworld. You've heard stories of Stra-
han and
Lochiel. They look like everyone else."
Kellin
could see Rogan's distorted reflection in
the
bronze. "Could you be Ihlini?"
"Certainly,"
Rogan replied. "I am an evil sor-
cerer
sent here from Lochiel himself, to take you
prisoner
and carry you away to Valgaard, where
you
will doubtlessly be tortured and slain, then
given
over to Asar-Suti, the Seker—"
Kellin
took it up with appropriate melodrama:
"—the
god of the netherworld, who made and
dwells
in darkness, and—"
"—who
clothes himself in the noxious fumes of
his
slain victims," Rogan finished.
Kellin
grinned his delight; it was an old game,
"Grandsire
would protect me."
"Aye,
he would. That is what a Mujhar is for.
He
would never allow anyone, sorcerer or not, to
steal
his favorite grandson."
"I
am his only grandson."
"And
therefore all the more valuable." Rogan's
reflection
sighed. "I know it has been very difficult
for
you, being mewed up in Homana-Mujhar for
so many
years, but it was necessary. You know
why."
Kellin
knew why, but he did not entirely under-
stand.
Punishment had kept him from attending
Summerfair
for two years, but there was much
more to
it than that. He had never known any free-
dom to
visit Mujhara as others did, or even Clan-
keep
without constant protection.
Kellin
turned from the polished plate and looked
at
Rogan. The Homanan was very tall and thin
and was
inclined to stoop when he was tired, as
he
stooped just now. His graying brown hair was
damp
from recent washing, and he had put on
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
29
what
Keltin called his "medium" clothes: not as
plain
as his usual somber apparel, but not so fine
as
those he wore when summoned to sup in the
Great
Hall with the family, as occasionally hap-
pened.
Plain black breeches and gray wool tunic
over
linen shirt, belted and clasped with bronze,
replaced
his customary attire.
"Why?"
Kellin blurted. "Why do they let me go
now? I
heard some of the servants talking. They
said
grandsire and granddame were too frightened
to let
me go out."
The
lines in Rogan's face etched themselves a
little
more deeply. "Even they understand they
cannot
keep you in jesses forever. You must be
permitted
to weather outside like a hawk on the
blocks,
or be unfit for the task. And so they have
decided
you may go this year, as you have im-
proved
your manners—and because it is time. I
am put
in charge . . . but there will be guards
also."
Kellin
nodded; there were always guards. "Be-
cause
I'm Aidan's only son", and the only heir," He
did not
understand all of it. "Because—because if
Lochiel
killed me, there would be no more threat."
He
lifted his chin. "That's what they say in the
baileys
and kitchens."
Rogan's
eyes flinched. "You listen entirely too
much to
gossip—but I suppose it is to be expected.
Aye,
you are a threat to the Ihlini. And that is why
you are
so closely guarded. With so many Cheysuli
here
Lochiel's sorcery cannot reach you, and so
you are
closely kept—but there are other ways,
ways
involving nothing so much as a greedy cook
desiring
Ihlini gold—" But Rogan waved it away
with a
sharply dismissive gesture. "Enough of a
sad
topic. There will be guards, as always, but
your
grandsire has decided to allow you this small
freedom."
Jennifer
Robersoa
30
Summerfair
was more than a freedom. It was
renewal.
Kellin forgot all about rumor and gossip.
Grinning,
he pointed at the purse depending from
the
belt. His grandfather had given Rogan coin for
Summerfair.
"Can we go? Now?"
"We
can go. Now."
"Then
put on your Summerfair face," Kellin or-
dered
sternly. Rogan was a plain, soft-spoken man
in his
mid-forties only rarely given to laughter,
but
Kellin had always known a quiet, steady
warmth
from the Homanan. He enjoyed teasing
Rogan
out of his melancholy moods, and today
was not
a day for sad faces. "You will scare away
the
ladies with that sad scowl."
"What
does my face have to do with the ladies?"
Rogan
asked suspiciously.
"It's
Summerfair," Kellin declared. "Everyone
will be
happier than usual because of Summerfair.
Even
you will attract the ladies ... if you put
away
that scowl."
"I
am not scowling, and what do you know
about
ladies?"
"Enough,"
Kellin said airily, and strode out of
the
room.
Rogan
followed- "How much is enough, my
young
lord?"
"You
know." Kellin stopped in the corridor. "I
heard
Melora. She was talking to Belinda, who
said it
had been too long since you'd had a good
woman
in your bed." Rogan's face reddened im-
mediately.
It was the first time any of Kellin's sal-
lies
had provoked such a personal reaction, and
the boy
was fascinated. "Has it been?"
The man
rubbed wearily at his scalp. "Aye, well,
perhaps.
Had I known Belinda and Melora were
so
concerned about it, I might have asked them
for
advice on how to change matters." He eyed his
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 31
charge
closely. "How much do you know about
men and
women?"
"Oh,
everything. I know all about them." Kellin
set off
down the corridor with Rogan matching his
longer
strides to the boy's. "I was hoping I might
find a
likely lady during Summerfair."
A large
hand descended upon Kellin's shoulder
and
stopped him in his tracks. "My lord," Rogan
said
formally, "would you be so good as to tell
your
ignorant tutor precisely what you are talking
about?"
"If
you mean how much do I know," Kellin
began,
"I know. I learned all about it last year.
And now
I would like to try it for myself."
"At
ten?" Rogan murmured, as much for him-
self as
for Kellin.
"How
old were you?"
Rogan
looked thoughtful. "They say Cheysuli
grow up
quickly, and there are stories about your
grandsire
and his brothers. ..."
Kellin
grinned. "This might be the best
Summerfair
of all."
"Better
than last year, certainly." The under-
stated
amusement faded from Rogan's tone. "You
do
recall why you were refused permission to go."
Kellin
shrugged it away. "Punishment."
"And
why were you punished?"
Kellin
sighed; it was very like Rogan to impose
lessons
upon a holiday, and reminders of other
lessons.
"Because I set fire to the tapestry."
"And
the year before that?"
"Tried
to chop the Lion to bits." Kellin nodded
matter-of-factly.
"I had to do it, Rogan. It was the
Lion
who killed lan."
"Kellin—"
"It
came alive, and it bit him. My harani said
so.
Jennifer
Roberson
32
Rogan
was patient. "Then why did you try to
burn
down the tapestry?"
"Because
it's made of lions, too. You know
that,"
Kellin firmed his mouth; none of them
understood,
even when he explained. "I have to
kill
all the lions before they kill me."
Summer
was Kellin's favorite season, and the
fair
the best part of it. Never searingly hot, Ho-
mana
nonetheless warmed considerably during
midsummer,
and the freedom everyone felt was
reflected
in high spirits, habits, and clothing. Ban-
ished
were the leathers and furs and coarse wool-
ens of
winter, replaced by linens and cambrics and
silks,
unless one was determinedly Cheysuli in
habits
at all times, as was Kellin, who wore jerkin
and
leggings whenever he could. Everyone put on
Summerfair
clothing, brightly dyed and embroi-
dered,
and went out into the streets to celebrate
the
season.
Doors
stood open and families gathered before
dwellings,
trading news and stories, sharing food
and
drink. In Market Square Mujharan merchants
and
foreign traders gathered to hawk wares. The
streets
were choked with the music of laughter,
jokes,
tambors, pipes and lutes, and the chime of
coin
exchanged. The air carried the aromas of
spices
and sweetmeats, and the tang of roasting
beef,
pork, mutton, and various delicacies.
"Sausage!"
Kellin cried. Then, correcting him-
self—he
had taken pains to learn the proper for-
eign
word: "Suhoqla! Hurry, Rogan!"
Kellin's
nose led him directly to the wagons at
the
outermost edge of Market Square, conspicu-
ously
far from the worst of the tangle in the center
of the
square. Already a small crowd gathered, Ho-
manans
nudging one another with elbows and
murmuring
pointed comments about the foreign-
A
TAPESTRY OF LtOIVS 33
ers and
foreign ways. That other traders were as
foreign
did not seem to occur to them; these for-
eigners
were rarely seen, and therefore all the
more
fascinating.
Kellin
did not care that they were foreign, save
their
foreignness promised suhoqla, which he
adored,
and other things as intriguing.
Rogan's
voice was stem. "A more deliberate
pace,
if you please—no darting through the crowd.
You
make it difficult for the guard to keep up in
such
crowded streets—and if we lose them, we
must
return to the palace at once. Is that what
you
wish to risk?"
Kellin
glanced around. There they were, the
guard:
four men of the Mujharan Guard, hand-
picked
to protect the Prince of Homana. They were
unobtrusive
in habits and clothing generally, ex-
cept
now they wore the crimson tabards of their
station
to mark them for what they were: body-
guards
to the boy in whom the future of the Chey-
suli—and
Homana herself—resided.
"But
it's suhoqla ... you know how I love it,
Rogan."
"Indeed,
so you have said many times."
"And
I haven't had it for almost two years!"
"Then
by all means have some now. All I ask is
that
you recall I am almost four decades older
than
you. Old men cannot keep up with small—"
he
altered it in midsentence, "—young men."
Kellin
grinned up at him. "A man as tall as you
need
only stretch out prodigious legs, and he is in
Ellas."
Rogan
smiled faintly. "So I have often been
told,"
he looked beyond Kellin to the wagon. "Su-
hoqla
it is, then- Though how your belly can abide
it .
.." He shook his head in despair. "You will
have
none left by the time you are my great age."
"It
isn't my belly I care about, it's my mouth."
34
Jennifer Roberson
Kellin
edged his way more slowly through the
throng
with Rogan and the watchdogs following
closely.
"By the time it gets to my belly, it's
tamed."
"Ah.
Well, here you are."
Here he
was. Kellin stared at the three women
kneeling
around the bowl-shaped frying surface.
They
had dug a hollow in the sand, placed heated
stones
in the bottom, then the clay plank atop the
stones.
The curling links of sausage were cooked
slowly
in their own grease, absorbing spiced oil-
The
women were black-haired and black-eyed,
with
skins the color of old ivory. Two of them were
little
more than crones, but the third was much
younger.
Her eyes, tilted in an oval face, were
bright
and curious as she flicked a quick assessive
glance
across the crowd, but only rarely did she
look
anyone in the eye. She and her companions
wore
shapeless dark robes and bone jewelry—
necklaces,
earrings, and bracelets. The old women
wore
cloth head-coverings; the youngest had pulled
her
hair up high on the back of her head, tying it
so that
it hung down her back in a series of tight
braids.
Two yellow feathers fluttered from one
braid
as she moved-
"A
harsh place, the Steppes," Rogan murmured.
"You
can see it in their faces."
"Not
in hers," Kellin declared.
"She
is young," Rogan said sadly. "In time,
she'll
grow to look like the others."
Kellin
didn't like to think so, but filling his
mouth
was more important than concerning him-
self
with a woman's vanishing youth. "Buy me
some,
Rogan, if you please."
Obligingly
Rogan fished a coin out of the purse
provided
by the Mujhar, and handed it to one of
the old
women. The young one speared two links
with a
sharpened stick, then held it out to Kellin.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 35
"Ah,"
Rogan said, looking beyond. "It isn't merely
the
women, after all, that attract so many . .. Kel-
lin, do
you see the warrior?"
Tentatively
testing the heat of the spiced sau-
sages,
Kellin peered beyond the women and saw
the man
Rogan indicated. He forgot his suhoqla
almost
at once; Steppes warriors only rarely showed
themselves
in Mujhara, preferring to watch their
womenfolk
from the wagons. This one had altered
custom
to present himself in the flesh.
The
warrior was nearly naked, clad only in a
brief
leather loin-kilt, an abundance of knives, and
scars.
He was not tall, but compactly muscled.
Black
hair was clubbed back and greased, with a
straight
fringe cut across his brow. He wore a plug
of
ivory on one nostril, and twin scars bisected
each
cheek, ridged and black, standing up like
ropes
from butter-smooth flesh,
K-ellin
lost count of the scars on the warrior's
body;
by their patterns and numbers, he began to
wonder
if perhaps they were to the Steppes war-
riors
as much a badge of honor and manhood as
/ir-gold
to a Cheysuli.
At the
warrior's waist were belted three knives
of
differing lengths, and he wore another on his
right
forearm while yet another was hung about
his
throat. It depended from a narrow leather
thong,
sheathed, its greenish hilt glinting oddly in
the
sunlight of a Homanan summer. The warrior
stood
spread-legged, arms folded, seemingly deaf
and
blind to those who gaped and commented,
but
Kellin knew instinctively the Steppesman was
prepared
to defend the women—the young one,
perhaps?—at
a moment's notice.
Kellin
looked up at his tutor. "Homana has
never
fought the Steppes, has she?"
Rogan sighed.
"You recall your history, I see-
No,
Kellin, she has not. Homana has nothing to
36
Jennifer Roberson
do with
the Steppes, no treaties, no alliances,
nothing
at all. A few warriors and woman come
occasionally
to Summerfair, that is all."
"But—I
remember something—"
"That
speaks well of your learning," Rogan said
dryly.
"What you recall, I believe, is that one of
your
ancestors, exiled from Homana, went into the
service
of Caledon and fought against Steppes bor-
der
raiders."
"Carillon."
Kellin nodded. "And Finn, his Chey-
suli
liege man." He grinned. "I am kin to both."
"So
you are." Rogan looked again at the scarred
warrior.
"A formidable foe, but then Carillon him-
self
was a gifted soldier—"
"—and
Finn was Cheysuli." Kellin's tone was de-
finitive;
nothing more need be said.
"Aye."
Rogan was resigned. "Finn was indeed
Cheysuli."
Kellin
stared hard at the Steppes warrior. The
forgotten
suhoqla dripped spiced grease down the
front
of his jerkin. It was in his mind to make
the
warrior acknowledge the preeminence of the
Cheysuli,
to mark the presence of superiority; he
wanted
badly for the fierceness of the scarred man
to pale
to insignificance beside the power of his
own
race, men—and some women—who could as-
sume
the shape of animals at will. It was impor-
tant
that the man be made to look at him, to see
him, to
know he was Cheysuli, as was Finn, who
had
battled Steppes raiders a hundred years before.
At last
the black, slanting eyes deigned to glance
in his
direction. Instinctively, Kellin raised his
chin in
challenge. "I am Cheysuli."
Rogan
grunted. "I doubt he speaks Homanan."
"Then
how does he know what anyone says?"
The
young woman moved slightly, eyes down-
cast.
"I speak." Her voice was very soft, the Homa-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 37
nan
words heavily accented. "I speak, tell Tuqhoc
what is
said, Tuqhoc decides if speaker lives."
Kellin
stared at her in astonishment. "He
decides!"
"If
insult is given, speaker must die." The young
woman
glanced at the warrior, Tuqhoc, whose
eyes
had lost their impassivity, and spoke rapidly
in a
strange tongue.
Kellin
felt a foolhardy courage fill up his chest,
driving
him to further challenge. "Is he going to
kill me
now?"
The
young woman's eyes remained downcast. "I
told
him you understand the custom."
"And
if I insulted you?"
"Kellin,"
Rogan warned. "Play at no semantics
with
these people; such folly promises danger."
The
young woman was matter-of-fact. "He would
choose
a knife, and you would die."
Kellin
stared at the array of knives strapped
against
scarred flesh. "Which one?"
She
considered it seriously a moment. "The
king-knife.
That one, one around his neck."
"That
one?" Kellin looked at it. "Why?"
Her
smile was fleeting, and aimed at the ground.
"A
king-knife for a king—or a king's son."
It was
utterly unexpected. Heat filled Kellin's
face.
Everyone else knew; he was no longer re-
quired
to explain. He had set aside such explana-
tions
years before. But now the young woman had
stirred
up the emotions again, and he found the
words
difficult. "My father is not a king."
"You
walk with dogs."
"Dogs?"
Baffled, Kellin glanced up at Rogan.
"He
is my tutor, not a dog. He teaches me things."
"I
try to," Rogan remarked dryly.
She was
undeterred by the irony. "Them," Her
glance
indicated the alerted Mujharan Guard,
38
Jennifer Roberson
moving
closer now that their charge conversed
with
strangers from the Steppes.
Kellin
saw her gaze, saw her expression, and
imagined
what she thought. It diminished him. In
her
eyes, he was a boy guarded by dogs; in his,
the son
of a man who had renounced his rank and
legacy,
as well as the seed of his loins. In that
moment
Kellin lost his identity, stripped of it by
foreigners,
and it infuriated him.
He
stared a challenge at the warrior. "Show
me."
Rogan's
hand came down on Kellin's shoulder.
Fingers
gripped firmly, pressing him to turn. "This
is
quite enough."
Kellin
was wholly focused on the warrior as he
twisted
free of the tutor's grip. "Show me."
Rogan's
voice was clipped. "Kellin, I said it was
enough."
The
watchdogs were there, right there, so close
they
blocked the sun. But Kellin ignored them. He
stared at
the young woman. "Tell him to show
me.
Now!"
The
ivory-dark faced paled. "Tuqhoc never
shows—Tuqhoc
does."
Kellin
did not so much as blink even as the
watchdogs
crowded him. He pulled free of a hand:
Rogan's.
"Tell him what I said."
Tuqhoc,
clearly disturbed by the change in tone
and
stance—and the free use of his own name—
barked
out a clipped question. The young woman
answered
reluctantly. Tuqhoc repeated himself, as
if
disbelieving, then laughed. For the first time
emotion
glinted in his eyes. Tuqhoc smiled at Kel-
lin and
made a declaration in the Steppes tongue.
Rogan's
hands closed on both shoulders deci-
sively.
"We are leaving. I warned you, my lord."
"No,"
Kellin declared. To the young woman;
"What
did he say?"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 39
"Tuqhoc
says, if he shows, you die."
"Only
a fool taunts a Steppes warrior—I thought
you
knew better." Rogan's hands forced Kellin to
turn.
"Away. Now."
Kellin
tore free. "Show me!" Even as Rogan
blurted
an order, the watchdogs closed on the
warrior,
drawing swords. Kellin ducked around
one
man, then slid through two others. The dark
Steppes
eyes were fixed on the approaching men
in
fierce challenge. Kellin desperately wanted to
regain
that attention for himself. "Show me!" he
shouted.
Tuqhoc
slipped the guard easily, so easily—even
as the
challenge was accepted. In one quick, effort-
less
motion Tuqhoc plucked the knife from the
thong
around his neck and threw.
For
Kellin, the knife was all. He was only pe-
ripherally
aware of the women crying out, the gut-
tural
invective of the warrior as the watchdogs
pressed
steel against his flesh.
Rogan
reached for him—
Too
late. The knife was in the air. And even as
Rogan
twisted, intending to protect his charge by
using
his own body as shield, Kellin stepped nim-
bly
aside. For ME—
He saw
the blade, watched it, judged its arc, its
angle,
anticipated its path. Then he reached out
and
slapped the blade to the ground.
"By
the gods—" Rogan caught his shoulders and
jerked
him aside. "Have you any idea—?"
Kellin
did. He could not help it. He stared at
the
warrior, at the Steppes women, at the knife in
the
street. He knew precisely what he had done,
and
why.
He
wanted to shout his exultation, but knew
better.
He looked at the watchdogs and saw the
fixed,
almost feral set of jaws; the grimness in
40
Jennifer Roberson
their
faces; the acknowledgment in their eyes as
they
caged the Steppesman with steel.
It was
not his place to gloat; Cheysuli warriors
did not
lower themselves to such unnecessary
displays.
Kellin
bent and picked up the knife. He noted
the odd
greenish color and oily texture of the
blade.
He looked at Rogan, then at the young
woman
whose eyes were astonished.
As much
as for his tutor's benefit as for hers,
Kellin
said: "Tell Tuqhoc that I am Cheysuli."
Two
Rogan's
hand shut more firmly on Kellin's shoul-
der and
guided him away despite his burgeoning
protest.
Kellin was aware of the Mujharan Guard
speaking
to Tuqhoc and the young woman, of the
tension
in Rogan's body, and of the startled mur-
muring
of the crowd.
"Wait—"
He wanted to twist away from Ro-
gan's
grasp, to confront Tuqhoc of the Steppes and
see the
acknowledgment in his eyes, as it was in
the
woman's, that a Cheysuli, regardless of youth
and
size, was someone to be respected. But Rogan
permitted
no movement save that engineered by
himself.
Doesn't he understand? Doesn't he know?
Unerringly—-and
unsparing of his firmness—the
Homanan
guided Kellin away from the wagons to
a
quieter pocket in the square some distance
away.
His tone was flat, as if he squeezed out all
emotion
for fear of showing too much. "Let me
see
your hand."
Now
that the moment had passed and he could
no
longer see the Steppes warrior, Kellin's elation
died.
He felt listless, robbed of his victory. Sullenly
he
extended his hand, allowing Rogan to see the
slice
across the fleshy part of three fingers and the
blood
running down his palm.
Tight-mouthed,
Rogan muttered something
about
childish fancies; Kellin promptly snatched
back
his bleeding hand and pressed it against the
41
Jeaalfw
Robersoa
sausage-stained
jerkin. The uneaten suhoqla
grasped
in his ether hand grew colder by the
moment.
Rogan
said crisply, "I will find something with
which
to bind these cuts."
Blood
mingled with sausage grease as Kellin
pressed
the fingers against his jerkin. It stung
badly
enough to make the comers of his mouth
crimp,
but he would not speak of it. He would
give
away nothing. "Leave it be. It has already
stopped."
He fisted his hand so hard the knuckles
turned
white, then displayed it to Rogan. "You
i"
see.-*
The
tutor shook his head slowly, but he gave the
hand
only the merest contemplation; he looked
mostly
at Kellin's face, as if judging him.
/ won't
let him know, Kellin put up his chin. "I
am a
warrior. Such things do not trouble warriors."
Rogan
shook his head again. Something broke
in his
eyes: an odd, twisted anguish. His breath
hissed
between white teeth. "While you are fixed
wholly
on comporting yourself as a warrior, ne-
glecting
to recall you are still but a boy—I realize
it will
do little if any good to point out that the
knife
could have killed you." The teeth clamped
themselves
shut. "But I'll wager that was part of
the
reason you challenged him. Yet you should
know
that such folly could result in serious reper-
cussions."
"But
I could see—"
Rogan
cut off the protest. "If not for yourself,
for me
and the guard! Do you realize what would
become
of us if you came to harm?"
Kellin
had not considered that. He looked at
Rogan
more closely and saw the very real fear in
his
tutor's eyes. Shame goaded. "No," he admit-
ted,
then anxiousness usurped it, and the need to
explain.
"But I needed him to see. To know—"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 43
"Know
what? That you are a boy too accus-
tomed
to having his own way?"
"That
I am Cheysuli." Kellin squeezed his cut
hand
more tightly closed. "I want them all to
know.
They have to know—they have to under-
stand
that I am not he—"
"Kellin—"
"Don't
you see? I have to prove I am a true man,
not a
coward—that I will not turn my back on
duty
and my people—and—and—" he swallowed
painfully,
finishing his explanation quickly, un-
evenly,
"—any sons 7 might sire."
Rogan's
mouth loosened. After a moment it
tightened
again, and the muscles of his jaw rolled
briefly.
Quietly, he said, "Promise me never to do
such a
thoughtless thing again."
Feeling
small, Kellin nodded, then essayed a
final
attempt at explanation. "I watched his eyes.
Tuqhoc's.
I knew when he would throw, and how,
and
what the knife would do. I had only to put out
my
hand, and the knife was there," He shrugged
self-consciously,
seeing the-arrested expression in
Rogan's
eyes. "I just knew. I saw." Dismayed, he
observed
his congealing sausage as Rogan fixed
him
with a more penetrating assessment. Kellin
extended
the stick with its weight of greasy 5M-
hoqla.
"Do you want this?"
The
Homanan grimaced. "I cannot abide the
foul
taste of those things. You wanted it—eat it."
But
Kellin's appetite was banished by after-
math.
"It's cold." He glanced around, spied a
likely
looking dog, and approached to offer the
sausage.
The mongrel investigated the meat, wrin-
kled
its nose and sneezed, then departed speedily.
"That
says something for your taste," Rogan re-
marked
dryly. He drew his own knife, cut a strip
of
fabric from the hem of his tunic, motioned a
passing
water-seller over and bought a cup. He
44
Jennifer Roberson
dipped
the cloth into the water and began to wipe
the cut
clean. "By the gods, the Queen will have
my hide
for this .. . you are covered with grease
and
blood."
Rogan's
ministrations hurt. No longer hungry,
Kellin
discarded the suhoqla. He bit into his lip as
the
watchdogs came up and resumed their places,
though
the distance between their charge and
their
persons was much smaller now.
Humiliation
scorched his face; warriors did not,
he
believed, submit so easily to public nursing. "I
want to
see the market."
Rogan
looped the fabric around the fingers and
palm to
make a bandage, then tied it off. "We are
in the
market; look around, and you will see it."
He tightened
the knot- "There. It will do until we
return
to the palace."
Kellin's
mind was no longer on the stinging cut
or its
makeshift bandage. He frowned as a young
boy
passed by, calling out in singsong Homanan.
"A
fortune-teller!"
"No,"
Rogan said promptly.
"But
Rogan—"
"Such
things are a waste of good coin." Rogan
shrugged.
"You are Cheysuli. You already know
your
tahlmorra."
"But
you don't yet know yours," Grinning antic-
ipation,
Kellin locked his bandaged hand over Ro-
gan's
wrist. "Don't you want to find out if you'll
share
your bed with Melora or Belinda?"
Rogan
coughed a laugh, glancing sidelong at the
guards.
"No mere fortune-teller can predict that.
Women
do what they choose to do; they do not
depend
on fate."
Kellin
tugged his tutor in the direction the pass-
ing boy
had indicated. "Let us go, Rogan. That
boy
says the fortune-teller can predict what be-
comes
of me."
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 45
"That
boy is a shill. He says what he's told to
say, and
the fortune-teller says what he's paid to
say."
"Ro-gan\"
Rogan
sighed. "If you desire it so much—"
"Aye!"
Kellin tugged him on until they stood
before
a tent slumped halfheartedly against a
wall. A
black cat, small version of the Mujhar's Hr,
Sleeta,
lay stretched out on a faded rug before the
entrance,
idly licking one paw; beside him curled
a
half-grown fawn-hued dog who barely lifted an
eyelid.
The tent itself was small, its once-glorious
stripes
faded gold against pale brown, so that it
merged
into the wall. "My grandsire gave you coin
for
such things," Kellin reminded his tutor. "Surely
he
could not count it ill-spent if we enjoyed it!"
Graying
eyebrows arched. "A sound point. That
much
you have mastered, if not your history."
Rogan
gestured for the guardsmen to precede
them
into the tent.
"No!"
Kellin cried.
"They
must, Kellin. The Mujhar has given or-
ders.
And after what you provoked in the Steppes
warrior,
I should take you home immediately."
Kellin
compromised immediately. "They may
come
wait here." His gesture encompassed the rug
and
entrance. "But not inside the tent. A fortune
is a
private thing."
"I
cannot allow the Prince of—"
"Say
nothing of titles!" Ketlin cried. "How will
the
fortune-teller give me the truth otherwise? If
he
knows what I am, it cheats the game."
"At
least you admit it is a game, for which I
thank
the gods; you are not entirely gullible. But
rules
are rules; the Mujhar is my lord, not you."
Rogan
ordered one of the guardsmen into the tent.
"He
will see that it is safe."
Kellin
waited impatiently until the guardsman
46
Jennifer Roberson
came
out again. When the man nodded his head,
Rogan
had him and his companions assume posts
just
outside the tent.
"Now?"
Kellin asked, and as Rogan nodded he
slipped
through the doorflap.
Inside
the tent, Kellin found the shadows stuffy
and
redolent of an acrid, spice-laden smoke that
set his
eyes to watering. He wiped at them hastily,
wrinkling
his nose at the smell very much as the
street
dog did to the suhoqla, and squinted to peer
through
the thready haze- A gauzy dark curtain
merged
with shadow to hide a portion of the tent;
he and
Rogan stood in what a castle-raised boy
would
call an antechamber, though the walls were
fabric
in place of stone.
Rogan
bent slightly, resting a hand on Kellin's
shoulder
as he spoke in a low tone. "You must
recall
that he works for coin, Kellin. Put no faith
in his
words."
Kellin
frowned. "Don't spoil it."
"I
merely forewarn that what he says—"
"Don't
spoil it!"
The
gauzy curtain was parted. The fortune-teller
was a
nondescript, colorless foreign man of inde-
terminate
features, wearing baggy saffron panta-
loons
and three silk vests over a plain tunic: one
dyed
blue, the next red, the third bright green.
"Forgive
an old man his vice: I smoke husath,
which
is not suitable for guests unless they also
share
the vice." He moved out of the shadowed
curtain,
bringing the sweet-sour aroma with him.
"I
do not believe either of you would care for it."
"What
is it?" Kellin was fascinated.
Rogan
stirred slightly. "Indeed, a vice. It puts
dreams
in a man's head."
Kellin
shrugged. "Dreams are not so bad. I
dream
every night."
"Husath
dreams are different. They can be dan-
A
TAPESTRY OF Lioivs 47
gerous
when they make a man forget to eat or
drink."
Rogan stared hard at the man- "The boy
wants
his fortune told, nothing more. You need
not
initiate him into a curiosity that may prove
dangerous."
"Of
course." The man smiled faintly and ges-
tured
to a rug spread across the floor. "Be in com-
fort,
and I will share with you your future, and a
little
of your past."
"He
is all of ten; his past is short," Rogan said
dryly.
"This shouldn't take long."
"It
will take as long as it must." The fortune-
teller
gestured again. "I promise you no tricks, no
husath,
no nonsense, only the truth."
Kellin
turned and gazed up at Rogan. "You
first."
The
brows arched again. "We came for you."
"You
first."
Rogan
considered it, then surrendered grace-
fully,
folding long legs to seat himself upon the
rug
just opposite the fortune-teller. "For the boy's
sake,
then."
"And
nothing for yourself?" The fortune-teller's
teeth
were stained pale yellow. "Give me your
hands."
Kellin
dropped to his knees and waited eagerly.
"Go
on, Rogan. Give him your hands."
With a
small, ironic smile, Rogan acquiesced.
The
fortune-teller merely looked at the tutor's
hands
for a long moment, examining the minute
whorls
and scars in his flesh, the length of fingers,
the fit
of nails, the color of the skin. Then he linked
his
fingers with Rogan's, held them lightly, and
began
to murmur steadily as if invoking the gods.
"No
tricks," Rogan reminded.
"Shhh,"
Kellin said. "Don't spoil the magic."
"This
isn't magic, Kellin . . . this is merely
entertai
nment.''
48
Jennifer Roberson
But the
fortune-teller's tone altered, interrupting
the
debate. His voice dropped low into a singsong
cadence
that made the hair rise up on the back of
Ketlin's
neck: "Alone in the midst of many, even
those
whom you love ... apart and separate, con-
sumed
by grief. She lives within you when she is
dead,
and you live through her, seeing her face when
you
sleep and wake, longing for the love she cannot
offer.
You live in the pasts of kings and queens and
those
who have gone before you, but you thrive upon
your
own. Your past is your present and will be your
future,
until you summon the strength to give her
life
again. Offered and spumed, it is offered again;
spurned
and offered a third time until, accepting,
you
free yourself from the misery of what is lost to
you,
and then live in the misery of what you have
done.
You will die knowing what you have done, and
why,
and the price of your reward. You will use and
be used
in turn, discarded at last when your use is
passed."
Rogan
jerked his hands away with a choked, in-
articulate
protest. Kellin, astonished, stared at his
tutor;
what he saw made him afraid. The man's
face
was ashen, devoid of life, and his eyes swam
with
tears.
"Rogan?"
Apprehension seized his bones and
washed
his flesh ice-cold. "Rogan!"
But
Rogan offered no answer. He sat upon the
rug and
stared at nothingness as tears ran down
his
face.
"A
harsh truth," the fortune-teller said quietly,
exhaling
husath fumes. "I promise no happiness."
"Rogan—"
Kellin began, and then the fortune-
teller
reached out and caught at his hands, trapped
the
fingers in his own, and Kellin's speech was
banished.
This
time there were no gods to invoke. The
words
spilled free of the stranger's mouth as if he
A
TAPESTRY or LIONS 49
could
not stop them. "He is the sword," the hissing
voice
whispered. "The sword and the bow and the
knife.
He is the weapon of every man who uses him
for Hi,
and the strength of every man who uses him
for
good. Child of darkness, child of light; of like
breeding
with like, until the blood is one again. He
is
Cymric, he is Cynric: the sword and the bow and
the
knife, and all men shall name him evil until Man
is made
whole again."
The
voice stopped, Kellin stared, struggling to
make an
answer, any sort of answer, but the sound
began
again.
"The
lion shall lie down with the witch; out of
darkness
shall come light; out of death: life; out of
the
old: the new. The lion shall lie down with the
witch,
and the witch-child born to rule what the lion
must
swallow. The lion shall devour the House of
Homana
and all of her children, so the newbom
child
shall sit upon the throne and know himself
lord of
all"
A
shudder wracked Kellin from head to toe, and
then he
cried out and snatched his hands away.
"The
Lion!" he cried. "The'Lion will eat me!"
He
scrambled to his feet even as the guardsmen
shredded
canvas with steel to enter the tent. He
saw
their faces, saw their intent; he saw Rogan's
tear-streaked
face turning to him. Rogan's mouth
moved,
but Kellin heard nothing. One of the
guards
put his hand upon his prince's rigid shoul-
der,
but Kellin did not feel it.
The
Lion. The LION.
He knew
in that instant they were unprepared,
just as
the Steppes warrior had been unprepared.
None of
them understood. No one at all knew him
for
what he was. They saw only the boy, the de-
serted
son, and judged him worthless.
Aren't
I worthless?
But the
Lion wanted him.
50
Jennifer Roberson
Kellin
caught his breath. Would the Lion want
to eat
a worthless boy?
Perhaps
he was worthless, and that fact alone
was why
the Lion might want to eat him.
To save
Homana from a worthless Mujhar.
With an
inarticulate cry, Kellin tore free of the
guardsman's
hand and ran headlong from the
tent.
He ignored the shouts of the Mujharan guard
and the
blurted outcry of his tutor. He tore free of
them
all, even of the tent, and clawed his way out
of pale
shadow into the brilliance of the day.
"Lion—"
Kellin blurted, then darted into the
crowd
even as the man came after him.
Run—
He ran.
Where—?
He did
not know.
Away
from the Lion—
Away,
—won't
let the Lion eat me— He tripped and fell,
facedown,
banging his chin into a cobble hard
enough
to make himself bite his lip. Blood filled
his
mouth; Kellin spat, lurched up to hands and
knees,
then pressed the back of one hand against
his
lower lip to stanch the bleeding. The hand
bled,
too; Rogan's bandage had come off. The cut
palm
and his cut mouth stung.
It
smells— It did. He had landed full-force in a
puddle
of horse urine. His jerkin was soaked with
it; the
knees of his leggings, ground into cobbles
as
well, displayed the telltale color and damp tex-
ture of
compressed horse droppings.
Aghast,
Kellin scrambled to his feet. He was filthy.
m
addition to urine and droppings weighting his
leathers,
there was mud, grease, and blood; and
he had
lost his belt entirely somewhere in his mad
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOIVS
51
rush to
escape the Lion. No one, seeing him now
would
predict his heritage or House.
"Rogan?"
He turned, thinking of his tutor in-
stead
of the Lion; recalled the fortune-teller's
words,
and how Rogan had reacted- And the
watchdogs;
where were they? Had he left everyone
behind?
Where am—
Someone
laughed. "Poor boy," said a woman's
voice,
"have you spoiled all your Summerfair
finery?"
Startled,
he gaped at her. She was blonde and
pretty,
in a coarse sort of way, overblown and
overpainted.
Blue eyes sparkled with laughter; a
smile
displayed crooked teeth.
Humiliated,
Kellin stared hard at the ground
and
tried to uncurl his toes. / don't want to be here.
I want
to go HOME.
"What
a pretty blush; as well as I could do,
once."
Skirts rustled faintly. "Come here."
Reluctantly
Kellin glanced up slantwise, mark-
ing the
garish colors of her multiple skirts. One
hand
beckoned. He ignored it, thinking to turn his
back on
her, to leave the woman behind, but the
laughter
now was muted, replaced with a gentler
facade.
"Come."
she said. "Has happened to others,
too."
She
wasn't his granddame, who welcomed him
into
her arms when he needed a woman's comfort,
but she
was a woman, and she spoke kindly
enough
now. This time when she beckoned, he an-
swered.
She slipped a hand beneath his bloodied
chin,
forcing him to look up into her own face. At
closer
range her age increased, yet her eyes seemed
kind
enough in an assessive sort of way. Her hair
was not
really blonde, he discovered by staring at
exposed
roots, and the faintest hint of dark fuzz
smudged
her upper lip.
52
Jennifer Roberson
The
woman laughed. "Don't blush quite so
much,
boy. You'll have me thinking you've never
seen a
whore before."
He
gaped. "You are a light woman?"
"A
light—" She broke off, brows lifting. "Is that
the
genuine accent of aristrocracy?" She leaned
closer,
enveloping him in a powerful, musky scent.
"Or
are you like me: a very good mimic?"
She is
NOT like granddame after all. Kellin
tugged
at his ruined jerkin, than blotted again at
his
split lip. She watched him do it, her smile less
barbed,
and at last she took her hand from his
chin,
which relieved him immeasurably. "Lady—"
"No,
not that. Never that." Her hand strayed
into
his hair, lingered in languorous familiarity.
Her
touch did not now in the least remind him of
his
grandmother's. "Why is it," the woman began,
"that
boys and men have thicker hair and longer
lashes?
The gods have truly blessed you, my green-
eyed
little man." The other hand touched his leg-
gings.
"And how little are we in things that really
matter?"
Kellin
nearly squirmed. "I—I must go."
"Not
so soon, I pray you." She mocked the elab-
orate
speech of highborn Homanans. "We hardly
know
one another."
That
much Kellin knew; he'd heard the horse-
boys
speaking of whores. "I have no money."
Rogan
had plenty, but he doubted the Mujhar
would
approve of it being spent on women-
The
whore laughed. "Well, then, what have you?
Youth.
Spirit. Pretty eyes, and a prettier face—
you'll
have women killing over you, when you're
grown."
Her eyes lost their laughter. "Men would
kill
for you now." The smile fell off her face. "And
innocence,
which is something everyone in the
Midden
has lost. If I could get some back, steal it
back,
somehow—"
A
TAPESTRY OF Uoivs 53
Kellin
took a single step backward. Her hand
latched
itself into his filthy jerkin; she did not
seem to
notice her hand now was also soiled. "I
must
go," he tried again.
"No,"
she said intently. "No. Stay a while,
Share
with me youth and innocence—"
Kellin
wrenched away from her. As he ran, he
heard
her curse.
This
time when he fell, Kellin managed to avoid
urine
and droppings, landing instead against hard
stone
cobbles after his collision with a woman car-
rying a
basket. He feared at first she might also
be a
whore, but she had none of the ways or coarse
speech.
She was angry, aye, because he had upset
her
basket; and then she was screaming something
about a
thief—
"No!"
Kellin cried, thinking he could explain
and set
everything to rights—the Prince of Ho-
mana, a
thief?—but the woman kept on shrieking,
ignoring
his denials, and he saw the men, big men
all,
hastening toward him,
He ran
again, and was caught. The man grabbed
him by
one arm and hoisted him into the air so
that
one boot toe barely scraped the cobblestones.
"Give
over, boy. No more kicking and biting."
Kellin,
who had not thought to bite, squirmed
in the
tight grasp. He intensely disliked being
hung by
one wrist like a side of venison. "I am
not a
boy, I'm a prince—"
"And
I'm the Mujhar of Homana." The man
waited
until Kellin's struggles subsided. "Done,
are
we?"
"Let
me go!"
"Not
until I have the ropes on you."
Kellin
stiffened. "Ropes!"
"I
and others like me are sworn to keep the rab-
ble off
the streets during Summerfair," the big
54
Jennifer Roberson
man
explained. "That includes catching all the lit-
tle
thieves who prey on innocent people."
"I'm
not a thief, you ku'reshtin—"
The big
hand closed more tightly. "Round speech
for a
boy, by your tone."
"I
am the Prince of Homana!"
The man
sighed. He was very targe, and red-
haired;
he was also patently unimpressed by Kel-
lin's
protests. "Save your breath, boy. It only
means a
night under a decent roof, instead of some
alley
or doorway. And you'll be fed, so don't be
complaining
so much when you're better off now
than
you were."
"But
I'm—" Kellin broke off in astonishment as
the men
looped a rope around one wrist, then the
other-
Prince or no, he was snugged tight as a
gamebird.
"Wait!"
The man
nodded patiently. "Come along, then,
and
I'll see to it you have a decent meal and a
place
to sleep. I'll free you first thing in the morn-
ing if
anyone comes to fetch you."
The
furious challenge was immediate. "If I had
a
lir—"
"What?
Cheysuli, too?" The giant laughed, though
not
unkindly. "Well, I'm thinking not. I've never
yet
seen one with green eyes, nor leathers quite so
filthy."
Three
Kellin
did not know Mujhara well. In fact, he
knew
very little about the city he would one day
rule,
other than the historical implications Rogan
had
discussed so often; and even then he was igno-
rant of
details because he had not listened well.
He
wanted to do something much more exciting
than
spend his days speaking of the past. The fu-
ture
attracted him more, even though Rogan ex-
plained
again and again that the past affected that
future;
that a man learning from the past often
avoided
future difficulties.
Because
he was so closely accompanied each
time he
left Homana-Mujhar, Kellin had come to
rely on
others to direct him. Left to his own de-
vices,
he would have been lost in a moment as he
was
lost now. The big red-haired man led him like
a
leashed dog through the winding closes, alleys,
and
streets, turning this way and that, until Kellin
could
not so much as tell which direction was
which.
He felt
the heat of shame as he was led unrelent-
ingly.
Don't look at me— But they did, all the peo-
ple,
the Summerfair crowds thronging the closes,
alleys,
and streets. Kellin thought at first if he
called
out to them and told them who he was, if
he
asked for their support, they would give it
gladly.
But the first time he tried, a man laughed
at him
and called him a fool for thinking they
55
S6
Jennifer Koherson
would
believe such a lie; would the Prince of Ho-
mana
wear horse piss on his clothing?
Don't
look at me. But they looked. Inwardly, Kel-
lin
died a small, quiet death, the death of dignity.
/ just
want to go home.
"Here,"
his captor said. "You'll spend the night
inside."
The giant opened the door, took Kellin
inside,
then handed over the "leash" to another
man,
this one brown-haired and brown-eyed, show-
ing
missing teeth. "Tried to steal a goodwife's bas-
ket of
ribbons,"
"No!"
Kellin cried. "I did not. I fell against her,
no
more, and knocked it out of her hands. What
would I
want with ribbons?"
The
gap-toothed man grinned. "To sell them,
most
like. At a profit, since you paid nothing for
them in
the first place."
Kellin
was outraged. "I did not steal her ribbons!"
"Had
no chance to," the redhead laughed. "She
saw to
that, with her shrieking."
Kellin
drew himself up, depending on offended
dignity
and superior comportment to put an end
to the
intolerable situation. Plainly he declared, "I
am the
Prince of Homana."
He
expected apologies, respect, and got neither.
The two
men exchanged amused glances. The gap-
toothed
Homanan nodded. "As good a liar as a
thief,
isn't he? Only that's not so good, is it, since
you're
here?"
Courage
wavered; Kellin shored it up with a
desperate
condescension. "I am here with my
tutor
and four guardsman, four of the Mufharan
Guard."
He hoped it would make a suitable im-
pression,
invoking his grandfather's personal com-
pany.
"Go and ask them; they will tell you."
"Wild
goose chase," said the redhead. "Waste of
time."
Desperation
nearly engulfed injured pride. "Go
A
TAPESTRY OF Lims S7
and
ask," Kellin directed. "Go to Homana-Mujhar.
My
grandsire will tell you the truth."
"Your
grandsire. The Mujhar?" Gap-tooth
laughed,
slanting a bright glance at the giant.
Kellin
bared his teeth, desiring very badly to
prove
the truth of his claims. But his leathers were
smeared
with filth, his bottom lip swollen, and his
face,
no doubt, as dirty. "My boots," he said
sharply,
sticking out one foot. "Would a thief have
boots
like these?"
The
redhead grinned. "If he stole them."
"But
they fit. Stolen boots would not fit."
Gap-tooth
sighed. "Enough of your jabber, brat.
You'll
not be harmed, just kept until someone
comes
to fetch you."
"But
no one knows where I am! How can they
come?"
"If
you're the Prince of Homana, they'll know."
The
giant's eyes were bright. "D'ye think I'm a
fool?
You've my eyes, boy, plain Homanan green,
not the
yellow of a Cheysuli. Next time you want
to
claim yourself royalty, you'd best think better
of
it."
Kellin
gaped. "My granddame is Ermnish, with
hair
red as yours—redder! I have her eyes—"
"Your
granddame—and your mother to boot—
was
likely a street whore, brat ... no more chatter
from
you. Into the room. We're not here to harm
you,'just
keep you." The red-haired giant pushed
Kellin
through another door as Gap-tooth un-
locked
it. He was dumped unceremoniously onto
a thin
pallet in a small, stuffy room, then the door
was
locked.
For a
moment Kellin lay sprawled in shock,
speechless
in disbelief. Then he realized they'd
stripped
the rope from his wrists. He scrambled
up and
hammered at the door.
"They
won't open it. They won't."
58
Jennifer Roberson
Kellin
jerked around, seeing the boy in the cor-
ner for
the first time. The light was poor, admitted
only
through a few holes high up in the walls. The
boy
slumped against the wall with the insouciance
of a
longtime scofflaw. His face was thin, grimy,
and
bruised. Lank blond hair hung into his eyes,
but his
grin was undiminished by Kellin's blatant
surprise.
"Urchin,"
the boy said cheerfully, answering the
unasked
question.
Kellin
was distracted by newborn pain in his
cut
hand, which now lacked Rogan's bandage. He
frowned
to see the slices were packed with dirt
and
other filth; wiping it against his jerkin merely
caused
the slices to sting worse. Scowling, he
asked,
"What kind of a name is that?"
"Isn't
a name. Haven't got one- That's what they
call
me, when they call me." The boy shoved a
wrist
through his hair. His eyes were assessive far
beyond
his years, "Good leathers, beneath the dirt
.. .
good boots, too- No thief, are ye?"
Kellin
spat on the cuts and wiped them again
against
his jerkin. "Tell them that."
Urchin
grinned. "Won't listen- All they want is
the
copper."
"Copper?"
"Copper
a head for all the thieves they catch."
Kellin
frowned, giving up on his sore hand.
"Who
pays it?"
Urchin
shrugged. "People. They're fed up wi"
getting
their belt-purses stolen and pockets picked."
He
waggled fingers. "Some o' them took up a col-
lection,
like . ,. for each thief caught during Sum-
merfair,
they pay a copper a head- Keeps the
streets
clean of us, y'see, and they can walk out
without
fearing for pockets and purses." Urchin
grinned.
"But if you're good enough, nobody catches
you."
A
TAPESTRY OF Lio\s 59
"You
got caught."
"Couldn't
run fast enough with this." Urchin ex-
tended
a swollen, discolored foot and pufty ankle.
"Dog
set on me." He was patently unconcerned by
the
condition of foot and ankle. "If you're not a
thief,
why're you here?"
Kellin
grimaced. "I was running. They thought
it was
because I was stealing."
"Never
run in Mujhara," the boy advised sol-
emnly,
then reconsidered. "Unless you be a fine
Homanan
lord, and then no one will bother you
no
matter what you do,"
Kellin
glanced around. On closer inspection, the
room
was no better than his first impression, a
small
imprisonment, empty save for them. "Not
so many
copper pieces today."
Urchin
shrugged. "The other room is full. They'll
put the
new catches in here. You're the first, after
me."
Kellin
peeled a crust of blood from his chin.
"How
do we get out?"
"Wait
till someone pays your copper. Otherwise
we stay
here till Summerfair is over, because then
it
won't matter."
"That's
three days from now!"
Urchin
shrugged, surveying his injured foot. "Be
hard to
steal with this."
Kellin
stared at the swollen limb, marking the
angry
discoloration and the streaks beginning to
make
their way up Urchin's leg. It was a far worse
injury
than the few slices in his hand. "You need
that
healed."
Urchin's
mouth hooked down. "Leeches cost
coin.
Morbidly
fascinated by the infected limb, Kellin
knelt
down to look more closely. "A Cheysuli could
heal
this, and he would cost nothing."
Urchin
snorted.
60
Jennifer Roberson
"He
could," Kellm insisted. "/ could, had I a
Ur."
Urchin's
eyes widened. "You say you're Cheysuli?"
"I
am. But I can't heal yet." Kellin shrugged a
little.
"Until I have a Hr, I'm just like you." The
wound
stank of early putrefaction. "My grandsire
will heal
you. He has a lir; he can." And he will
heal my
wounds, too.
Urchin
grunted. "Will he come here to pay your
copper?"
Kellin
considered it. "No," he said finally, feel-
ing
small inside. "I think Rogan will do that, and
I doubt
he will like it."
"Few
men like parting with coin."
"Oh,
it is not the coin. He will not like why he
has to
do it, and it will give him fuel to use against
me for
months." Kellin cast a glance around the
gloomy
room. "He would say I deserved this, to
teach
me a lesson. But it was the Lion—" He
looked
quickly at Urchin, breaking off.
The
Homanan boy frowned. "What lion?"
"Nothing."
Kellin left Urchin's side and re-
treated
to a pallet near the door. He pressed shoul-
der
blades into the wall. "He will come for me."
"That
tutor?" Urchin's mouth twisted. "I had a
tutor,
once. He taught me how to steal."
Kellin
shrugged. "Then stop."
"Stop."
Urchin stared. "D'ye think it's so easy?
D'ye
think I asked the gods for this life?"
"No
one would ask it. But why do you stay in
it?"
"No
choice." Urchin picked at his threadbare
tunic.
His thin face was pinched as if his leg
pained
him. "No mother, no father, no kin." His
expression
hardened. "I'm a thief, and a good one."
He
looked at his swollen ankle- "Sometimes."
Kellin
nodded. "Then I will have Rogan pay
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 61
your
copper, too, and you will come back with
me."
Urchin's
dirt-mottled face mocked. "With you."
"To
Homana-Mujhar."
"Liar."
Kellin
laughed. "As good a liar as a thief."
Urchin
turned his shoulder: eloquent dismissal.
With
his pallet nearest the door, Kellin awoke
each
time a new arrival was pushed into the room
throughout
the night. At first he had been in-
trigued
by the number and their disparate "crimes,"
but
soon enough boredom set in, and later weari-
ness;
he fell asleep not long after a plain supper
of
bread and thin gravy was served, and slept with
many
interruptions until dawn.
The
commotion was distant at first, interesting
only
the few recently imprisoned souls who hoped
for
early release. That hope had faded in Kellin,
who
found himself reiterating to a dubious Urchin
that
indeed he was who he said he was, and was
restored
only when he heard-the voice through the
door:
the red-haired man, clearly frightened as
well as
astonished.
Kellin
grinned at the young thief through pale
dawn.
"Rogan. I told you, Urchin."
The
door was opened and a man came in. It
wasn't
Rogan at all, but the Mujhar himself, fol-
lowed
by the giant.
Kellin
scrambled hastily to his feet. "Grandsire!
You?"
The
giant was very pale. "My lord, how could
we
know? Had we known—"
Stung
by the outrage, Kellin turned on the man.
"You
knew," he declared. "I told you. You just
didn't
believe me." He looked at his grandfather.
"None
of them believed me."
"Nor
would I," Brennan said calmly. He arched
62
Jennifer Robersoa
a
single eloquent brow. "Have you taken to swim-
ming in
the midden?" Yellow eyes brightened
faintly,
dispelling the barb- "Or was it an entirely
different
kind of Midden?"
Kellin
recalled then the whore's words, her
mention
of the Midden. It basted his face with
heat.
Such shame before his grandsire! "My lord
Mujhar
. . ." He let it trail off. Part of him was
overwhelmed
to be safe at last, while the other
part
was mortified that his grandsire should see
him so.
"No," he said softly, squirming inside
filthy
leathers. "I fell ... I did not mean to get so
dirty."
"Nor
so smelly." Brennan's gaze was steady.
"Explain
yourself, if you please."
Kellin
looked at the giant. "Didn't he tell you?"
"He
told me. So did the other man. Now it is
for
you."
Kellin
was hideously aware of everyone else in
the
room, but especially of his grandfather, his
tall,
strong, Cheysuli grandfather, whose dignity,
purpose,
and sense of self was so powerful as to
flatten
everyone else, certainly a ten-year-old grand-
son.
The Mujhar himself, not Rogan, standing in
the
doorway with the sunrise on his back, ^r-gold
gleaming
brightly, silver in his hair, stern face
even
sterner. The wealth on his arms alone would
keep
Urchin and others like him alive for years.
In a
small voice, Kellin suggested, "It would be
better
done in private."
"No
doubt. I want it done here."
Kellin
swallowed heavily. He told his grandsire
the
whole of it, even to the woman.
Brennan
did not smile, but his mouth relaxed.
Tension
Kellin had been unaware of until that mo-
ment
left the Mujhar's body. "And what have you
learned
from this?"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
63
Kellin
looked straight back. "Not to run in
Mujhara."
After a
moment of startled silence, the Mujhar
laughed
aloud, folding bare bronzed arms across
his
chest with no pretensions at maintaining a
stem
facade, even before the others. Kellin gaped
in
surprise; what was so amusing, that his grand-
sire
would sacrifice his dignity before the others
without
hesitation?
"I
had expected something else entirely." Bren-
nan
said at last, "but I cannot fault your state-
ment-
There is truth in it." Amusement faded.
"But
there is also Rogan."
Kellin's
belly clenched. He nodded and stored
at his
boot toes. "Rogan," he echoed. "I meant not
to make
him worry."
"Tell
him that."
"I
will."
"Now."
Kellin
looked up from the ground and saw
Rogan
in the doorway just behind his grandsire.
The
man's face was haggard and gray, his eyes
reddened
from sleeplessness. Kellin thought then
of the
aforementioned repercussions, Rogan's own
question
regarding what would become of him
and the
Mujharan Guard if harm came to Kellin.
"I
am unharmed," Kellin said quickly, grasping
the
repercussions as he never had before. "I am
whole,
save for my lip, and that I got myself when
I fell
down."
"And
your cut hand; Rogan told me." Brennan
extended
his own. "Let me see."
Kellin
held out his hand and allowed his grand-
sire to
examine the cuts. "Filthy," the Mujhar
commented.
"It will want a good cleaning when
we
return, but will heal of its own." His yellow
eyes
burned fiercely. "You must know not to test
64
Jennifer Robersoa
others,
Kellin. No matter the provocation. If you
had not
been so quick—"
"But
I knew I was," Kellin insisted; couldn't any
of them
see? "I watched him. I watched the knife.
I knew
what it would do,"
Brennan's
mouth crimped. "We will speak of
this
another time. For now, I charge you to recall
that
for such a serious transgression as this one,
you
endanger others as well as yourself."
Kellin
looked again at Rogan. He tugged ineffec-
tually
at his ruined jerkin. "I am sorry."
The
tutor nodded mutely, seemingly diminished
by the
tension of the night. Or was it the Lion,
biting
now at Rogan?
"Well."
The Mujhar cast a glance around the
room.
"It is to be expected that you smell like the
Midden,
or a midden—though I suppose it is less
your
own contribution than that of everyone else."
Kellin
nodded, scratching at the fleas that had
vacated
his pallet to take up residence in his
clothing.
Brennan
considered him. "I begin to think you
are
more like my rujholli than I had believed
possible."
It
astonished Kellin, who had never thought of
such a
thing. "I am?"
"Aye.
Hart and Corin would have gotten them-
selves
thrown into a room just like this, or worse,
for
about the same reason—or perhaps for a crime
even
worse than thievery—and then waited for me
to
fetch them out." He looked his grandson up and
down.
"Are you not young to begin?"
Ashamed
again, Kellin stared hard at the ground.
Softly,
he said, "I did not expect you to come."
"Hart
and Corin did. And they were right; I al-
ways
came." Brennan sighed. "You did expect
someone."
A
TAPESTRY OF LIOIVS 65
t
^
"What
else?" It startled Kellin. "You would not
leave
me here!"
Brennan
eyed him consideringly. "I did leave
you
here. I knew where you were last night."
"Last
night\" It was preposterous. "You left me
here
all night?"
Brennan
exchanged a glance with Rogan. "In
hopes
you might profit from it, albeit there were
guardsmen—and
a Cheysuli—just across the street."
His
eyes narrowed. "You said you have learned
not to
run in Mujhara . .. well, I suppose that is
something."
His tone was ironic. "Surely more
than
Hart or Corin learned."
"Grandsire—"
"But
whether you learned anything is beside the
point.
Your granddame made it clear to me that
if I
did not fetch you out at once come dawn, she
would
have my head." He smiled slightly. "As you
see, it
is still attached."
Kellin
nodded, not doubting that it was; nor his
granddame's
fiery Erinnish temper.
"So
Rogan and I are here to fetch you, very
much as
you expected, and will now take you back
to
Homana-Mujhar, where I shall myself person-
ally
supervise the bath just to make certain the
body in
it 15 that of my grandson, and not some
filthy
street urchin masquerading as the Prince of
Homana."
"Urchin!"
Kellin cried, turning. "We have to
take
him with us!"
"Who?"
"Urchin.
Him." Kellin pointed to the astonished
boy. "I
told him you would pay his copper and
bring
him with us—well, I said Rogan would—"
Kellin
cast a glance at his tutor, "—so you could
heal
him."
"Volunteering
my services, are you, you little
wretch?"
But Brennan crossed the room and knelt
66 Jennifer
Roberson
down by
the boy thief. "How are you hurt? Ah, so
I see.
Here—"
"No!"
Urchin jerked away the infected foot.
"There
is no need to fear me," Brennan said qui-
etly.
"I will look, no more; if you are in need of
healing,
it shall be done in Homana-Mujhar."
"I
can't go there\"
"Why
not?" Brennan examined the infected
bite.
"Walls and a roof, no more .. . you are as
welcome
as Kellin."
"I
am?"
"For
now. Come. Trust me."
Kellin
looked at his grandfather through Ur-
chin's
eyes: tall, dark warrior with silvered hair;
yellow
eyes clear and unwavering as a wolf's, with
the
same promised fierceness; Ur-goid banding
bared
arms; the soft, black-dyed leathers clothing
a
powerful body. He was old in years to Kellin,
but age
sat lightly on Cheysuli; Brennan was still
fit and
graceful, with a cat's eloquent ease of
movement.
"He
won't hurt you," Kellin explained matter-
of-factly.
"He is my grandsire."
Brennan
smiled. "The highest of compliments,
and
surety of my goodwill."
Urchin's
eyes were wide. "But—I'm a thief."
"Former
thief, I should hope. Come with me to
Homana-Mujhar,
and you need never steal again."
The
Mujhar grinned. "Where you may also shed
forty
layers of dirt, ten years' worth of fleas, and
fill
that hollow belly."
"No!"
Urchin cried as Brennan made to pick
him up.
"You'll catch my fleas!"
"Then
I shall bathe also."
"I
am too heavy!"
"You
are not heavy at all." Brennan turned
toward
the door, toward the red-haired giant. "I
will
have the fines paid for everyone in this room,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 67
and the
other; you will see to it they are released
at
once. But I sympathize with those who fear for
their
purses; if any of these are caught again, keep
them here
till Summerfair is ended: in the name
of the
Mujhar." He smiled briefly at Kellin, slip-
ping
into the Old Tongue. "Tu'halla dei." He cast a
glance
at gape-mouthed faces, then settled Urchin
more
firmly against his chest. "The Guard has
horses
waiting. You'll ride behind me."
"My
lord," Rogan said quietly, following his
lord
from the room as Kellin slipped out. "There
is the
matter of the fortune-teller."
"Ah."
Brennan's face assumed a grim mask. He
glanced
down at Kellin as he carried Urchin into
the
street. "What did he say to you, Kellin?"
Kellin
shrugged. "I couldn't understand it all.
They
were just—words."
"Tell
me the words anyway."
Kellin
squirmed self-consciously; he did not
want to
admit to his fear of the Lion. "Cynric."
Brennan's
mask slipped, baring naked shock be-
neath.
"Cynric? He said that?"
"A
name." Kellin frowned. "And a sword, and a
bow,
and a—knife?"
"Gods,"
Brennan whispered. "Not my grandson,
too."
•
It
terrified Kellin to see his grandfather so
stricken.
"Not me?" he asked. "Why do you say
that?
Grandsire—what does it mean'?"
"It
means—" Brennan's mouth tightened into a
thin,
flat line. "It means we will go visit your
fortune-teller—who
speaks to you of Cynric—be-
fore we
go home."
"Why?
What did he mean?" Desperation crept
in; did
it have to do with the Lion? "What does
'Cynric'
mean?"
"
'Cynric'?" The Mujhar sighed as he handed Ur-
chin to
a guardsman and ordered him put up on
68
Jennifer Roberson
his own
mount. "It is a name, Kellin ... an old,
familiar
name I have not heard in ten years. Since
your
jehan first brought you to us—"
"Before
he left." Kellin blurted it out all at once;
bitterness
encased it. "Before he left\"
"Aye."
Brennan rubbed absently at the flesh of
a face
suddenly grown old. "Before he left." He
looked
at Rogan. "Can you direct us?"
Rogan
glanced very briefly at Kellin before look-
ing
back to the Mujhar: a subtle question to which
the boy
was not blind, though adults believed he
was.
"My lord, perhaps later would be better."
"No."
Brennan threaded reins through his hand,
turning
toward his mount. "No, I think now. He
has
spoken the name to Kellin without knowing
who he
was—or so you would have me believe...."
He
patted Urchin's stiff thigh, then climbed up
easily.
"And even if he did know who Kellin was,
he also
knew the name. I want to ask him how he
came by
it, and why he speaks of it now to a ten-
year-old
boy."
"Aye."
Rogan moved like an old man toward his
own mount.
"Of course, my lord, I can direct you
to him
at once. Although I must warn you—" the
tutor
mounted with effort, as if his bones hurt,
"—he
smokes husath. It is possible . .." He made
a
gesture with one hand that suggested such a
man was
unpredictable, and his employment.
Brennan's
face was grim. "Aidan never did. But
he knew
the name, also."
"Grandsire?"
Kellin stood in the street, staring
up. It
seemed to him Urchin had usurped his
place.
"Is there a horse for me?"
"Rogan's,"
his grandfather told him, "so you
may say
more privately how sorry you are for the
worry
you caused."
Ashamed,
Kellin nodded. "Aye, grandsire. I will."
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 69
Summerfair
revelers still gathered in the streets,
making
it difficult for a mounted party to pass
through;
Brennan gave orders that his presence
not be
cried, since he wanted to come upon the
fortune-teller
unaware, and so the Mujharan Guard
merely
suggested people move, rather than forcing
it. The
journey took longer than Kellin recalled to
reach
the faded, striped tent, but then he could
not
remember for how long he had run.
"Here,"
Rogan murmured.
The cat
and the dog were gone- Flies sheathed
the
doorflap. "My lord." One of the guardsmen
swung
down and then another. Kellin watched as
two of
the crimson-tabarded men entered the tent
while
the other two stood very close to the Mujhar
and his
heir,
One of
the men was back almost immediately,
face
set grimly. "My lord."
Brennan
hooked his leg frontwise over the pom-
mel to
avoid Urchin and slid off, throwing glitter-
ing,
gold-banded reins to Rogan. "Stay here with
Kellin."
"Grandsire!"
The
Mujhar spared barely a glance. "Stay here,
Kellin-"
It
burst from Kellin's throat: "Don't let the Lion
eat
you!"
Brennan,
at the doorflap, turned sharply. "What
do you
mean?"
Oh,
gods, now it was too late; he had let it slip;
he had
said it; and his grandsire would laugh; all
of them
would laugh—
"Kellin."
Kellin
pressed himself against Rogan's back.
"Nothing,"
he whispered.
Rogan
stirred. "A childhood tale, my lord. Noth-
ing
more."
70
Jennifer Robersoa
Brennan
nodded after a moment's hesitation,
then
went into the tent.
Don't
let the Lion eat him—
"Kellin."
Rogan's voice, very soft. "What is this
lion?"
"Just—the
Lion. You know. I told you."
"There
is no lion in there."
"You
don't know that. The fortune-teller said—"
"—too
much," Rogan declared. "Entirely too
much."
"Aye,
but ... Rogan, there really is a lion. The
Lion—he
wants to eat Homana."
"A
dog bit my ankle," Urchin offered. "But
that's
not the same as a lion biting it."
Kellin
stared at him. "The Lion bit my harani.
And he
died."
Rogan
began quietly, "Kellin, I think—"
But he
never finished because the Mujhar came
out
again, yellow eyes oddly feral as he stared at
his
grandson. "Kellin, you must tell me what the
fortune-teller
said. Everything."
"About
Cynric?"
"Everything."
The Mujhar's mouth was crimped
tight
at the comers. "About the lions, too."
It
alarmed Kellin. "Why? Was it the Lion? Did
it eat
the fortune-teller?"
"Kellin—wait—''
But
Kellin slid off over the horse's rump and
darted
between his grandfather and the doorflap.
He
stumbled over a rucked-up rug just inside,
caught
his precarious balance, then stopped short.
Sprawled
on his back amid blood-soaked cush-
ions
and carpets lay the fortune-teller. A gaping,
ragged
hole usurped the place his throat had been.
Four
Torches
illuminated the corridor. Kellin crept
through
it silently, taking care to make no sound;
he
wanted no one to discover him in the middle
of the
night, lest they send him off to bed before
his
task could be accomplished.
Ahead—
He drew in a deep breath to fill his
hollow
chest, then turned the comer. Massive sil-
ver
doors threw back redoubled torchlight, so
bright
he nearly squinted. They must have polished
them
today. But that was not important. Impor-
tance
lay beyond, within the Great Hall itself.
Ten more
steps, and he was there. Kellin filled
his
chest with air again, .then leaned with all his
weight
against the nearest door. Hinges oiled, too.
It
cracked open mutely, then gave as he leaned
harder,
until he could slide through the space into
the dimness
of the Great Hall.
He
paused there, just inside, and stared hard
into
darkness. Moonlight slanted through stained
glass
casements, providing dim but multicolored
illumination.
Kellin used it in place of torchlight,
fixing
his gaze upon the beast.
There—
And it was, as always: crouched upon
the
dais as if in attack, rampant wood upon gold-
veined
marble, teeth bared in ferocity, gilt gleam-
ing in
mouth and eyes.
There—
And him here, pressed against the silver
doors,
shoulder blades scraping-
71
72
liinifil Hoberaoa
Twice
he had come, since lan had died. First, to
chop
the Lion into bits; again to bum the tapestry
hanging
just behind, lest the Lion summon confed-
erates
in his bid to devour the Mujhar, the queen,
and
perhaps Kellin himself.
The
fortune-teller said so— Kellin shivered. He
came
now with no ax, no torch to set name to
tapestry,
but alone and unweaponed, intending no
harm at
all this time but warning in harm's place,
to make
the Lion know.
He
sucked in a noisy breath, then set out on the
long
journey. Step by step by step, pacing out the
firepit,
until he reached the dais. Until he faced
the
beast.
Kellin
balanced lightly, distributing weight as
he had
been taught: upon the balls of his feet,
knees
slightly bent, arms loose at his sides, so he
could
flee if required, or fight-
"You,"
he exhaled. "Lion."
The
throne offered no answer. Kellin swallowed
heavily,
staring fixedly at the shadow-shrouded
beast.
"Do
you hear?" he asked. He disliked the quaver
in his
tone and altered it, improving volume also.
"It
is I: Kellin, who will be Mujhar one day. Kellin
of
Homana." He leaned forward slightly, to make
certain
the Lion heard. "I am not alone anymore."
Still
there was no answer.
Kellin
wet his lips, then expelled the final warn-
ing:
"I have a friend."
"Kellin?"
He
twitched; was it the Lion? No— He spun.
"Urchin!"
The
Homanan boy squeezed his way through the
doors
just as Kellin had done. "Why are you—"
He
broke it off, staring beyond Kellin. "Is that the
Lion
Throne?"
A
TAPESTKY OF LHWS
73
Kellin
was very aware of the weight crouched
behind
him. "Aye."
Urchin's
steps were steady as he approached,
showing
no signs of limp. The Mujhar's healing a
week before
had proved efficient as always; once
over
the shock of being touched by legendary
Cheysuli
magic. Urchin had recovered his custom-
ary
spirit. "What are you doing here? Talking to
it?"
Before
Urchin, Kellin did not feel defensive.
"Warning
it."
"About
what?" Urchin arrived before the dais,
brushing
aside still-lank but now-clean hair. "Does
it
answer?"
"It
eats people." Kellin slanted Urchin a glance.
"It
killed my su'fali."
"Your
what?"
"Su'fali.
Uncle—well, great-uncle. It bit him,
and he
died." The pain squeezed a little, aching
inside
his chest. "Two springs ago."
"Oh."
Urchin stared at the throne: wary fascina-
tion.
"You mean—it comes-alive?"
It was
hard to explain. Others had told him not
to
speak such nonsense, and he had locked it all
within.
Now Urchin wanted the truth. It was eas-
ier to
say nothing. "It wants my grandsire next."
"It
does?" After a startled reassessment, Urchin
frowned.
"How do you know?"
"I
just know. In here." Kellin touched his chest.
"And
the fortune-teller said so. It ate him, too."
"Rogan
said—"
"Rogan
said what the Mujhar told him to say."
Kellin
scowled. "They don't want to believe me.
They
didn't believe me when I told them about
lan,
and they don't believe me now." He looked
hard at
Urchin. "Do you believe me?"
Urchin
blinked. "I don't know. It's wood—"
"It's
the Lion, and it wants to eat Homana."
74
Jennifer Koberson
Kellin
lifted his chin. "I told it I had a friend, now;
that I
wasn't alone anymore."
Urchin
blinked. "You mean—me?"
"Aren't
you my friend?"
"Well—aye.
Aye, I am, but . . . you're the Prince
of
Homana."
"Princes
need friends, too." Kellin tried to keep
the
plea out of his voice.
"But
I'm only a spit-boy."
"Grandsire
will give you better when you've
learned
things," Kellin explained. "He told me it's
best if
you start there, then move up, because a
castle
is strange to you."
"It
is," Urchin agreed. He eyed the Lion again,
then
glanced back to Kellin. "Rogan doesn't teach
the
other spit-boys."
"No.
I asked grandsire because I said we were
friends."
Urchin
nodded, looking around the massive
Great
Hall. "This will be yours, one day?"
"When
grandsire dies."
"He's
strong; he'll live a long time." Urchin
slanted
a sidelong glance at Kellin. "Why isn't
your
father here? Shouldn't he be next?"
Kellin's
belly hurt, as it often did when someone
mentioned
his father. "He gave it up. He re-
nounced
his title." His spine was rigid. Words
spilled
out, and virulence; he had learned to say
it
first, before anyone else could, "He is mad. He
lives
on an island and talks about the gods."
Urchin
blinked. "The priests do that all the
time,
and they're not mad."
"My
father sees things. Visions. He has fits."
Kellin
shrugged, trying not to show how much it
hurt.
Urchin was his friend, but there were things
Kellin
could not share. "Grandsire says he is a
shar
tahl—that is Old Tongue for 'priest-
historian'—but
I say he is something else. Some-
A TAPESTRY
OF LIONS 75
thing
more: part priest, part warrior, part fortune-
teller—and
all fool."
"He
gave away everything?"
Kellin
nodded mutely.
"He
could have been Mujhar . . ." Urchin looked
at the
Lion again. "He could have been Mujhar.'1
"A
fool," Kellin declared. "And one day I will
tell
him. I will go to the Crystal Isle, and find him,
and
tell him."
Urchin
grinned at him. "Can I go with you?"
Kellin
smiled back. "You will be my captain of
the
guard. Commander of the Mujharan Guard,
and I
will take you everywhere."
Urchin
nodded. "Good." He stared up at the
Lion,
studied it, then drew himself up before it.
He
slanted a grin at Kellin, then turned back to
the
throne. "I am Urchin, Lion! In the name of
Kellin,
I command the Mujharan Guard! And I say
to you.
Lion, you shall set no teeth to his flesh,
nor
spill royal blood!"
It
echoed in the hall. Gilt eyes glinted faintly.
Kellin
stared at the Lion. "You see? I am not
alone
anymore."
The
Queen of Homana, in her solar, approved of
them
both. Kellin could tell. He had pleased her
by
working harder at his studies, and by being
altogether
less obdurate about learning his duties
as
Prince of Homana. When she was pleased, her
green
eyes kindled; just now, he felt the warmth
redoubled
as she smiled at him and Urchin.
"Rogan
says both of you are doing very well."
Kellin
and Urchin exchanged glances. Urchin
was
stiff, as he always was before the queen or the
Mujhar,
but his smile was relaxed and genuine.
Cleaned
up, he was altogether presentable, even
for a
spit-boy. The weeks had improved him in
many
ways.
76
Jennifer Roberson
"In
fact," the queen went on, "he told me yester-
day he
was quite impressed with both of you. Ur-
chin is
yet behind you, Kellin, but 'tis to be
expected.
He's had no proper lessons before now."
Her
expression softened as she glanced at the
taller
boy. "You are to be commended for your
diligence."
Urchin's
face reddened. "Kellin helps me."
"But
he leams on his own," Kellin put in
quickly.
"I only point out a few things here and
there.
He does most of it himself."
"I
know." Aileen of Homana had lost none of
her
vividness with the passage of time, though her
color
had dimmed a trifle from the brilliant red
of
youth to a rusted silver. But she was still Erin-
nish.
born of an island kingdom, and she still
boasted
the tenacity and fiery outspokenness that
had
nearly caused a political incident between her
realm
and Homana when she had professed to
love Niall's
third-born son in place of the prince
she was
meant to wed; Conn himself had pre-
vented
it by taking up his tahlmorra in Atvia, and
Aileen
had married Brennan after all. "He's as
quick
at his learning as he is his duties at the spit;
'twill
not be long before he outgrows the kitchens
and
enters into more personal service."
"With
me?" Kellin blurted.
Aileen
laughed. "In time, Kellin—first he must
leam
the household. Then we'll be seeing if he's
ready
to become the Prince of Homana's personal
squire."
"But
he has to be," Kellin insisted- "I want to
make
him commander of the Mujharan Guard."
"Oh?"
Rusty brows lifted. "I think Harlech
might
be wishing to keep his post."
"Oh,
not yet." Kellin waved a hand. "When he
is
older- When I am Mujhar."
Aileen's
mouth crimped only slightly. "Indeed."
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 77
She
looked at Urchin. "Do you feel yourself fit for
such
duty?"
"Not
yet," Urchin replied promptly. "But—I
will
be." He cast a sidelong glance at Kellin. "I
mean to
guard him against the Lion."
Aileen's
smiled faded. Her glance went beyond
the
boys to the man in the doorway.
"The
Lion," echoed the Mujhar; both boys swung
at
once. "The Lion is no threat, as I have said
many
times. It is a throne, no more. Symbolic of
Homana,
the Cheysuli, and our tahlmorra, which is
of no
little import—" he smiled faintly, "—but as-
suredly
it offers nothing more than the dusty odor
of
history and the burdensome weight of
tradition."
Kellin
knew better than to protest; let them be-
lieve
as they would. He knew better.
Now, so
did Urchin.
"I,
too, am pleased/' the Mujhar declared. "Rogan
has
brought good tidings of your progress." He
glanced
briefly at his wife, passing a silent mes-
sage,
then touched each boy-on the shoulder. "Now,
surely
you can find better ways to spend your time
than
with women and women's things," he
grinned
at the queen to show he meant no gibe,
"so
I suggest you be about it. Rogan has the day
to
himself and has gone into the city; I suggest
you see
if Harlech has something to teach you of
a
commander's duties."
Urchin
bowed quick acquiesence, then followed
Kellin
from the chamber.
"Wait."
Kellin stepped rapidly aside to the wall
beside
the still-open door, catching Urchin's arm
to halt
him. "Listen," he whispered.
Urchin's
expression was dubious; blue eyes flicked
in
alarm toward the door. "But—"
Kellin
mashed a silencing hand into his friend's
mouth.
He barely moved his lips. "There is some-
78
Jennifer Roberson
thing
he wants to tell her . . . something I am not
to
hear—" Kellin bit off his sentence as his grand-
mother
began speaking-
"
Tis Aidan, isn't it?" she asked tensely in the
room
beyond- "You've heard."
"A
message." The Mujhar's tone was curiously
flat,
squashed all out of shape. Without seeing his
grandsire,
Kellin heard the layered emotions: res-
ignation,
impatience, a raw desperation. "Aidan
says,
'Not yet.' "
His
granddame was not nearly so self-controlled.
"Didn't
ye tell him, then?"
"I
did. In the strongest terms possible. 'Send for
your
son,' I said, 'Kellin needs his father.' "
"And?"
"And
he says, 'Not yet." "
Urchin's
breath hissed. Kellin waved him into
silence.
"Gods,"
Aileen breathed. "Has he gone mad, as
they
say?"
"I—want
to think not. I want to disbelieve the
rumors.
I want very much to believe there is a rea-
son for
what he does."
"To
keep himself isolate—"
"He
is a shar tahl, Aileen. They are unlike other
Cheysuli—"
Her
tone was rough, as if she suppressed tears.
"There's
Erinnish in him, too, my braw boyo—or
are you
forgetting that?"
"No."
The Mujhar sighed. "He shapes others,
Aidan
says, to understand the old ways must be
altered
by the new."
"But
to deny his own son a father—"
"He
will send for Kellin, he says, when the time
is
right."
For a
long moment there was silence. Then the
Queen
of Homana muttered an oath more appro-
priate
to a soldier. "And when will it be right?
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 79
When
his son is a grown man, seated upon the
Lion
Throne Aidan himself should hold?"
The
Mujhar answered merely, with great weari-
ness,
"I do not know."
Tension
filled the silence. Then Kellin heard a
long,
breathy sigh cut off awkwardly.
"Aileen,
no—"
"Why
not?" The voice was thick, but fierce. "He
is my
son, Brennan—I'm permitted, I'm thinking,
to cry
if I wish to cry."
"Aileen—"
"I
miss him," she said. "Gods, but I miss him!
So many
years—"
"Shansu,
meijhana—"
"There
is no peace!" she cried. "I bore him in
my
body. You're not knowing what it is."
"I
am bonded in my own way—"
"With
a cat1." she said. " 'Tisn't the same, Bren-
nan.
And even if it were, you have Sleeta here. 1
have
nothing. Nothing but memories of the child
I bore,
and the boy I raised. .. ." Her voice thick-
ened
again. " 'Tisn't fair to any of us. Not to you,
to me;
and certainly not to Kellin." Her voice
paused.
"Is there no way to make him come? To
compel
him?"
"No,"
Brennan said. "He is more than our son,
more
than a jehan. He is also a shar tahl. I will
not
compel a man blessed by gods to serve a mor-
tal
desire. Not for me, nor for you—"
"For
his son?"
"No.
I will not interfere."
Taut
silence, as Kellin spun tightly away. Ur-
chin
hesitated only a moment, then hastened to
catch
up. "Kellin—"
"You
heard." It took effort not to shout. "You
heard
what he said. About my father—" It filled
his
throat, swelling tightly, until he wanted to
choke,
or scream, or cry. "He doesn't want me."
Jennifer
Roberson
ae
"That's
not what the Mujhar said. He said your
father
would send when the time was right."
Kellin
strode on stiffly. "The time will never be
right!"
"But
you don't know th—"
"I
do." Venomously. "He renounced the throne,
and
renounced me. He renounced everything"
"But
he's a priest. Don't priests do those things?"
"Not
shar tahls. Not most of them. They have
sons,
and they love them." Kellin's tone thinned,
then
wavered. He clamped down on self-possession
with
every bit of strength he had. "Someday I will
see
him, whether he wants me or no, and I will
tell
him to his face that he is not a man."
"Kellin—"
"I
will." Kellin stopped and stared fiercely at
Urchin.
"And you will come with me."
He
dreamed of gods, and fathers, and islands;
of
demanding, impatient gods; of Lions who ate
humans.
He awoke with a cry as the door swung
open,
and moved to catch up the knife he kept on
a bench
beside his bed, with which he might slay
lions.
"Kellin?"
It was Rogan, bringing with him a
cupped
candle. "Are you awake?"
Kellin
always woke easily, prepared for lions.
"Aye."
He scooched up in bed. "What is it?" His
heart
seized. Not the Lion—"
There
was tension in Rogan's tone as he came
into
the chamber, swinging shut the door behind
him. He
did not chide his charge for speaking of
the
Lion. "Kellin ..." He came forward to the bed,
bringing
the light with him. It scribed deep lines
in a
haggard face. "There is something we must
discuss."
"In
the middle of the night?"
"I
can think of no better time." A slight dryness
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
81
altered
the tension. Rogan put the candle cup on
the
bench beside the knife, then sat down on the
edge of
the huge tester bed. "My lord, I know you
are
troubled. I have known for some time. Urchin
came to
me earlier, but do not blame him; he
cares
for you, and wants you content."
"Urchin?"
Kellin was confused.
"He
told me what you both overheard today,
when
you eavesdropped on the Mujhar."
"Oh."
Only the faintest flicker of remorse pinched,
then
was consumed by remembered bitterness.
"Did
he tell you—"
Rogan
overrode. "Aye. And after much thought,
I have
decided to do what no one else will do."
The
tutor's eyes were blackened by shadows,
caved
in unreadable darkness. "I offer you the op-
portunity
to go to your father."
"To—"
Kellin sat bolt upright. "You?"
Rogan
nodded. His mouth was tight. "I make
no
attempt to explain or excuse him, my lord .. .
I
merely offer to escort you to the Crystal Isle,
where
you may ask him yourself why he has done
as he
has."
"My
father," Kellin whispered. "Jehan—" He
stared
hard into darkness. "When?"
"In
the morning."
"How?"
"We
will say we are going to Clankeep. You
wish to
take Urchin there, do you not?"
"Aye,
but—"
"I
shall tell the Mujhar you wish to introduce
Urchin
to Clankeep and the Cheysuli. He will not
refuse
you that. Only we shall go to Hondarth
instead."
"But—the
Mujharan Guard. They'll know."
"I
have prevailed upon the Mujhar to allow us
to go
without guards. You are Cheysuli, after all—
and I
know how much close confinement chafes
82
Jennifer Robersoa
the
Mujhar. He understands the need to allow you
more freedom
. .. and there has been no trouble
for
quite some time. If Clankeep were not so close,
it
would be different."
"But
won't he know? Won't he find out? It is
two
weeks' ride to Hondarth."
"It
is not unusual for a Cheysuli boy, regardless
of
rank, to desire to spend some time among his
people."
Kellin
understood at once. "But we will go to
the
Crystal Isle while he believes we are at
Clankeep!"
The
tutor's silence was eloquent.
Kellin
drew in a breath. "You will have to send
word."
"From
Hondarth. By then it will be too late for
the
Mujhar to stop us."
Kellin
looked into the beloved face. "Why?"
Rogan's
smile was ghastly. "Because it is time."
Five
They
left early, very early, with only a loaf of
bread
and a flagon of cider serving as breakfast.
Kellin,
Urchin, and Rogan made a very small
party
as they exited Homana-Mujhar before the
Mujhar
and the queen were even awake.
"Where
is Clankeep?" Urchin asked.
Kellin
flicked a glance at Rogan, then grinned
at his
Homanan friend. "We aren't going to Clan-
keep.
We are going to the Crystal Isle. To my
jehan."
Urchin
absorbed the new information. "How far
is the
Crystal Isle?"
"Two
weeks of nding," Kellin answered
promptly.
Then, evoking his Erinnish granddame,
"And
but a bit of a sail across the bay to the is-
land."
Inwardly, he said, And to my Jehan.
"Two
weeks?" Urchin scratched at his nose. "I
didn't
Imow Homana was so big."
"Aye."
Kellin grinned. "One day all of it will be
mine,
and you will help me rule it."
Urchin
was dubious. "I'm only a spit-boy."
"For
now." Kellin looked at his tutor. "Once,
Rogan
was only a man who gambled too much."
Rogan's
face grayed. Even his lips went pale.
"Who
told you that?"
Kellin
stiffened, alarmed. "Was I not to know?"
The
tutor was plainly discomfited. "You know
what
you know, my lord, but it is not a past of
S3
84
Jennifer Roberson
which
to be proud. I thought it well behind me-
When I
married—" He broke it off, abruptly, nos-
trils
pinched and white.
Alerted,
Kellin answered the scent. "You are
married?"
"I
was." Rogan's face was stiff, and his spine, c,
"She
is dead. Long dead." He guided his mount ^
with
abrupt motions, which caused the gelding to A
protest
the bit. "Before I married Tassia, I gam- a
bled
away all my coin. She broke me of the habit, |,
and
made me use my wits for something other
t
than
wagering." ^
"And
so you came to Homana-Mujhar." Kellin (
nodded
approvingly. "I recall the day." H
"So
do I, my lord." Rogan's smile was twisted.
"She
was one month dead. You were all of eight,
and
grieving for your great-uncle."
"The
Lion bit him," Kellin muttered. "He bit
him,
and lan -died,"
"How
far do we go today?" Urchin asked, oblivi-
ous to
dead kinsmen and dead wives,
"There
is a roadhouse some way out of Mujhara,
on the
Hondarth road," Rogan answered. "We will
stay
the night there."
The
common room was dim, lighted only by a
handful
of greasy tallow candles set in clay cups.
The
room stank of spilled wine, skunky ale, burned
meat,
and unwashed humanity. It crossed Kellin's
mind
briefly, who was accustomed to better, that
the
roadhouse was unworthy of them, but he
closed
his mouth on a question. They were bound
for the
Crystal Isle in absolute secrecy, and for a
boy to
complain of his surroundings would draw
the
wrong sort of attention. Instead, he breathed
through
his mouth until the stench was bearable
and
kept a sharp eye on the purse hanging at Ro-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 85
gan's
belt. He had learned that much from Urchin
who had
grown up in the streets-
"Look."
Kellin leaned close to Urchin and nudged
him with
an elbow as they slipped into the room
behind
Rogan- "See the one-eyed man?"
Urchin
nodded. "I see him."
"You've
been places I have not—what is he
doing?"
Urchin
grinned. "Dicing. See the cubes? He'll
toss
them out of the leather cup onto the table.
The
highest number wins."
Rogan
halted at a table near the center of the
room
and glanced at his two young charges. His
face
was arranged in a curiously blank expression.
"We
will sit here."
Kellin
nodded, paying little attention; he watched
the
one-eyed man as he shook the leather cup and
rolled
the dice out onto the table. The man
shouted,
laughed, then scooped up the few coins
glinting
dully in wan light.
"Look
at the loser/' Urchin whispered as he
slipped
onto a stool- "D'ye see the look? He's
angry."
Kellin
slid a glance at the other man. The loser
made no
physical motion that gave away his
anger,
but Kellin marked the tautness of his
mouth,
the bunched muscles along his jaw. Delib-
erately
the loser tossed two more coins onto the
table,
matched by the one-eyed man. Each man
tossed
dice again.
A knife
appeared, glinting dully in bad light.
The
one-eyed man, wary of the weapon displayed
specifically
for his benefit, did not immediately
reach
to gather up his winnings.
Urchin
leaned close. "He thinks the one-eyed
man is
cheating."
It
fascinated Kellin, who had never been so close
86
Jennifer Roberson
to
violence other than the Lion. "Will he kill
him?"
Urchin
shrugged. "I've seen men killed for less
reason
than a dice game."
Rogan's
lips compressed. "I should not have
brought
you in here. We should go upstairs to our
room
and have a meal sent up."
"No!"
Kellin said quickly. Then, as Rogan's
brows
arched, "I mean—should not the future
Mujhar
see all kinds of those he will rule?"
The
taut mouth loosened a little. "Perhaps. And
an
astute one will recognize that to some Homa-
nans,
the man on the Lion Throne means less than
nothing."
It was
incomprehensible to Kellin who had been
reared
in a household steeped in honor and re-
spect.
"But how can they—"
A
shadow fell across their table, distracting Kel-
lin at
once. A slender, well-formed hand—unlike
the
broad-palmed, spatulate hands of the one-eyed
man and
his angry companion—placed a wooden
casket
on the table. A subtle, muted rattle from
the
contents was loud in the sudden silence.
Kellin
glanced up at once. The man smiled
slightly,
glancing at the two boys before turning
his
attention to Rogan. He was young, neatly
dressed
in good gray tunic and trews, and his blue
eyes
lacked the dull hostility Kellin had marked
in the
dicers. Shining russet hair fell in waves to
his
shoulders. "Will you play, sir?"
Rogan
wet his lips. He moved his hands from
the
table top to his lap. "I—do not play."
"Ah,
but it will take no time at all ... and you
may
leave this table with good gold in your
purse."
An easy, mellifluous tone; a calm and be-
guiling
smile.
Kellin
glanced sharply at Rogan. He would not—
would
he? After all his dead wife had done?
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
87
But he
could see the expression in the tutor's
eyes:
Rogan desired very badly to play. The older
man's
mouth parted slightly, then compressed
again.
Rogan's gaze met the stranger's. "Very
well."
"But—"
Kellin began.
The
stranger overrode the protest easily, sliding
onto a
stool before Kellin could finish. "I am Cor-
wyth,
from Ellas. It is my good fortune that we
are
chance-met." He cast a brief glance around the
room.
"The others do not interest me, but^ou are
obviously
a man of good breeding." He spared a
smile
for Kellin and Urchin as he addressed
Rogan.
"Your sons?"
"Aye,"
Rogan said briefly; he did not so much
as
glance at Corwyth, but stared transfixed at the
casket.
It
fascinated Kellin also. A passing glance marked
nothing
more than plain dark wood polished
smooth
by time and handling, but a second glance—
and a
more intense examination—revealed the
wood
not smooth at all, b'ut carved with a shallow
frieze
of intricate runes. Inside—? Kellin leaned
forward
to peer into the mouth of the casket and
saw
only blackness. "Where are the dice?"
Corwyth
laughed softly. "Be certain they are
there."
He sat at Rogan's right hand. with Urchin
on his
right; Kellin's stool was directly across the
table.
"Have you played before?"
The
Ellasian addressed him, not Rogan; he
seemed
to know all about Rogan. Kellin shook his
head
quickly, slanting a glance at his tutor, "My—
father—does
not allow it."
"Ah,
well . , . when you are older, then." Cor-
wyth
ignored Urchin utterly as he turned his at-
tention
to Rogan. "Will you throw first, or shall
I?"
98
Rogan's
taut throat moved in a heavy swallow.
"I
must know the stakes first."
Corwyth's
smile came easily, lighting his mobile
face.
"Those you know already."
A sheen
of dampness filmed Rogan's brow. "Will
I lose,
then? Or do you play the game as if there
might
be a chance for me?"
The odd
bitterness in the older man's tone
snared
Kellin's attention instantly. But Rogan
said
nothing more to explain himself, and Cor-
wyth
answered before Kellin could think of a
proper
question.
The
Ellasian indicated the rune-carved casket
with a
flick of a fingernail. "A man makes his own
fortune,
regardless of the game."
Rogan
scrubbed his face with a sleeve-sheathed
forearm,
then swore raggedly and caught up the
casket.
He upended it with a practiced twitch of
his
wrist. Six ivory cubes fell out, and six slender
black
sticks.
All of
them were blank.
Urchin
blurted surprise. Rogan stiffened on his
bench,
transfixed by the sticks and cubes. Breath
rasped
in his throat.
"Did
you lose?" Kellin asked, alarmed by Ro-
gan's
glazed eyes.
Corwyth's
tone was odd. "How would you like
them to
read?" he asked Rogan. "Tell me. and I
shall
do it."
Rogan's
fingers gripped the edge of the table.
"And
if—if I requested the winning gambit?"
"Why,
then I should lose." Corwyth grinned and
glanced
at Kellin and Urchin. "But, after all, it is
my game,
and I think I should still find a way to
win."
His gaze returned to Rogan's face. "Do you
not
agree?"
"Kellin—"
Rogan's tone was abruptly harsh.
A
TAfwntv OF Lims
89
: ',
»•
"Kellin,
you and Urchin are to go upstairs at
once."
"No,"
Corwyth said softly. A slender finger
touched
each of the blank ivory cubes and set
them
all to glowing with a livid purple flame.
"Magic—"
Urchin whispered: dreadful fasci-
nation-
Kellin
did not look at the cubes or the black
sticks.
He stared instead at Corwyth's face, into
his
eyes, and saw no soul.
He put
out his small hand instantly and swept
the
cubes from the table, unheeding of the flame,
then
scattered all the sticks. "No," Kellin de-
clared.
"No."
Corwyth's
smile was undiminished; if anything,
it
increased to one of immense satisfaction. "Per-
ceptive,
my lord. My master has indeed done well
to send
me for you now, while you are yet Hrless
and
therefore without power. But I think for all
your
perception you fail to recognize the extent of
his
power, or mine—" his tone altered from con-
versational,
"—and that the game we initiated has
already
been played through." Smoothly he caught
Rogan's
arm in one hand. and the wristbones
snapped,
Rogan
cried out. Sweat ran from his face. His
shattered
wrist remained trapped in Corwyth's
hand,
who appeared to exert no pressure whatso-
ever
with anything but his will.
Kellin
leapt to his feet, thinking only that some-
how he
must get Rogan free; he must stop Rogan's
pain.
But the instinct was abruptly blunted, the
attempt
aborted, as Corwyth shook his head. He
will
injure Rogan worse. Kellin knew it at once.
Slowly
he resumed his seat, aware of a minute
trembling
seizing all his bones. "Who?" he asked.
"Who
is your master?"
"Lochiel,
of course." Corwyth smiled. His cor-
90
Jennifer Roberaoa
dial
attitude was undiminished by the threat he
exuded
without effort, which made the moment
worse.
"Do you know of another man who would
presume
to steal a prince?"
"Steal—"
Kellin stiffened. Me? He wants—me?
Urchin
stirred on his stool. His thin face was
white.
"Are you—Ihlini?"
The
dead cubes and sticks scattered on the floor
came
abruptly to life again, flying from the dirt-
pack to
land again upon the table and commence
a
spinning dervish-dance across the scarred sur-
face.
Purple godfire streamed from the cubes; the
black
sticks glistened blood-red.
Urchin
sucked in an audible breath. Kellin, infu-
riated
by Corwyth's audacity, smashed a small fist
against
the table top. "No!"
The
cubes and sticks fell at once into disarray,
rattling
into silence as the dance abruptly collapsed.
"Too
late," Corwyth chided. "Much too late, my
lord."
He looked at Rogan and smiled.
The
awful tension in the Homanan's body was
plain
to see. "No," he whispered hoarsely. "Oh,
gods, I
cannot—I cannot—"
"Too
late," Corwyth repeated.
Rogan
looked at Kellin. "Run!" he cried. "Run!"
Six
Kellin
lunged to his feet, grasping for and catching
a fistful
of Urchin's tunic. He saw the blue blaze
in
Corwyth's eyes, sensed the pain radiating from
Rogan's
shattered wrist. / must do something.
"Urchin—"
He tugged on the boy's tunic, who
needed
no urging, then together they scrabbled
their
way across the room, jerked open the door,
and
fell out into the darkness.
"Did
you see—" Urchin choked.
"We
have to run. Rogan said run." Kellin yanked
at
Urchin's tunic.
Urchin
was clearly terrified. "H-horses—"
"They
will lie in wait for us there—we must run,
Urchin!"
They
ran away from the roadhouse, away from
the
road itself, making for the trees. They shared
no more
physical contact; Urchin had at last mas-
tered
himself. The Homanan boy, accustomed to
fleeing,
darted through the wood without hesita-
tion.
City-reared Kellin now was less certain of his
course
and followed Urchin's lead.
A
branch slapped Kellin across the eyes, blur-
ring
his vision. He tasted the sourness of resin in
his
mouth, spat once, then forgot about it in his
flight.
He could see little of the ground underfoot,
trusting
instinctively to the balance and reflexes
of
youth as well as the training begun in Homana-
Mujhar.
91
92
Jennifer Kobesyon
"Urchin—?"
"Here—"
Ahead still, and still running, crashing
through
deadfall and undergrowth.
Kellin
winced as another branch clawed at his
tunic,
digging into the flesh of bare arms. And then
he saw
the glint of silver in the trees and slipped
down
into the creek before he could halt his flight.
Kellin
fell forward, flailing impotently as cold
water
closed over his head.
He
kicked, found purchase, if treacherous, not
far
under his feet, and thrust himself upward to
the
surface. Kellin choked and spat, coughing,
shivering
from fright and cold.
"Kellin—"
It was Urchin, bankside, reaching
down.
Kellin caught the hand, clung, and scrab-
bled
out onto the creek bank. Urchin's face was
seamed
with branch-born welts. "We can't run all
night!"
Kellin
tried to catch his breath. "We—have to
get as
far—far from them as we can—"
"There
was only that one. Corwyth."
"More."
Kellin sucked air, filling his chest.
"Kick
over one rock and find a single Ihlini ...
kick
over another and find a nest." He scraped a
forearm
across his face, shoving soaked hair from
his
eyes. "That's what everyone says."
Dry,
Urchin nonetheless shivered. "But if they're
sorcerers—"
"We
have to try—" Kellin began.
The
forest around them exploded into a spectral
purple
glow. Out of the blinding light came two
dark
shadows, silhouetted against livid godfire.
Kellin
grabbed at Urchin and swung him back
the way
they had come. "Run!"
But
Corwyth himself stood on the other side of
the
creek. With him was Rogan.
Urchin
blurted his shock even as Kellin stopped
short.
Breathing hard, Kellin nonetheless heard
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
93
the
soft susurration of men moving behind them.
The
hairs on the back of his neck stirred. "I taste
it,"
he murmured blankly. "I can taste the magic."
Corwyth
smiled. Rogan did not. The godfire
painted
them all an eerie lavender, but Kellin
could
see the pallor of his tutor's face. Rogan's
eyes
glistened with tears.
Pain—?
Kellin wondered.
"My
lord," Rogan said. "Oh, my lord . . . forgive
me—"
Comprehension brought
sickness. Sickness
formed
a stone in Kellin's belly. "Not you!" No, of
course
not; Rogan would deny it. Rogan would
explain.
"My
lord .. . there was nothing left for me. I
had no
choice."
Corwyth
lifted a minatory hand. "There was
choice,"
he reproved. "There is always choice. I
may be,
to you, an enemy, but I suggest you tell
the
truth to this boy, who is not: it was neither I
nor my
master who forced you to this."
Kellin's
conviction was undiminished. Rogan
will
deny it—he will tell me the truth. After all, how
many
times had Kellin been told of the perfidi-
ousness
of Ihlini? This is some kind of trick. "He
hurt
you," Kellin declared. "He broke your wrist;
what
else can you say?"
"There
was no threat," Corwyth countered qui-
etly.
"The wrist was merely to prove the need for
care. I
have no need of threats with Rogan. All I
was
required to do was promise him his dearest
desire."
"Ihlini
lie," Kellin declared, even as Urchin
stirred
in surprise beside him. "Ihlini lie all the
time.
You are the enemy."
"To
assure our survival, aye." Corwyth's young
face
looked older, less serene. "To Ihlini, you are
the
enemy."
94
Jennifer Roberson
It was
an entirely new thought. Kelhn rejected
it. He
looked instead at Rogan. "He's lying."
"No."
Rogan's mouth warped briefly. "There
was no
threat, as he says. Only a promise."
It was
utter betrayal. "What promise?" Kellin
cried.
"What could he promise you that the Mujhar
could
not offer?"
Rogan
shut his eyes. His face was shiny with
sweat.
"Tell
him," Corwyth said-
"You
would have me strip away all his
innocence?"
The
Ihlini shrugged, "He will lose it soon enough
in
Valgaard."
Urchin's
face was a sickly white in fireglow. He
breathed
audibly. "Valgaard?"
"Rogan?"
Kellin swallowed back the fear that
formed
a hard knot in his throat. "Rogan—this
isn't
true?"
The
tutor broke. He spoke rapidly, disjointedly.
"It
was him ... a year ago, he came—came and
asked
that I betray you to the Ihlini."
mi
i"
Me'
"Lochiel."
Rogan shuddered. "Lochiel wants
you."
His entire body convulsed. "He could not
reach
you. He could get you no other way- Cor-
wyth
promised me you would be unharmed."
Kellin
could not breathe- "You agreed?"
"My
lord—if he had intended harm—"
"You
agreed\"
"Kellin—"
It was
the worst of all. "He is Ihlini\"
"Kellin—"
"How
could you do this?" It was a refrain in
Kellin's
mind, in Kellin *s mouth. "How could you
do
this?"
Rogan's
face was wet with tears. "It was not—
not of
my devising . . . that I promise you. But he
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
95
promised.
Promised me ... and I was weak, so
weak...."
Kellin
shouted it. "What did he promise you?"
Rogan
fell to his knees. "Forgive me—forgive—"
The
stone in Kellin's belly grew. He felt it come
to
life. It pushed his heart aside, then squeezed up
into
his throat. His body was filled with it.
And the
stone had a name: rage.
Kellin
heard his voice—mine?—come from a
vast
distance. It was an ordinary voice, shaped by
normal
inflections, with no hint at all of shock, or
terror,
or rage. "What did he promise you?"
"My
wife!" Rogan cried.
It was
incomprehensible. "You said she was
dead."
And then Kellin understood.
"My
wife," the tutor whispered, hands slack
upon
his knees. "You are too young to understand
... but
I loved her so much I thought I would die
of it,
and then she died—she died - .. because of
the
child I gave her—" He broke off. His gaze was
fixed
on Kellin. He gathered himself visibly, at-
tempting
to master his, anguish. "I refused,"
Rogan
said quietly. "Of course I refused. Nothing
could
make me betray you. I would have accepted
death
before that."
"Why
didn't you?" Kellin shouted.
"But
then this man, this Ihlini, promised me my
wife."
Kellin
shivered. He looked at Corwyth. "You can
raise
the dead?"
The
Ihlini smiled- "I am capable of many things."
He
extended his right hand, palm up, as if to mock
the
Cheysuli gesture of tahlmorra; then a flaring
column
of white light filled his hand.
"Magic,"
Urchin murmured,
"Tricks,"
Kellin declared; he could not admit
the
Ihlini might offer a true threat, or fear would
overwhelm
him-
96
Jennifer Robersoa
"Is
it?" The light in Corwyth's hand coalesced,
then
began to move, to dance, and the column
resolved
itself into a human shape-
A tiny,
naked woman.
"Gods,"
Rogan blurted. Then, brokenly, "Tassia."
Kellin
stared at the burning woman. She was a
perfect
embodiment of the Ihlini's power.
Corwyth
smiled. The woman danced within his
palm,
twisting and writhing. She burned bright
white
and searing, spinning and spinning, so that
flaming
hair spun out from her body and shed
brilliant
sparks. Tiny breasts and slim hips were
exposed,
and the promise of her body.
Kellin,
whose body was as yet too young to re-
spond,
looked at Rogan. The Homanan still knelt
on the
ground, eyes fixed in avid hunger on the
tiny
dancing woman.
"Do
you want her?" Corwyth asked. "I did
promise
her to you. And I keep my promises."
"She
isn't real!" Kellin cried.
"Not
precisely," Corwyth agreed, "She is a sum-
moning
from my power; a conjured promise, noth-
ing
more. But I can make her real—real enough
for
Rogan." He smiled. "Look upon her, Kellin.
Look at
her perfection! It is such a simple thing
to make
Tassia from this."
The
tiny, burning features were eloquent in
their
pleading. She was fully aware, Kellin saw;
Tassia
knew.
Rogan
cried out. "I bargained my soul for this.
Give me
my payment for it!"
The
light from the burning woman blanched
Corwyth's
face. "Your soul was mine the moment
I asked
for it. The promise of this woman was
merely
a kindness." He looked at Kellin though
his
words were meant for Rogan. "Speak it,
prince's
man. Aloud, where Kellin can hear- Re-
nounce
your service to the House of Homana.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
97
Deny
your prince as he stands here before you.
Do only
these two things, and you will have your
payment."
Rogan
shuddered-
"Speak
it," Corwyth said.
"Leave
him alone!" Kellin cried.
"Kellin—"
Rogan's expression was wracked.
"Forgive—"
"Don't
say it!" Kellin shouted. "Do not give in
to
him!"
"Speak,"
Corwyth said.
Tears
ran down Rogan's face. "I renounce the
House
of Homana."
"Rogan!"
"I
renounce my prince."
"No!"
"1
submit to you, Ihlini . .. and now ask pay-
ment
for my service!"
Corwyth
smiled gently. He lifted his other hand
as if
in benevolent blessing. Rogan's head bowed
as the
hand came down, and then he was bathed
in the
same lurid light that shaped the tiny
woman.
"Wait!"
Kellin cried. "Rogan—no—"
Rogan's
eyes stretched wide. "This is not what
you
promised—" But his body was engulfed.
Kellin
fell back, coughing, even as Urchin did.
The
clearing was tilled with smoke. Corwyth pursed
his
lips and blew a gentle exhalation, and the smoke
dispersed
completely.
"What
did you do?" Kellin asked. "What did
you do
to Rogan?"
"I
gave him what he desired, though of a decid-
edly
different nature. He believed I intended to
remake
his dead wife. But even / cannot do that,
so this
will have to suffice." Corwyth's right hand
supported
the dancing woman, now rigidly still.
98
Jennifer Roberson
In his
other hand, outstretched, burned a second
tiny
figure.
Urchin
cried out. Kellin stared, transfixed, as he
saw the
formless features resolve themselves into
those
he knew so well. "Rogan."
Corwyth
brought his hands together. The man
and
woman met, embraced, then merged into a
single
livid flame. "I do assure you, this was what
he
wanted."
Kellin
was horrified. "Not like that\"
"Perhaps
not." Corwyth grinned. "A conceit, I
confess;
he did not have the wit to specify how he
wanted
payment made."
Kellin
shuddered. And then the stone in chest
and
throat broke free at last. He vomited violently.
"No!"
Urchin cried, then screamed Rogan's
name.
Corwyth
knelt down beside the creek.
"Wait!"
Kellin shouted.
Corwyth
dipped his hands into the water. "But
let it
never be said I am a man who knows no
mercy.
Death, you might argue, is better than
this."
"Rogan!"
But the
names were extinguished as water
snuffed
them out.
Seven
Kellin
found himself on hands and knees in clammy
vegetation,
hunched before the creek in bizarre
obeisance
to the sorcerer who knelt on the bank.
His
belly cramped painfully. His mouth formed a
single
word, though the lips were warped out of
shape.
Rogan.
And
then the horrible thought: Not Rogan any
more.
A hand
was on his arm, fingers digging into
flesh.
"Kellin—Kellin—" Urchin, of course; Kellin
twisted
his head upward and saw the pale glint of
Urchin's
eyes, the sweaty sheen of shock-blanched
face.
Ashamed of his weakness, Kellin swabbed a
trembling
hand across his dry mouth and climbed
to his
feet. Show the Ihlini no fear.
But he
thought it was too late; surely Corwyth
had
seen. Surely Corwyth knew.
The
russet-haired Ihlini rose, shaking droplets
from
elegant hands with negligent flicks of his
fingers.
"Shall you come without protest, my
lord?"
Kellin
whirled and stiff-armed Urchin, shoving
him
back a full step before the Homanan boy
could
speak. "Run!"
He
darted to the left even as Urchin spun, run-
ning
away from Corwyth, away from the creek.
away
from the horror of what he had witnessed,
the
terrible quenching of a man—
99
100
Jennifer Robersoa
He tore
headlong through limbs and leaves,
shredding
underbrush and vines. In huge leaps
Kellin
spent himself, panting through a dry throat
as he
ran. He fastened on one thought—Urchin—
but the
Homanan boy was making his own way,
making
his own future, crashing through brush
only
paces away. Kellin longed to call out but
dared
not risk it. Besides, Urchin was better suited
to
flight than he, growing up a boy of the streets;
best
Kellin tend himself.
Corwyth's
voice cut through the trees like a clar-
ion.
"I require only you, Kellin. Not him. Come
back,
and I will spare him."
"Don't
listen!" Urchin hissed as he broke through
tangled
foliage near Kellin. "What can he—"
The
Homanan boy stopped short, fully visible in
a patch
of moonlight. His chest rose and fell un-
evenly
as his breath rattled in his throat.
Kellin
staggered to a stiff-limbed halt, arms out-
flung.
His breathing was as loud. "Urchin?"
The
boy's blue eyes were fixed and dilated.
"Urchin—run—"
Urchin's
eyes bulged in their sockets.
Even as
Kellin reached for him, the boy's limbs
jerked.
Urchin's mouth dropped open, blurting in-
articulate
protest. Then something pushed out
against
the fabric of his tunic, as if it quested for
exit
from the confines of his chest.
"Ur—"
Kellin saw the blood break from Ur-
chin's
breastbone. "No!" But Urchin was down, all
asprawl,
face buried in leaf mold and turf. Kellin
grabbed
handfuls of tunic and dragged him over
onto
his back. "Urchin—"
Kellin
recoiled. A bloodied silver wafer extruded
from
Urchin's breastbone, shining wetly in the
moonlight.
He
mouthed it: Sorcerer's Tooth. Kellin had
heard
of them. The Ihlini weapons were often poi-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
101
soned,
though this one had done its work simply
by
slicing cleanly through the boy's chest from
spine
to breastbone.
Corwyth's
voice sounded very close, too close,
though
Kellin could not see him. "A waste of life,"
the
Ihlini said. "You threw it away, Kellin."
"No!"
"You
had only to come to me."
"No!"
"And
so now you are alone in the dark with an
Ihlini."
Corwyth's laughter was quiet. "Surely a
nightmare
all Cheysuli dread."
Urchin
was dead. Muttering a prayer to the
gods—and
an apology to Urchin for the pain he
could
not feel—Kellin stripped hastily out of his
jerkin,
tucked it over the exposed spikes, then
yanked
the wafer from Urchin's chest.
He
twisted his head. Where is—?
Just
behind. "Kellin. Surrender. I promise you
no
harm."
Kellin
lurched upward and spun. "I promise you
harm!"
He
heard Corwyth cry out as the glinting weapon,
loosed,
spun toward the Ihlini. Kellin did not tarry
to see
if the Tooth had bitten deeply enough to
kill.
He fled into darkness again.
Kellin
ran until he could run no more, then
dropped
into a steady jogging trot. Though his
breath
fogged the air, the first terror had faded,
replaced
by a simple conviction that if he did not
halt,
not even to catch that breath, he could re-
main
ahead of Corwyth -
He
assumed the Ihlini lived. To believe other-
wise
was to court the kind of carelessness that
might
prove fatal. If he had learned one thing
from
his beloved lan, it was never to assume one
was
safe when one could not know.
102
Jennifer Robersoa
Deadfall
snapped beneath booted feet, then died
out
gradually as Kellin learned to seek out the
thicker
shadows of softer, muffled ground. In six
strides
he learned stealth, reverting to simple in-
stincts
and the training of his race,
If I
had a hr— But he did not, and wishing for
one
would gain him nothing save a tense uncer-
tainty
of his ability to survive.
At last
even his trot collapsed into disarray. Kel-
lin
staggered, favoring his right side. Exhaustion
robbed
him of strength, of endurance; apprehen-
sion
robbed him of grace. He stumbled once,
twice,
again. The final tumble sent him headfirst
into a
tangle of tall bracken, which spilled him
into
shadow. Kellin lay there, winded, sucking
cold
air scented heavily with mud, and resin, and
fear.
Go on,
his conscience told him. But the body did
not
respond. Remember what happened to Rogan.
Remember
what happened to Urchin.
Kellin
squeezed shut his eyes. He had, until the
moment
of Urchin's death, believed himself invio-
lable.
lan had died, aye, because the Lion had bit-
ten
him, and the fortune-teller had died by the
same
violent means, but never had Kellin believed
death
could happen to him.
Rogan
and Urchin, dead.
/ could
die, too.
Could
the Ihlini's sorcery lead Corwyth directly
to
Kellin?
Run—
He
stumbled to his feet yet again, hunching for-
ward as
a cramp bit into his side. He banished the
pain,
banished the memories of the deaths he had
witnessed,
and went on again.
—am a
Cheysuli warrior ... the forest is my
home—and
every creature in it—
He
meant to go home, of course. All the way to
A
TAPESTSV OF LIONS
103
Mujhara
herself, and into Homana-Mujhar. There
he
would tell them all. There he would explain.
There
he would describe in bloody detail what
Corwyth
had accomplished.
The
sound was a heavy cough. Not human.
Clearly
animal. A heavy, deep-throated cough.
Kellin
froze. He sucked in a breath and held it,
listening
for the sound.
A
cough. And then a growl.
—am
Cheysuli—
So he
was. But he was also a boy.
The
growl rose in pitch, then altered into a roar.
He knew
the sounds of the forest. This was not
one of
them. This was a sound Kellin recognized
because
it filled his dreams-
He did
not cry out, but only because he could
not.
Lion?
"No,"
Kellin blurted. He denied it vigorously,
as he
had denied nothing before in his life. Urchin
had
come, and the Lion had been driven away.
The
daytime was safe. And only rarely did the
Lion
trouble his dreams now, since Urchin had
come.
But
Urchin was dead. And night replaced the
day.
"No!"
Kellin cried- There can be no Lion. Every-
one says.
But it
was dark, so dark. It was too easy to be-
lieve
in such things as Lions when there was no
light.
He
fastened himself onto a single thought. "I am
not a
child anymore. I defeated the Steppesman
and
knocked down his knife. Lions do not exist."
But the
Lion roared again. Kellin's defiance was
swamped.
He ran
without thought for silence or subter-
fuge.
Outflung hands crushed aside foliage, but
some of
it sprang back and cut into the flesh of his
194
Jessdfer Robwaoa
naked
torso, jerkinless in flight. It snagged hair, at
eyes,
at mouth; it dug deeply into his neck even
as he
ducked.
Lion!
He saw
nothing but shadow and moonlight. If I
stop—
From
behind came the roar of a hungry, hunting
lion,
crashing through broken brush on the trail
of
Cheysuli prey.
Huge
and tawny and golden, like the throne in
Homana-Mujhar.
How can
they say there isn't a Lion?
Blood
ran into Kellin's mouth, then spilled over
open
lips; he had somehow bitten his tongue. He
spat,
swiped aside a snagging limb, then caught
his
breath painfully on a choked blurt of shock as
the
footing beneath crumbled.
Wait—
He teetered. Then fell. The ground gave
way and
tumbled him into a narrow ravine.
Down
and down and down, crashing through
bracken
and creepers, banging arms and legs into
saplings,
smacking skull against rocks and roots.
And
then at last the bottom, all of a sudden, too
sudden,
and he sprawled awkwardly onto his
back,
fetching up against a stump. Kellin heard
whooping
and gulping, and realized the noise was
his
own.
Lion?
He
lurched upward, then scrambled to his feet.
He
ached from head to foot, as if all his bones
were
bruised.
Lion?
And the
lion, abruptly, was there.
Kellin
ran. He heard the panting grunts, smelled
the
meat-laden breath. And then the jaws snapped
closed
around his left ankle.
'Wo/"
The
pain shot from ankle to skull. Jaws dug
A
TAFESTKY OF Ltws 109
through
leather boot into flesh, threatening the
bone.
Kellin
clawed at the iron teeth of the iron, bodi-
less
beast that had caught boy instead of bear.
Fingers
scrabbled at the trap, trying to locate and
trigger
the mechanism that would spring the jaws
open.
No
lion— It was relief, but also terror; the beast
could
not be far behind.
Keltin
had heard of bear traps. The Cheysuli dis-
dained
such tools, preferring to fight a beast on
its own
level rather than resorting to mechanical
means.
But some of the Homanans used the heavy
iron
traps to catch bear and other prey.
Now
it's caught ME— Pain radiated from the
ankle
until it encompassed Kellin's entire body.
He
twitched and writhed against it, biting into
his
bloodied lip, then scrabbled for the chain that
bound
trap to tree. It was securely locked. De-
signed
to withstand the running charge of a full-
grown
bear, it would surely defeat a boy.
Frenziedly,
Kellin yanked until his palms shred-
ded and
bled. "Let go—let go—LET GO—"
The
deep-chested cough sounded again. Through
deadfall
the lion came, slinking out of shadow,
tearing
its way through vines and bracken.
Kellin
leapt to his feet and ran, and was jerked
down
almost at once. Iron teeth bit through boot
and
compressed fragile flesh, scraping now on
bone.
—no—no—
—no—no—NO—
"
The
lion, still coughing, broke out of shadow
into
moonlight. Kellin jerked at the chain again,
but
palms slipped in sticky blood. The weight of
the
trap was nothing as he tried to stand again,
to meet
his death like a man.
But
then the lion roared. The boy who meant to
106
die a
man was reduced, by sheer terror, into noth-
ing but
a child screaming frenziedly for his father.
But his
father would not come, because he never
had.
Eight
Horseback.
And yet he did not ride as a man but
as a
child, a small child, rump settled across the
withers,
legs dangling slackly upon one shoulder
while
the rest of him was cradled securely against
a man's
chest.
Kellin
roused into terror. "Lion—" He was per-
fectly
stiff, trying to flail his way to escape. Terror
overwhelmed
him. "Lion— UON—"
Arms
tightened, stilling him. "There is no lion
here."
"But—"
He shut his mouth on the protest, the
adamant
denial of what the voice told him. Then
another
panic engulfed. "Ihlini—"
The man
laughed softly, as if meaning no insult.
"Not
I, my lad. I've not the breeding for it."
Kellin
subsided, though his strained breathing
was
audible. His eyes stretched painfully wide,
but saw
nothing in the darkness save the under-
side of
a man's jaw and the oblique silhouette of
a head.
"Who—?" It faded at once. Pain reasserted
itself.
"My leg."
"I'm
sorry for it, lad .. . but you'll have to wait
for the
healing."
It took
effort to speak, to forced a single word
through
the rictus of his mouth. "—whole—?"
"Broken,
I fear. But we'll be mending it for
you."
Kellin
ground his teeth. "—hurts—" And then
107
108
Jennifer Robersoa
wished
he had said nothing, nothing at all; a Chey-
suli
did not speak of pain.
"Aye,
one would think so." The grip shifted a
little,
sliding down Kellin's spine to accommodate
the
weight that was no longer quite so slack.
"
'Twas a trap for a bear, not a boy. You're fortu-
nate it
left the foot attached."
Kellin
stiffened again, craning, as he tried to see
for
himself.
The
other laughed softly. "Aye, lad, 'tis there. I
promise
you that. Now, settle yourself; you've a
fever
coming on. You'll do better to rest."
"Who—?"
he began again.
The
rider chuckled as Kellin tried to sit up. He
turned
his face downward. "There, now—better?
I'm one
of you after all."
"One
of—me?" And then Kellin understood. Re-
lief
washed through him, then ebbed as quickly as
it
stole his strength away.
Indeed,
one of him. The stranger was his grand-
sire,
if stripped of forty years. His accent was Ai"
leen's
own. There was only one Cheysuli warrior
in all
the world who sounded like the Mujhar's
Erinnish
queen.
"Blais,"
Kellin murmured. Weakness and fever
crept
closer to awareness, nibbling at its edges.
The
warrior grinned, displaying fine white teeth
in a
dark Cheysuli face. "Be still, little cousin.
We've
yet a ways to ride. You'll do better to pass
it in
sleep."
In
sleep, or something like. Kellin slumped
against
his kinsman as consciousness departed.
He
roused as Blais handed him down from the
horse
into someone else's care. Pain renewed itself,
so
strongly that Kellin whimpered before he could
suppress
it. And then he was more ashamed than
109
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
ever
because Blais himself was Cheysuli and knew
a
warrior did not voice his discomfort.
Sweating,
Kellin bit again into a split lip and
tasted
fresh blood. It was all he could do not to
moan
aloud.
"My
pavilion," Blais said briefly. "Send some-
one to
Homana-Mujhar with word, and call others
here
for the healing."
The
other warrior carried Kellin inside as Blais
dismounted
and carefully settled him onto a pallet
of
thick furs. Kellin opened his eyes and saw the
shadowed
interior of a CheysuH pavilion. Then the
stranger
was gone, and Blais knelt down on one
knee
beside him. A callused palm touched Kellin's
forehead.
"Shansu,"
Blais murmured. "I know it hurts, lit-
tle
cousin, no need to fight it so, I'll think none
the
less of you."
But
Kellin would not give in, though he sweated
and
squirmed with pain. "Can't you heal me?"
Blais
smiled. His face was kind in a stem sort
of way-
He was very like fhem all, though Erinn
and
Homana ran in his veins as well as Cheysuli
blood.
Physically the dilution did not show; Blais'
features
and coloring were purely Cheysuli, even
if the
accent was not. "Not without help, my lad.
I was
ill myself last year with the summer fever—
well
enough now, you'll see, but weak in the earth
magic
yet. I'd rather not risk the future of Homana
to a
halfling's meager gifts."
Halfling.
Kellin shifted. What am I, then? "You
have a
lir. Tanni. I remember from when you vis-
ited
Homana-Mujhar two years ago."
"Aye,
but she came to me late. Don't be forget-
ting,
lad—I was Erinn-raised. The magic there is
different.
I'm different because of it."
Fever-clad
weakness proved pervasive. Kellin
squinted
at his cousin through a wave of fading
ISO
Jennifer Roberson
vision.
"I'm different, too, like you . .. will I get
my lir
late?"
"
Tis between you and the gods." Blais' callused
palm
was gentle as he smoothed back dampened
hair.
"Hush. now, lad. Don't waste yourself on
talking."
Kellin
squirmed. "The Lion—"
"
'Twas a bear-trap, lad."
Kellin
shut his eyes because it made him dizzy
to keep
them open. "An Ihlini Lion . .." he as-
serted
weakly, "and it was after me."
"Lad."
"—was—"
Kellin insisted. "The Ihlini killed Ur-
chin.
And Rogan."
"Kellin."
"They
were my friends, and he killed them."
"Kellin!"
Blais caught Kellin's head between
two
strong hands, cupping the dome of skull eas-
ily-
"No more of this. The healing comes first, then
we'll
be talking of deaths. D'ye hear?"
"But—"
"Be
still, my little prince. Homana has need of
you
whole."
"But—"
And
then the others were there, crowding into
the
pavilion, and the wave of exhaustion that en-
gulfed
Kellin was as much induced by the earth
magic
as by his fever.
Voices
intruded. The murmurs were quiet, but
they
nonetheless broke apart Kellin's tattered
dreams
and roused him to wakefulness.
"—harsh
for any man to lose his closest com-
panions,"
Blais was saying from outside as he
pulled
aside the door-flap. "For a lad, that much
the
harder."
Light
penetrated the interior, turning the inside
of
Kellin's eyelids red. The answering voice was
A
TAPESTRY OF LtOfVS
III
well-known
and beloved. "Kellin has always seemed
older
than his years," Brennan said as he entered
the
pavilion. "Sometimes I forget he is naught but
a boy,
and I try to make him into a man."
"
'Tis the risk any man takes with an heir, espe-
cially
a prince." Blais let the door-flap drop, dim-
ming
daylight again into a wan, saffron tint.
Brennan's
voice was hollow. "He is more than
that to
me. I lost Aidan—" He checked- "So, now
there
is Kellin. In Aidan's place. In all things, in
Aidan's
place. He was made to be Prince of Ho-
mana
before he was even a boy, still but an infant
wetting
his napkins."
Kellin
cracked his lids slightly, only enough so
he
could see the two men through a fuzzy fringe
of
lashes. He did not want them to know he was
awake.
He had learned very young that adults
overheard
divulged more information than when
asked
straight out.
Blais'
laugh was soft as he settled himself near
the
pallet. "You had no choice but to invest him
when
you did. Aidan had renounced the title al-
ready,
and / had come from Erinn. D'ye think I
am deaP
I heard all the whispers, sufali ... had
you
delayed Kellin's investiture, my presence here
in
Homana might have given new heart to the
a'saii.
Your claim on the Lion would have been
threatened
again."
"I
might have packed you off to Erinn," Bren-
nan
suggested mildly.
"Might
have tried, my lord Mujhar." Blais' tone
was
amused as he gestured for his guest to seat
himself.
"When has a warrior been made to do
anything
he preferred not to do?"
Brennan
sighed as he knelt down beside his
grandson.
"Even Kellin. Even a ten-year-old boy."
The humor
was banished. "He spoke of a lion,
and an
Ihlini."
112
Jennifer Robersoa
The
line ofBrennan's mouth tautened. "The lion
is
something Kellin made up years ago. It is an
excuse
for things he cannot explain. He is fanciful;
he
conjures a beast from the lions in banners and
signets,
and the throne itself. And because he has
been
unfortunate to witness Ihini handiwork, he
interprets
all the violence as the doings of this
lion."
"What
handiwork?"
"The
death of a fortune-teller. He was a for-
eigner
and unknown to us, but his death stank of
sorcery."
"Lochiel,"
Blais said grimly.
"He
knows very well Kellin offers the greatest
threat
to the Ihlini."
"Like
his father before him."
"But
Aidan no longer matters. He sired the next
link,
and that link now is the one Lochiel must
shatter."
Brennan's fingertips gently touched Kel-
lin's
brow. "It all comes to Kellin- Centuries of
planning
all comes down to him."
Blais'
tone was dry, for all it was serious. "Then
we had
best see he survives."
"I
have done everything I could. The boy has
been
kept so closely it is no wonder he makes up
stories
about lions. Had my jehan kept me so tied
to
Homana-Mujhar, I would have gone mad. As it
is, I
am not in the least surprised he found a way
to
escape his imprisonment. But Urchin and Rogan
are
also missing; I can only surmise they, too,
were
lured away. No Ihlini could get in, and Kel-
lin is
too well-guarded within the palace itself. He
would
go nowhere without the Homanan boy, and
Rogan
would never permit Kellin to leave if he
heard
any whisper of it. So I believe we must look
at a
clever trap set with the kind of bait that
would
lure all of them out."
Blais'
tone was grim. "An imaginary lion?"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
113
Kellin
could no longer hold himself back; his
eyes
popped open. "There was a LionI"
"Cheysuli
ears," Brennan said, brows arching,
"hear
more than they should."
"There
was," Kellin insisted. "It chased me into
the
bear-trap . .. after Urchin and Rogan died."
Brennan
shut his eyes. "More deaths."
Blais
shifted. He sat cross-legged, one thigh
weighted
down by the head of a ruddy wolf. His
expression
was oddly blank as he stroked the wide
skull
and scratched the base of the ears.
Brennan's
momentary lapse was banished. He
was
calm, unperturbed. "Tell us what happened,
Kellin.
We must know everything."
Kellin
delayed, testing his ankle. "It doesn't
hurt
any more."
"Earth
magic," Blais said. "You've a scar, but
the
bones are whole."
"A
scar?" Kellin peeled back the deerskin cover-
let and
saw the bared ankle. Indeed, there was a
jagged
ring of purplish "tooth" marks ringing his
ankle.
He wiggled his foot again. There was no
pain.
"
'Twill fade," Blais told him. "I've more scars
than I
can count, but hardly any of them show."
Kellin
did not care about the scar; if anything,
it
proved there was a Lion. He looked now at his
grandsire,
putting aside the Lion to speak of an-
other
grief. "It was Rogan," he said unsteadily.
"Rogan
betrayed me to the Ihlini."
The
Mujhar did not so much as twitch an eyelid.
The
mildness of his tone was deceptive, but Kellin
knew it
well: Brennan wanted very badly to know
the
precise truth, without embellishments or sup-
positions.
"You are certain it was he?"
"Aye."
Kellin suppressed with effort the emo-
tions
to which he longed to surrender. He would
be all
Cheysuli in this. "He said he would take me
114
Jennifer Hoberson
to my
jehan. That you knew we were to go, just
the
three of us, but that we meant to go to Clan-
keep.
He said he would send true word to you
where
we were, but only after we were on our way
to
Hondarth."
Brennan's
face grayed. "Such a simple plan, and
certain
to work. I was a fool. Lochiel has ways of
suborning
even those I most value."
"Not
money," Kellin said. "So he could have his
wife
back. Only—" He checked himself, recalling
all too
clearly the tiny dancing woman and Ro-
gan's
horrible ending. "Corwyth killed him first.
With
sorcery. And then Urchin." Pain formed a
knot in
chest and throat. "Urchin's dead, too."
After a
moment the Mujhar touched Kellin's
head
briefly. Gently, he said, "You must tell me
everything
you remember about how this was
done,
and the Ihlini himself. Everything, Kellin, so
we may
prepare for another attack."
"Another—?"
Kellin stared hard at the Mujhar,
turning
over the words. Realization made him
breathless.
"They want to catch me. Corwyth said
so. He
said he was taking me to Lochiel, in
Valgaard."
Brennan's
expression was grim, but he did not
avoid
candor. "You are important to the Ihlini,
Kellin,
because of who you are, and the blood in
your
veins. You know about that."
He did.
Very well. Too well; it was all anyone
spoke
of. "They won't stop, then." It seemed
obvious.
"No."
Kellin
nodded, understanding more with each
moment.
"That's why you set the dogs to guarding
me."
"Dogs?
Ah." Brennan smiled faintly. "We dared
not
allow you to go anywhere alone. Not in Muj-
hara, not
even to Clankeep." His jaw tightened.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
ItS
,
i
!
"Do
you recall how you sickened after your Nam-
ing Day
feast?"
Kellin
nodded, recalling with vivid clarity how
ill he
had been after eating his meal. He had not
wanted
fish for a sixth-month, after.
"Lochiel
had no recourse to sorcery in order to
harm
you, not so long as you remained in
Homana-Mujhar,
or at Clankeep, but coin buys
people.
He bribed a cook to poison the meal. We
were
forced to take serious steps to safeguard Ho-
mana's
prince, and his freedom suffered for it."
Brennan's
words were stated with careful preci-
sion.
"Rogan understood- Rogan knew why. He
comprehended
fully how you were to be
protected."
That is
why they were all so upset when 1 ran
away
from the fortune-teller. Guilt flickered. "It was
after I
heard you speaking with granddame. About
how my
jehan would not have me see him." Kellin
swallowed
heavily. "Rogan came and said he
would
take me to my jehan."
Brennan's
expression was bleak as he exchanged
a
glance with Blais. "I have learned from this, too,
though
I believed myself wise in such matters."
He
sighed heavily. "Nearly every man has his
price.
Most will deny it, claiming themselves in-
corruptible,
but there is always something that
will
lure them into betrayal- If they disbelieve it,
it is
because they have not been offered that which
they
most desire."
Rogan
was offered his wife. Kellin wanted to pro-
test
it. It hurt him deeply that Rogan had betrayed
him,
but he understood his grandfather's words.
Hadn't
he been bought by the promise of his
father?
"I
would never submit to an Ihlini," he mut-
tered.
"Never."
"And
that is why you are here." Brennan smiled
116
Jennifer Roberaoa
faintly,
tension easing from his features. "Tell us
everything."
Kellin
did. By the time he was done he felt tears
in his
eyes, and hated himself for them.
Blais
shook his head. "There is no shame in hon-
est
grief."
Brennan's
tone was gentle. "Rogan was every-
thing
to you for two years, and Urchin was your
best
friend. We think no less of you because you
loved
them."
Kellin
let that go, thinking now of something
else.
"You said something about me. To Blais, ear-
lier.
That I offer the greatest threat to the Ihlini."
He
looked first at Blais, then at the Mujhar. "What
harm
can / do them?"
"You
can bring down their House," Brennan
said
quietly, "merely by siring a son."
It was
incomprehensible. "Me?"
The
Mujhar laughed. "You are young yet to
think
of such things as sons, Kellin, but the day
will
come when you are a man. Lochiel knows
this.
With each passing year you become more
dangerous."
"Because
of my blood." Kellin looked at the scar
ringing
his ankle, recalling the warm wetness run-
ning
down between his toes. "That blood."
Brennan
took Kellin's wrist into his hand and
raised
it, spreading the fingers with the pressure
of his
thumb. "All the blood in here," he said. "In
this
hand, in this arm, in this body. And the seed
in your
loins, provided it quickens within the body
of a
particular woman. Lochiel cannot risk allowing
you to
sire that son."
"The
prophecy," Kellin murmured, staring at
his
hand. He tried to look beneath the flesh to
bone
and muscle, and the blood that was so
special.
A
TAPESTRY OF LWHS 117
"The
Firstborn reborn," Blais said- "The bane
of the
Ihlini. The end of Asar-Suti."
Kellin
looked at his grandfather. "They died be-
cause
of me. Rogan. Urchin. The fortune-teller.
Didn't
they?"
Brennan
closed the small hand inside his own
adult
one. "It is the heaviest burden a man can
know.
Men who are kings—and boys who are
princes—carry
more of them than most."
His
chest was full of pain. "Will more die,
grandsire?
Just because of me?"
Brennan
did not lie. He did not look away. "Al-
most
certainly."
Nine
Kellin
felt important and adult: Brennan had said
he
might have a small cup of honey brew, the
powerful
Cheysuli liquor. He knew it was his
grandfather's
way of making him feel safe and
loved
after his encounter with tragedy, so he
sipped
slowly, savoring the liquor and the intent,
not
wanting the moment to end because he felt for
the
first time as if they believed him grown, or
nearly
so. Nearly was better than not; he grinned
into
the clay cup.
The
Mujhar was not present. When Brennan re-
turned
to the pavilion, he, Kellin, and Blais would
depart
for Homana-Mujhar, but for the moment
Kellin
was required to stay with his cousin. Bren-
nan met
with the clan-leader to discuss the kinds
of
things kings and clan-leaders discuss; Kellin
had
heard some of it before and found it tedious-
He was
much more interested in his kinsman, who
was
fascinating as a complex mixture of familiar
and
exotic.
An Erinnish
Cheysuli with Homanan in his
blood,
Blais did not took anything but Cheysuli,
yet his
accent and attitude were different. The lat-
ter was
most striking to Kellin. Blais seemed less
concerned
with excessive personal dignity than
with
being content within his spirit; if that spirit
were
more buoyant than most, he gave it free rein
regardless.
118
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOIVS 119
At this
moment Blais was working on a bow,
replacing
the worn leather handgrip with new. His
head was
bent over his work and a lock of thick
black
hair obscured part of his face. Lt'r-gold
gleamed.
Next to him sprawled sleeping Tanni,
toes
twitching in wolf dreams.
"It
could be you," Kellin blurted. "Couldn't it?"
Blais
did not look up from his handiwork.
"What
could, lad?"
"You,"
Kellin repeated. "The man in the proph-
ecy.
The man whose blood can do the things every-
one
wants it to do."
Now
Blais raised his head. "My blood?"
"Aye.
You are Cheysuli, Erinnish, and Homa-
nan.
You are halfway there."
"Ah,
but you are all the way there, my lad. I've
no
Solindish or Atvian blood bubbling in my
veins."
Blais' face creased in a smile. "You've no
fear of
me usurping your place."
"But
you're older. You are a warrior." Kellin
looked
at Tanni. "You have a Ur."
"And
so will you, in but a handful of years."
Strong
fingers moved skillfully as Blais rewrapped
the
leather.
"But
I heard you," Kellin said quietly, grappling
with
new ideas. "You talked to grandsire about
the
a'saii."
The
hands stilled abruptly. This time Blais' gaze
was
sharp. "I said something of it, aye. You see,
lad—I
have i.iore cause to concern myself with
a'saii
than any warrior alive."
"They
were traitors," Kellin declared. "Rogan
told
me—" He cut it off abruptly. "Grandsire said
they
wanted to overthrow the proper succession
and
replace it with another."
"So
they did." Blais' tone was noncommittal.
"They
were Cheysuli who feared the completion
of the
prophecy would end their way of life."
120
"Will
it?"
Blais
shrugged. "Things will change, aye .. . but
perhaps
not so much as the a'saii fear."
"Do
you?" Kellin needed to know. "Do you fear
it,
Blais?"
An odd
expression crossed Blais' smooth, dark
face.
For only a moment, black brows pulled to-
gether.
Then he smiled crookedly. "I fear losing
what I
have only just found," he admitted evenly.
"I
was born here, Kellin. Keep-bom, but reared in
Erinn a
very long way away. Customs are different
in
Erinn. I was a part of them, but also longed for
others.
My jehana taught me what she could of the
language
and customs of Cheysuli, but she was
half
Erinnish herself, and now wed to an Erinnish-
man. It
was Keely who taught me more, who
showed
me what earth magic was, and what it
could
bring me." His smile was warmly reminis-
cent.
"She suggested I come here, to find out who
I
was."
Kellin
was fascinated. "Did you?"
"Oh,
aye. Enough to know I belong here." Blais
grinned,
caressing Tanni's head. "I may not sound
all
Cheysuli, but in spirit I am."
"Why,"
Kellin began, "do you have more cause
to
concern yourself with a'saii than any warrior
alive?"
Blais'
brows arched. "You've a good ear to recall
that so
perfectly."
Kellin
shrugged, dismissing it. "The a'saii are
disbanded.
Grandsire said so."
"Formally,
aye. But convictions are hard to kill.
There
are those who still keep themselves apart
from
other clans."
"But
you stay here."
"Clankeep
is my home. I serve the prophecy as
much as
any warrior. As much as you will, once
you are
grown."
A
TAPESTRY or LIONS 121
Kellin
nodded absently. "But why do you have
cause?"
Blais
sighed, hands tightening on the bow. "Be-
cause
it was my grandsire who began the a'saii,
Kellin.
Ceinn wanted to replace Niall's son—your
grandsire,
Brennan—with his own son, Teiman.
There
was justification, Ceinn claimed, because
Teiman
was the son of the Mujhar's sister."
"Isolde,"
Kellin put in; he recalled the names
from
lessons.
"Aye.
Isolde. Niall's rujhoUa."
"And
lan's."
Blais
grinned. "And lan's."
"But
why you'?"
Blais'
grin faded. "Teiman was my father. When
I came
here from Erinn, those who were a'saii
thought
I should be named Prince of Homana
when
your father renounced his title."
Kellin
was astonished. "In my place?"
Blais
nodded.
"In
my place." It was incomprehensible to Kel-
lin,
who could not imagine anyone else in his own
place.
He had been Prince of Homana all his life.
"But—I
was named."
"Aye.
As the Mujhar desired."
Something
occurred. "What about you?" Kellin
asked.
"Did you want the title?"
Blais
laughed aloud. "I was reared by a man
who is
the Lord of Erinn's bastard brother. I spent
many
years at Kilore—I know enough of royalty
and the
responsibilities of rank to want no part of
it."
He leaned forward slightly, placing the tip of
his
forefinger on Kellin's t.'-ow. "You, my young
lad,
will be the one to hold the Lion."
"Oh,
no," Kellin blurted. "I have to kill it, first."
Blais
stilled. "Kill it?"
Kellin
was matter-of-fact. "Before it kills all of
MS."
122
Jennifer Robersoa
When
Kellin—with grandfather, cousin, and nu-
merous
liveried and armored guardsmen—entered
the
inner bailey of Homana-Mujhar, he discovered
it
clogged to bursting with strange horses and ser-
vants.
Horse-boys ran this way and that, grasping
at
baggage-train horses even as they gathered in
the
mounts of dismounting riders; servants shouted
at one
another regarding the unloading; while the
bailey
garrison, clad in Mujharan scarlet, did its
best to
sort things out.
The
Mujhar himself, trapped in the center of the
bailey
as his horse restively rang shod hoofs off
cobbles,
finally ran out of patience. "By the blood
of the
Lion—" Brennan began, and then broke off
abruptly
as a tall man came out of the palace
doorway
to stand at the top of the steps.
"Have
I made a mess of all your Mujharish maj-
esty?"
the man called over the din. "Well, doubt-
less
you are in dire need of humbling anyway."
"Hart!"
Brennan cried. "By the gods—Hart\"
Kellin
watched in surprise as his grandsire hast-
ily
threw himself down from his mount and joined
the
throng, pushing through toward the steps.
Brennan
mounted them three at a time, then en-
folded
the other man in a huge, hard hug.
"Su'fali,"
Kellin murmured, then grinned at
Blais.
"Su'fali to both of us. Hart, come from
Solinde!"
"So
I see," Blais squinted over the crowd. "They
are two
blooms from the same bush."
"But
Hart has blue eyes. And only one hand; an
enemy
had the other one cut off." Kellin followed
Brennan's
lead, climbing down with less skill than
his
longer-legged grandfather, and then he, too,
was
swallowed up by the crowd. Kellin could see
nothing,
neither grandfather, great-uncle, nor steps.
He
considered ducking under the bellies of all
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 123
the
horses, but reconsidered when he thought
about
the kicks he risked. Like Brennan before
him, if
with less success, Kellin shoved his way
through
the milling throng of baggage train and
household
attendants. Solindish, all of them; he
recognized
the accent.
His
path was more difficult, but at last Kellin
reached
the steps and climbed to the top- His
grandsire
and great-uncle had left off hugging, but
the
warm glints in their eyes—one pair blue, the
other
yellow—were identical.
So is
everything else, except for Hart's missing
hand.
Kellin looked at the leather-cuffed stump,
wondering
what it was like to be restricted to a
single
hand. And Hart had lost more than a hand;
the old
Cheysuli custom of kin-wrecking still held.
He was,
because of his maiming, no longer consid-
ered in
the clans to be a warrior despite his blood
and his
Ur, the great hawk known as Rael.
Kellin
glanced up. Spiraling in a lazy circle over
the
palace rooftops was the massive raptor, black
edging
on each feather delineating wings against
the
blue of the sky. / may have a hawk when I am
a
warrior—
"Kellin!"
Brennan's hand closed over a shoul-
der.
"Kellin, here is your kinsman. You have never
seen
him, I know, but to know who Hart is a man
need
only look at me."
"But
you are different," Kellin said after a brief
inspection.
"You seem older, grandsire."
It
brought a shout of delighted laughter from
Hart,
who struck his twin-born rujholli a sharp
blow
with his only hand. "There. You see? I have
said it
myself—"
"Nonsense."
Brennan arched a single brow.
"You
surely count more gray in your hair than I."
"No,"
Kellin said doubtfully, which moved Hart
to
laughter again.
124
Jennifer Roberson
"Well,
we are very like," the Mujhar's twin said.
"If
there are differences, it is because the Lion is
a far
more difficult taskmaster than my own
Solinde."
"Has
Solinde thrown you out?" Kellin asked. "Is
that
why you have come?"
Hart
grinned. "And lose the best lord she ever
had?
No, I am not banished, nor am I toppled as
Bellam
was toppled by Carillon. The Solindish
love
me, now—or, if not love, they tolerate me
well
enough." He tapped the cuffed stump on top
of
Kellin's head. "Erinnish eyes, Kellin. Where is
the
Cheysuli in you?"
"You
have Homanan eyes," Kellin retorted,
"And
now your hair is gray; mine is all over
black."
"Sharp
eyes, and a sharper wit," Brennan said
dryly.
"The Erinnish side, I think."
Hart
nodded, smiling, as he assessed his young
kinsman,
"You are small for twelve, but your
growth
may come late. Corin's did."
"I
am ten," Kellin corrected. "Tall enough for
ten;
grandsire says so."
"Ten."
Hart shot a glance at Brennan. "I mis-
counted,
then."
"Aging,
are you?" Brennan's eyes were alight.
"Forgetting
things already?"
Hart
demurred at once. "I merely lost track, no
more.
But I did think him older."
"Does
it matter?" Brennan asked, laughing- "I
am
hardly infirm, rujho, The Lion will yet be mine
a
while. Kellin should be well-grown before he
inherits."
"I
was not thinking of thrones, rujho, but of
weddings."
"Weddings!
Kellin's? By the gods, Hart—"
"Wait
you." Hart put up his hand to silence
his
brother. "Before you begin shouting at me,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
125
as you
have always done—" he grinned, eyes
alight,
"—it is for you to say, of course. And now
that I
see he is so young, perhaps it is too soon."
"Too
soon for what?" Kellin asked. "A wedding?
Whose?
Mine?"
Hart
laughed- "So full of questions, harani."
"Mine?"
Kellin repeated.
Hart
sighed, scratching idly at his beardless
chin.
"I have a daughter—"
Brennan
interrupted in mock asperity. "You
have
four of them. Which one do you mean?"
Hart's
shrug was lopsided. "Dulcie is thirteen,
which
is closer to Kellin than the twins. And—"
He
shrugged again, letting go what he had begun.
"There
is reason for this, rujho ... we will speak
of it later."
"Too
young," Brennan said.
Hart's
eyes were speculative. "Too young to
marry,
perhaps, but not for a betrothal."
"This
can wait," Brennan said- "Let us be ruj-
holli
again before we must be rulers."
Hart
sighed heavily. "That may be difficult. I
have
all of them with me."
"Who?"
"They
wanted to come," Hart continued. "All
but
Biythe. She carries her first child after all this
time,
so we thought it best she remain behind. It
will be
my first grandchild, after all."
Diverted,
Brennan stared at him. "Is she wed?
When? I
thought Biythe intended never to marry."
"She
did not, after Tevis—" Hart paused to cor-
rect
himself, gritting the name through his teeth.
"—after
Lochiel." He forced himself to relax, blue
eyes
bright in remembered anger. "But she met a
Solindishman
of respectable family with whom
she
fell in love after much too long alone; she is
past
thirty." Hart grinned. "And she would be
quite
put out if she heard me say that. But she
126
Jennifer Roberson
and her
lordling married eight months ago, and
now
there will be a child."
"But
the rest .. ." Brennan glanced around.
"They
are here?"
"All
of them."
"lisa?"
"All
of them. They insisted. My girls are—" he
paused
delicately, "—somewhat firm in their con-
victions."
Brennan
eyed him. "You never were one for self-
discipline,
Hart. Why should I expect you to be
capable
of ruling your daughters when you never
could
rule yourself?"
"I
understand discipline quite well, leijhana.
tu'sai,"
Hart retorted. "But there are times when
my
girls make such things difficult."
Brennan
studied Hart a moment. "You have not
changed
at all, have you?"
Hart
grinned unrepentantly. "No,"
"Good."
Brennan clapped him on the back.
"Now,
come inside."
It was
abrupt, if unintended, but dismissal
nonetheless;
they turned as one and strode into
the
palace without a word or a glance to the boy
they
knew as the Prince of Homana.
"Wait!"
But they were gone, and a hand was on
K-ellin's
shoulder, pulling him back.
"Begrudge
them nothing, lad." It was Blais,
smiling
faintly as he moved to stand beside Kellin.
"But
what about me?" Kellin was aggrieved.
"Grandsire
dismissed the Lion, and now they dis-
miss
me"
"They
were twin-born, my lad, linked by far
more
than a simple brother-bond. And they've not
seen
one another, I am told, for nearly twenty
years."
"Twenty
years!" Kellin gaped. "I could have
been
bom twice over!"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 127
Blais
nodded. "When you are a king, 'tis not so
easy to
find the time—or the freedom—to go
where
you will. Hart and Brennan are halves of a
whole,
parted by title and realm for much too long
a
time." He briefly touched Kellin's shoulder. "Let
them be
whole again, lad. They'll be having time
for you
later."
Kellin
scowled. "And weddings, too?"
"Weddings!
What has this to do with wed-
dings?"
But as Blais stared after his vanished un-
cles,
his expression changed. "Aye, it could be
that.
'Tis a topic of much import in royal Houses."
He
grinned. "Thank the gods / am not in line for
a
throne, or surely they'd be disposing of me, too!"
"And
me?" Kellin demanded. "Am I to be mar-
ried
off with no say in the matter?"
Blais
did not appear unduly concerned. " 'Tis
likely,"
he confirmed. "You're to be Mujhar of Ho-
mana.
one day. I'll not doubt there've been letters
about
your future bride since you were formally
invested."
"Ckeysula,"
Kellin said darkly, proving to his
cousin
he knew the Old Tongue, too, "and I'll
choose
my own."
"Will
you. now?" Blais ran a hand through thick
black
hair, mouth quirking in wry amusement.
"
'Tis what Keely claimed of herself, when she
chafed
at her betrothal—but in the end she wed
the man
they promised her to."
"Scan."
Kellin nodded. "I know all about that."
He was
not interested in his great-aunt, whom he
had
never met. He cast a speculative glance up at
his
kinsman. "Then you are not promised?"
Blais
laughed. "Nor likely to be. I'm content to
share
my time with this woman, or that one, with-
out
benefit of betrothals."
Keilin
understood. "Meijhas," he said. "How
many,
Blais?"
128
Jennifer Robersoa
"Many."
Blais grinned. "Would I be admitting
how
many? A warrior does not dishonor his meij-
has by
discussing them casually."
"Many,"
Kellin murmured. He grinned back at
his
cousin. "Then I'll have many, too."
Blais
sighed and clapped his hand upon a slen-
der
shoulder. "No doubt you will. No prince I ever
knew
lacked for company. Now—shall we go in?
I'm for
meeting these Solindish kin of ours."
Ten
In
short order Blais and Kellin met all of the
Solindish
kin en masse in Aileen's sunny solar.
The
chamber seemed small of a sudden. Kellin
duly
took note of all his assorted kinfolk: lisa, the
Lady of
Solinde, with her profusion of white-
blonde
hair and gloriously expressive gray eyes;
the
middle daughters Cluna and Jennet, twins like
Hart
and Brennan, who reflected their mother's
coloring
and the beginnings of her beauty aug-
mented
by Cheysuli heritage; and Dulcie, the
youngest—the
girl whom Hart had said might be-
come
Kellin's cheysula.
To the
latter daughter Kellin paid the most at-
tention.
His knowledge of weddings and marriages
was
slight, but he took it more personally now
that
his name had been linked with hers.
He was,
however, briefly distracted. Blais, whom
he had
decided was everything a warrior should
be—and
his rescuer, to boot—was all of a sudden
different.
It was a subtle difference Kellin could
not name;
he knew only that Blais' attention to
his
young cousin was oddly diverted, as if some-
thing
else far more fascinating had caught his at-
tention-
Kellin understood none of it—Cluna and
Jennet
seemed silly girls to him, and not worth
more
time than was necessary to be polite—but
Blais
seemed most disposed to speak with both of
them
for a very long time.
129
130
Jennifer Robersoa
Soon
enough Blais offered to escort both Cluna
and
Jennet on a tour of Homana-Mujhar; and the
adults
suggested that what they had to say to one
another
was better said without Dulcie's and Kel-
lin's
presence. Kellin was instructed to do as Blais
did:
show his cousin every corner of the palace.
Outside
in the corridor, Kellin glared muti-
nously
at the closed door. No one has time for me.
The
Lion nearly ate me, but no one thinks about
THAT—
Beside
him, Dulcie laughed. "They set their
traps
for him."
Kellin
scowled. "What do you mean?" He thought
uncomfortably
of the bear-trap, conjured by her
words.
"Traps,"
she said succinctly- "They are frivolous
women,
both of them, only concerned with what
is
required to catch a handsome man." She gri-
maced
wryly. "I saw it; didn't you?"
Kellin
had not. "Of course I did," he said forth-
rightly,
denying his ignorance.
Dulcie
eyed him. "He is a handsome man, as
Cheysuli
go; I see now we are all alike, save for
some
differences in color." She grinned. "Your
eyes
are green; mine at least are yellow, like a
proper
Cheysuli's should be."
And
proper she was, black-haired and yellow-
eyed
with skin the same coppery hue as Blais' and
every
other Cheysuli Kellin had seen. Dulcie was
young—twelve?—but
clearly was Cheysuli in all
respects.
Kellin
felt a twinge of self-consciousness; just
now,
faced with Dulcie—and having met Blais—he
wanted
very much to be as Cheysuli as possible. "I
will be
Mujhar." He thought it a good offense.
Dulcie
nodded. "One of the reasons they want
us to
marry." She twined a strand of black hair
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
131
into
fingers and began twisting it. "Do vou want
to?"
Kellin
stared at her. How could she be so
matter-of-fact
about it? Importantly, he said,
"That
is something I will have to consider."
Dulcie
burst out laughing. "You consider? They
will no
more abide by what you wish—or me—
than a
stud horse minds his rider when a mare in
season
is near."
Kellin
had not thought of it that way. "But if I
am to
be Mujhar, they must listen to me."
Dulcie
shook her head. Her brows were straight,
serious
bars across a sculpted brow. She wore
black
hair in dozens of braids tied into a single
plait
and beaded at the bottom. "They will listen
to no
one, only to the prophecy." Dulcie grimaced.
"I
have had it stuffed into my ears often enough.
It is
all about blood, Kellin, and the need to mix
it
correctly. Don't you see?"
Kellin
did not, though once again he claimed he
did.
"I am the one who is to sire the Firstborn,"
he
declared. "Everyone says so."
Dulcie
grinned. "Not without a woman!"
Color
stained Kellin's face. "Is that supposed to
be
you?"
She
shrugged, twisting hair again. "What else
do you
suppose they talk about behind that door
but
inches in front of your face? They will have us
betrothed
by supper."
Kellin
glared at her- "Why to you? Why not to
Cluna,
or Jennet?"
"They
are too old for you," Dulcie said matter -
of-factly,
"and likely by now they have both set
their
caps for Blais. I think neither of them wants
a boy
for a husband."
It
stung. "I am nearly eleven."
"And
I nearly thirteen." Clearly, Dulcie was un-
dismayed
by his youth. "It has to do with the
132
Jennifer Roberson
blood,
as I said. There is only one bloodline left to
get,
Kellin—the one bloodline no Cheysuli desires
to acknowledge.
But how else do they expect to
get the
Firstborn? It wants Ihlini blood."
He was
startled, recalling Corwyth, and Lo-
chiel's
designs. "Ihlini!"
"Think
about it," Dulcie said impatiently. "They
need it
from somewhere, from someone who fa-
vors
the prophecy."
"But
not an Ihlini—"
"Kellin."
Her tone was exasperated. "That is
why my
father is proposing you and I wed. To get
the
Ihlini blood."
"But—"
It was preposterous. "You do not have—"
"Aye,"
Dulcie answered, "I do. We all of us do:
Biythe,
Cluna, Jennet, and me. Because of our
mother."
"But
she is Solindish."
Dulcie's
tone was freighted with condescension.
"Solinde
was the birthplace of Ihlini, Kellin. Re-
member
the stories of how they broke away from
the
Firstborn and left Homana?"
He did.
He had not thought of those stories in
years.
"Then—" Kellin frowned. He did not like
the
implication. "Then the Ihlini are not so differ-
ent
from the a'saii."
Dulcie
smiled. "Now you begin to understand."
He eyed
her assessively. "Can you conjure
godfire?"
"Of
course not. The Ihlini blood in us goes back
more
than two hundred years. No arts remain in
our
House." Dulcie shrugged. "Electra learned a
few
tricks, but nothing more. Tynstar did not
share
the Seker's blood with her."
He
frowned. "Then why should it matter now?"
"Because
no Cheysuli warrior would ever lie
down
with an Ihlini woman," Dulcie replied. "At
least—not
a willing one. So they will marry us off
A
TAPESTRY OF LsoffS 133
and
hope for the best ... if for no other reason
than to
keep the Ihlini from making their own
through
you."
"Through
me?"
Dulcie
sighed. "Are you stupid? If the Ihlini
caught
you and made you lie with an Ihlini
woman,
there could be a child. It would be the
child."
She laughed at his expression. "The Ihlini
would
use you, Kellin, like a prize Cheysuli stud."
Within
hours he was full to bursting on kin-
folk—and
most of them female, at that, full of gos-
sip and
laughter—and so to escape, Kellin went to
his own
chamber and climbed up into his huge
bed. He
made mountains and hillocks of his cover-
let,
then planned his own campaigns as Carillon
and
Donal must have planned them years before,
when
Homana was at war,
"With
Solinde," he muttered. He was not at the
moment
disposed to like Solinde, since she had
managed
to produce a twelve-year-old girl who
believed
he was stupid.
The
knock at the door was soft, but persistent.
Kellin,
startled from his game, called out crossly
for the
person to enter.
Aileen
came in, not a servant at all. Her hair,
rust
threaded with silver, was bound in braids
around
her head with pins that glittered in sun-
light.
Her green gown was simple but elegant. She
wore
around her throat a fortune in gold: the
mountain
cat torque that marked her Brennan's
cheysula.
Is that
what Dulcie expects from me? Kellin
jerked
flat his coverlet and slid out of the bed to
stand
politely. "Aye, granddame?"
"Sit."
Aileen waved him back onto the bed, then
sat
down on the edge herself. "Kellin—"
Whenever
he spoke with Aileen he unconsciously
134
Jeaaffer Rohersoa
echoed
the lilt of her accent. He blurted it out all
at once
before she could finish. " "Tis done, isn't
it?
You've betrothed us."
Aileen
arched reddish brows. "The idea doesn't
please
you, then?"
"No."
He fidgeted, self-conscious; he liked his
granddame
very much and did not want to upset
her,
but he felt he had to tell the truth. "I want
to
choose for myself."
The
faintest of creases deepened at the corner of
Aileen's
eyes. "Aye, of course you do. So did I. So
did
Brennan. But—"
"But
I can't, can I?" he challenged forthrightly.
"
Tis like Dulcie said: you'll do whatever you
want."
The
Queen of Homana sighed. " 'Tis true those of
royalty
have little freedom in matters of marriage."
"
'Tisn't fair," Kellin asserted. "You tell me I
will
have power when I am grown, but then I am
told
whom I must marry. That is no power."
"No,"
she agreed quietly. "I had none, nor
Conn,
whom I wanted to marry in place of
Brennan."
"In
place of—grandsire?" It was a completely
new
thought. "You wanted to marry my su'fali?"
"Aye."
He
blinked. "But you were already betrothed to
grandsire."
"Aye,
so I was. It did not lessen the wanting,
Kellin;
it was Corin I loved." Her green eyes were
kind.
"I know this may shock you, but I thought
it fair
to tell you. You are young, but not so young
the
truth should be kept from you, even those
truths
of men and woman."
"But
you married grandsire."
"Aye.
It was agreed upon before I was born: Ni-
all's
oldest son would marry Liam's daughter."
She
shrugged, mouth twisted awry. "And so I was
A
TAPESTHV W SJOIW
139
born
betrothed; it was only later, when Corin
came to
Erinn, that I realized how binding—and
how
wrong—the agreement was. I fell in love with
Corin
and he with me, but he was the stronger
person.
He said the betrothal must stand, and
sailed
away to Atvia."
"He
married Glyn." He had never seen her—he
had
seen only Hart of his scattered kin—but he
knew of
the mute woman Corin had wed.
"Years
later, aye. But then / was wed, and a
mother,
and my future was utterly settled."
Kellin
digested all of it. "You are telling me that
I
should marry Dulcie."
Aileen
smiled. "No."
It
stilled him a moment. "No?"
"I
told them to give you time, both of you time;
to let
you grow to adulthood. You've been kept
close
most of your life, Kellin, and 'we owe you
some
measure of freedom." An odd expression
crossed
her face. "The kind of freedom I had once.
before
coming to Homana."
Relief
overflowed. "Leijhana tu'sai, granddame!"
Aileen
laughed. "One day marriage will not be
such a
chore, my lad. That I promise."
"Was
it a chore for you?"
The
question stopped her. Aileen's eyes filled
with
memories he could not know, and were not
shared
with him. "For a very long time, it was,"
she
answered finally. "But not any longer."
"Why?"
"Because
when I allowed myself to stop re-
senting
my marriage; when I stopped resenting
the
Cheysuli tahlmorra that dictated I sleep with
Brennan
instead of with Corin, I fell in love with
your
grandsire." Her smile was poignant. "And so
now I
have a new regret: that I wasted so much
time in
not loving him."
Kellin
could only stare at his grandmother.
136
Jmoffer JtoAe—on
There
were no words for what he felt; he knew
only
that he was young, too young after all, to
begin
to understand the complexities of adulthood.
Something
new came into his head. "Did my
jehana
love my fehan?"
Aileen's
mouth softened. "Very much, Kellin.
'Twas a
match few people experience."
He
nodded dutifully, uncomprehending. "But
she
died when I was born." He looked searchingly
at
Aileen. "Is that why he hates me? Is that why
he gave
me up and went away—because I killed
his
cheystda?"
Aileen's
face drained. "Oh, Kellin, no! Oh, gods,
is that
what you've been thinking all these years?"
She
murmured something more in Erinnish, then
caught
him into her arms and pulled him close.
"I'll
swear on anything you like that your birth
did not
kill her, nor did it drive your father away.
He gave
you up because it was his tahlmorra to do
so."
"But
you believe he was wrong."
She
withdrew a little to look into his face.
"Have
you a touch of the kivama, lad? Have you
been
hiding the truth from us?"
"No,"
he blurted, intrigued. "What is it?"
"D'ye
know what people feel?" She touched her
breast.
"D'ye know what is in their hearts?"
Perplexed,
he frowned. "No. I just saw it in your
face."
Aileen
relaxed, laughing a little. "Aye, well—'tis
a gift
and a curse, my lad. Aidan had it in full
measure,
and Shona—'twould come as no surprise
if it
manifested in you."
Kellin
was bewildered. " 'Twas in your face,
granddame—and
your voice." And what I heard
you say
to grandsire once before. But that he would
not
admit.
Aileen
hugged him again briefly, then surrend-
A
TWESTHY W LIONS 137
ered
him to the bed as she rose and shook out her
skirts.
"I think he was wrong," she said firmly. "I
always
have. But I'm a woman, Kellin—and though
I'll
not swear a man loves his child less, he's not
borne
that babe in his body. Aidan did as he be-
lieved
he had to, to please the gods and his tahl-
morra.
And one day, / promise, you will ask him
to his
face how he could do such a thing."
He
heard the underlying hostility in her tone.
"But
not yet."
Aileen's
lips compressed. "Not yet."
After a
moment Kellin nodded. It was a familiar
refrain.
"Well," he said easily, "once I have killed
the
Lion, he will have to let me see him."
"Oh,
Kellin—"
"I
will," he declared. "I will kill it. And then I
shall
go to the Crystal Isle and show jehan the
head."
Aileen's
mouth, he saw, was filled with all man-
ner of
protest. But she made none of them. With
tears
in her eyes, the Erinnish Queen of Homana
left
her grandson quite alone.
Eleven
Blais'
door was ajar. Candlelight crept from the
room
into the corridor, slotted between door and
jamb;
Kellin peeked in carefully, not wanting to
discover
that Blais was not alone at all, but ac-
companied
by Cluna, or Jennet, or Cluna and Jen-
net.
They had taken up entirely too much of Blais'
time,
Kellin felt. It was his turn for his cousin's
attention.
He
paused there in the slot. He saw no female
cousins.
Only Blais himself, sprawled across the
great
tester bed with his lir, lovely Tanni, who lay
upon
her back with legs spread and underparts
exposed
in elaborate pleasure as Blais stroked
belly
fur. In that moment she was dog, not wolf;
Kellin
felt a pang of hope that perhaps he, too,
would
gain a wolf.
Then
again, there was lovely black Sleeta, his
grandsire's
mountain cat, and Hart's magnificent
Rael.
There were so many wonderful fir in the
world;
surely the gods would see to it he gained
the
perfect one-
Blais"
arm moved in slow repetition as he
stroked
Tanni. He lay on his belly, torso propped
up on
one elbow. Thick black hair fell forward
over
his shoulders. He wore no jerkin, only leg-
gings;
gold shone dully in candlelight against the
bronzing
of his flesh.
138
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
139
Someday
I will have such gold. Kellin wet his
lips.
"Blais?"
Blais
glanced up. Tanni flopped over on her side
and
bent her head around to inspect Kellin.
"Aye?"
Blais beckoned, smiling. "Come in, come
in—we
have no secrets, Tanni and I—and if I
wanted
privacy I would have shut the door."
Kellin
slipped through the slot between door
and
jamb. Linked behind his back, both hands
clutched
an object. "I have a question."
His
cousin's black brows arched. "Aye?"
He
sucked in a deep breath. "Are you going back
to
Solinde with them?"
"Solinde!"
Blais sat upright, shaking hair away
from
his face. "Why would I go to Solinde?"
"Because
of—them." Abashed, Kellin stared at
the
floor.
"Who?"
Blais began, and then he cut off the
question.
"Why do you ask, Kellin?"
Miserably,
Kellin looked up to meet Blais' steady
gaze.
"I saw you," he whispered. "Earlier today,
on the
sentry-walk."
"Ah."
Blais nodded.
"You
were kissing Jennet."
"Cluna."
It
stopped Kellin's attempt at explanation.
"Cluna?
But. I thought—"
Blais
laughed. "You were thinking 'twas Jennet
I
wanted? Well, aye, and so it was—yesterday.
Today
'twas Cluna." He shifted into a cross-legged
position,
one hand tugging gently at Tanni's ear.
"You
see, Cluna wanted to sample what her ruj-
holla
had tasted the day before. They compete in
everything."
He shrugged, grinning. "I accommo-
dated
them both."
Kellin
was bewildered. "Then which one will
you
marry?"
"Marry!"
Then Blais laughed. "Gods, Kellin—
140
Jennifer Roberson
neither.
Were you thinking I would? No. I'll not go
to
Solinde, and I'm doubting either of them could
bear to
live at Clankeep. There is too much of So-
linde
in them." He smiled more warmly at his
cousin.
"Were you thinking I meant to desert
you?"
Without
warning tears welled up. Kellin was as-
tonished
and ashamed, but there was a thing he
had to
say. "I have no one left," he explained un-
steadily.
"Only you. Urchin and Rogan—" He bit
into
his lip. "There is grandsire and granddame,
but it
isn't the same. 'Tisn't like true friends; they
have to
like me. But you , . . well—" he swallowed
heavily,
spilling it all at once. "I will be Mujhar
one
day, I would have need of a liege man."
Blais'
face was still- Only his eyes were alive in
the
dark mask: fierce and bright and yellow.
Kellin
felt all of his muscles knot up. He'll refuse
me—he
will say no. He wanted it so badly, and yet
he knew
it was unlikely. They were years and
worlds
apart, and very different in nature.
Blais'
tone was muted. "I had not expected
this."
Panic
nearly overwhelmed. "Have I offended
you?"
"Offended!
That the Prince of Homana desires
me to
be his liege man?" Blais shook his head.
"No,
there is no offense in this—only honor. And
I never
believed myself worthy of such honor."
"But
you are!" Kellin cried. "You saved me
from
the bear-trap, and the Lion. Your worth is
proved.
And—and there is no one else I would
have."
Blais
stared hard at Tanni, as if he feared to
give
away too much if he looked at Kellin. "There
has
been no liege man in Homana-Mujhar since
lan
died."
A TAPESTRY
OF LIONS
141
"He
would approve," Kellin said. "He would say
you are
worthy."
Blais
smiled faintly. "Then how could I refuse?"
Levity
faded again. He was suddenly very solemn.
"I
will serve you gladly, my lord."
Kellin
sighed. From behind his back he took the
knife
and showed it to Blais. It was gold and steel,
with a
rampant lion twisted about the hilt. Its
eye was
a single ruby. Softly, he said, "There is a
ceremony."
Blais
rose from the bed, knelt upon the floor,
and
drew his own Cheysuli long-knife. Without
hesitation
he placed the blade against the inside
of his
left wrist and cut into the flesh. "I swear,"
he said
quietly, "by this blood; by my name and
honor
and lir, that I will serve as liege man to
Kellin
of Homana as long as he will have me."
Blood
ran from the knife cut and dripped crimson
on the
stone floor. "Will you have me, my lord?"
Wonder
welled in Kellin's breast. "I will." And
then,
quoting the words he had learned long ago:
"Y'ja'hai.
Tu'jhalla dei. Tahlmorra lujhala mei wic-
can,
cheysu."
"Ja'hai-na,"
Blais responded. Then he offered
his
bloodied knife to his lord and took the other
in
return.
Kellin
looked down upon the Cheysuli weapon
with
its wolf-head hilt. He felt the tears well up,
but he
did not care. / am not alone any more.
He
awoke sweating near dawn, disoriented and
fearful.
He felt oppressed, squashed flat by dread. —
Lion—
Kellin
wanted to whimper. How could it come
to
pass? Blais was in the palace. Blais was his
liege
man. The Lion could not withstand a sworn
Cheysuli
liege man.
The
flesh rose on his bones. "Lion," he mur-
142
Jennifer Roberson
mured.
And then, searching for strength, "Tahl-
morra
lujhala mei wiccan, cheysu."
But the
sense of dread increased.
Kellin
wanted Blais. Together they might van-
quish
the beast forever. But to summon Blais
meant
he had to get out of bed.
Kellin
shuddered, biting into his bottom lip. He
smelled
the tang of fear on his flesh and hated
himself
for it. His scarred ankle ached, though he
knew it
completely healed.
"Cheysuli,"
he choked, squeezing his eyes tightly
shut.
"A warrior, someday." Warriors were brave.
Warriors
did what required doing.
From
beneath his pillow he took the Cheysuli
long-knife
bestowed by his liege man. Stiffly,
slowly,
Kellin slid down from his bed. He wore
only a
sleeping tunic that reached to mid-thigh;
bare
toes dug into the stone floor as if he might
take
root. You have a liege man. He will fend off
the.
Lion. He clutched the knife in both hands, then
crept
out of his room into the corridor beyond-
False
dawn, he thought; even the servants still
slept.
An ideal time for a lion to stalk the halls.
Kellin
chewed his lips painfully, then unclenched
his
teeth. With the knife as his ward, he moved
slowly
and deliberately toward the door that was
Blais',
so far down the corridor as to be a league
away.
Kellin
pushed open the door. Candlelight from
the
corridor cressets spilled inside, illuminating
the chamber.
Kellin saw tousled black hair, the
gleam
of a Kr-band, and the glint of Tanni's eyes
from
the foot of the bed where she lay.
"Blais,"
he said. "Blais—the Lion is come."
Blais
sat up at once, one hand reaching for the
royal
knife at his bedside. His eyes, pupils ex-
panded
in darkness, showed a ring of purest yel-
low
around the edges. "Kellin?"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
143
"The
Lion." Kellin repeated. "Will you come?
We have
to kill it."
Blais
ran a hand through his hair. He yawned.
"The
lion?" And then he came fully awake. "Kel-
lin—"
But he cut it off. His expression was
masked.
"Where is it?"
Kellin
gestured with his knife. "Out there. Walk-
ing the
corridors."
Blais
grunted and slid out of bed. He was nude
save
for /t'r-gold, but paused long enough to slip
on
leggings. Barefoot, he patted Tanni and mur-
mured a
word in the Old Tongue, Then he smiled
at
Kellin. "A wolf is no match for a lion."
Kellin
felt markedly better as Blais followed
him out
into the corridor. "A sword might be bet-
ter,"
he said, "but I am not old enough yet. Grand-
sire
said."
"Have
you not begun swordplay?"
"Aye,
a little—but the arms-master says it will
be a
long time before I have any skill. I am too
small."
Blais
nodded. "A Homanan skill. I am no good
at it,
myself, though the gods know Sean tried to
teach
me often enough." He shrugged. "I have no
aptitude."
They
went on. Torchlight glinted off the earring
in
Blais' hair. He looked fully awake and alert,
Kellin
thought in satisfaction. This time the Lion
will
lose.
When
they neared the Great Hall, Kellin pressed
himself
against the wall. A shudder claimed his
body
from head to toe, stilling only as Blais closed
a hand
over one shoulder.
"I
am your liege man," Blais told him. "I am
with
you, my lord."
Kellin
grinned his relief. " 'Tis inside," he said.
"I
can feel it." To Blais, it was not difficult to
144
Jennifer Roberson
explain;
a liege man would know, would under-
stand.
"He has come to swallow Homana."
The
tone was excessively neutral. "How do you
know
this?"
"The
fortune-teller said so."
Blais
seemed briefly dubious, but let it go. He
smiled.
"Then we shall have to see to it the lion
swallows
nothing but my knife blade."
Joy and
wonder bubbled up in Kellin. This is
what it
is to have a liege man!
Blais
pushed open one of the heavy silver doors,
sliding
effortlessly inside. Kellin slipped through
behind
him. "Here?" Blais whispered.
"Somewhere
.. ." Kellin moved forward slowly,
wishing
he might have the courage to use the knife
he
clutched.
Blais
stepped out into the center of the long hall
and
strode the length of the firepit. Coals glowed
from
its depths beneath an ashen cloak.
The
alcove curtain near the massive throne bil-
lowed
in the darkness. A single coal fell out of the
pit and
crumbled into ash. "There!" Kellin gasped.
Blais
reacted instantly, running silently toward
the
alcove. He caught the curtain and tore it aside,
knife
glinting.
"Is
it there?" Kellin cried. "Blais?"
Blais
went rigid, then reeled back from the al-
cove.
Kellin heard the slap of bare torso against
the
wall. The knife fell from a slack hand- "Tanni!"
Blais
cried. "Tanni—"
Kellin
ran. By the time he reached Blais, his
kinsman
was slumped against wall and floor, body
trembling
convulsively. Yellow eyes were wide
and
crazed, turned inside out. Sweat filmed his
face.
"Blais!"
Blais
shuddered. Then he reached out and caught
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
145
Kellin's
thin arms, closing his taloned fingers into
flesh.
"Tanni—Tanni—Hr—"
"Blais!"
"—gods—oh,
gods .. . no—" Blais' face was the
color
of the ash in the firepit. "Tanni—" He let go
of
Kellin all at once and lurched to his feet.
"Blais—"
But Blais
did not respond. He stumbled toward
the end
of the hall, seeking doors; his grace was
utterly
banished, leaving him reeling like a drunken
man, or
a sick one. He smashed into one of the
doors
and shoved it open.
Kellin
gathered up the fallen knife and ran after
his
liege man. Fear of the Lion was quite van-
quished;
what he feared now was that something
terrible
had befallen Blais. Don't let him go, too!
Blais
ran even as Kellin caught up, but his body
betrayed
him. Only his outstretched hands, re-
bounding
off walls, kept him upright. Ropes of
muscles
stood up in relief against naked flesh.
"Blais!"
And
then they were in BJais' chamber, and there
was
blood everywhere, on the floor and across the
bed; a
lurid arc against the curtains. Blais tore
them
aside, then fell down onto the bed. "Tanni—"
People
crowded in the door. Kellin heard the
questions,
the startled exclamations, but he an-
swered
none of them- He could only stare at the
warrior
who had been his cousin, his liege man,
his
friend; who now was a lirless Cheysuli.
"Blais—"
This time it was a wail because he
knew.
Brennan
was behind him. "Kellin . ., Kellin,
come
away."
"No."
Hart
was with him, face shiny it was stretched
so
tautly across the bones of his cheeks. "Come
away,
Kellin. There is nothing you can do."
146
Jennifer Robersoa
"No!"
Kellin threw down the knives, then ripped
himself
out of Brennan's reaching hands. "Blais—
Blais—you
cannot. No! I need you. I need you! You
are my
liege man!" He fastened both hands
around
one of Blais' rigid arms and tugged, trying
to pull
his kinsman away from the gutted wolf.
"BlaisI"
Blais
turned a ravaged face on them all, "Take
him
away .. . take him from here."
"No!"
Kellin gulped back the fear. "Tu'Jalla
dei—"
Brennan
caught Kellin's arms. "Come away."
"He
can't go!" Kellin screamed. "I refuse him
leave.
I am the Prince of Homana and I refuse him
leave
to go!"
They
were all of them in the chamber: Aileen,
lisa,
his Solindish cousins. Dulcie's yellow eyes
were
wide.
"Tu'Jalla
dei!" Kellin shrieked. "He has to stay
if I
say so. He swore. Tell him, grandsire! Tu'Jalla
dei."
Brennan's
face was stark. "Such things are for
gods to
do, not men, not even princes and kings.
This is
the price, Kellin. Blais accepted it when he
accepted
his lir. So did I. So did we all. And so
will
you."
"I
will not! I will not!"
Aileen's
voice shook, "Kellin—"
"No!
No! No!" He writhed in Brennan's grip.
"He
swore by blood and honor and his lir—~" Kel-
lin
broke it off on a strangled gasp. Indeed, by
his
lir. and now that lir was dead. "Blais," Kellin
choked.
"Don't leave me."
Blais
stared blindly. Blood smeared his chest. "I
never
knew," he said dazedly. "I never knew what
pain
there was in it."
Brennan
looked old beyond his years. "No war-
rior
can. Not before it happens."
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
147
Blais
held up his bloodied hands. "I am—
empty—"
He shoved a forearm across his brow and
left a
bloodslick behind, shining in his hair.
"Tu'Jalla
dei," Kellin said brokenly.
But
Blais seemed not to hear. He stripped off
his
^'r-bands and the earring and put them on the
blood-soaked
bed. Then he gathered up Tanni's
body
into the cradle of naked arms and turned
toward
the door.
As one,
they all moved aside. Blais went out of
the
chamber as wolf blood splashed on stone.
"Blais!"
Kellin screamed.
Brennan
lifted him from the ground, containing
him
easily. "Let him go. He is a walking dead
man;
let him go with dignity."
"But
I need him."
"He
needs his ending more." Brennan held him
close.
"I wish I could spare you this. But you, too,
are
Cheysuli, and the price shall be yours as well."
Kellin
stopped struggling. He hung slackly in
his
grandfather's arms until Brennan set him
down.
"No," he said then, looking up into the face
that
looked so old in its grief. "No, there will be
no
price. I will have no lir."
Hart's
voice was kind. "You cannot gainsay
what
the gods bestow."
"/
will." Kellin's voice took on a hard bitterness.
"I
refuse to have one,"
"Kellin."
Now Aileen, moving forward.
He cut
her off at once with an outflung hand, "I
refuse
it. Do you hear?" He looked at his kinfolk
one by
one. "They all leave. All of them. First my
jehan.
Then Rogan. Then Urchin . .. and now
Blais."
His voice sounded alien even to Kellin.
"They
all go from me."
Brennan
touched his shoulder. "This grief will
pass,
one day."
Kellin
knocked the hand away. "No! From now
Jennifer
Roberson
148
on I
walk alone. With no friends, no liege man, no
Hr."
He looked at Brennan fiercely. "And I will not
care."
Aileen
was horrified. "KeHin!"
He felt
a roaring in his head; felt it rush up
from
his belly and engulf his chest, threatening his
throat.
If he opened his mouth, he would vomit.
He knew
its name: rage. And a hatred so viru-
lent he
thought he might choke on it.
"No
more," he said quietly, making it an oath.
"The
gods cannot take from me what I do not
have."
Interval
Naked,
the woman lay next to him in the dark-
ness.
She had not slept when he was done, for he
had, as
always, disturbed her with his intensity,
and she
could not tumble out of passion into sleep
the way
he could -
She lay
very quiet next to him, not allowing her
flesh
to touch his. If she disturbed him, he would
waken
in ill humor, and she had learned to avoid
his
black moods by submitting everything to him:
will,
body, spirit. She had learned the trick long
ago,
when she had first become a whore.
She let
his warmth warm her, driving away the
chill
of the winter night.-Her dwelling was tiny,
not so
much more than a hovel, and she could not
afford
the endless supply of peat and wood that
others
bought or bargained for to get them through
the
Homanan winter. She hoarded what she had,
although
when he came she piled it all on the
hearth.
Even if it meant going without for days
after.
He
shifted, and she held her breath. One broad
hand
moved across her belly, then cradled her left
breast-
The fingers were slack and passionless. He
had
spent that passion earlier; though he was eas-
ily
roused, she did not do it now.
She
sighed shallowly, not daring to move his
hand.
He had bought her body, let him fondle it
149
ISO
Jennifer Robersoa
as he
chose. It made no difference to her. At least
he was
a prince.
She had
other lovers, of course, but none so fine
as he-
They were hard men, tough men, with little
refinement
and less imagination. He, at least, was
clean,
with a good man smell, lacking the stench
of
others who had no time for baths, nor the
money
to buy wood to heat water- It was no trou-
ble to
him to bathe whenever he wished; she was
grateful
for it. She was grateful for him.
That he
had chosen her was a miracle in itself.
She was
young still, only seventeen, and her body
had not
yet coarsened with use, so she presented
a
better appearance than some of the other women.
And she
had high, firm breasts above a slim waist,
with
good hips below. She would lose it all, of
course,
with the first full-term pregnancy, but so
far she
had been able to rid herself of the seeds
before
any took root.
But
what of h is seed?
She
laughed noiselessly, startled by the thought.
Would
she bear a prince's bastard? And if she did,
would
he provide for her? Perhaps she could leave
this
life behind and find a good, solid man who
would
forget about her past. Or would he take the
child,
claiming it his?
It was
possible- It had happened in the past, she
had
heard; the bastards had been sent to Clan-
keep,
to the shapechangers, to grow up with bar-
ren
women. He would not risk leaving a halfling
with a
Homanan woman, lest someone attempt to
use it
for personal gain.
He
called her meijha and meijhana, words she
did not
know. She had asked him if he had a wife,
and he
had laughed, correcting her: "Cheysula,"
he had
said, and then 'Wo, / have no cheysula.
They
expect me to wed my SoUndish cousin, but f
will
not do it."
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 151
She
turned her head slightly to look at his face.
In
sleep he was so different, so young, so free of
the
tight-wound tension. It was a good face in
sleep,
more handsome than any she had welcomed
in her
bed, and she longed to touch it. But to do
so would
waken him, and he would change, and
she
would see the customary hardness of his
mouth
and eyes, and the anger in his soul.
She
sighed. She did not love him. She was not
permitted
to love him; he had told her that plainly
their
first bedding three months before. But she
did
care. For all his black moods he was kind
enough
to her, even if it was an unschooled, rough
kindness,
as if he had forgotten how.
He had
spoken harshly to her more often than
she
would choose, but he had only struck her once;
and
then he had turned away abruptly with a
strange,
sickened look in his eyes, and he had
given
her gold in place of silver. It had been worth
the
bruise, for she bought herself a new gown she
wore
the next time he came, and he had smiled at
her for
it.
Her
smile came unbidden; a woman's, slow and
smug.
In my bed lies the Prince of Homana.
He
moved. He stretched, flexing effortlessly, and
then he
sat up. She saw the play of muscles be-
neath
the flesh of his smooth back, the hint of sup-
ple
spine, the tangle of black hair across the nape
of his
neck. She lay very still, wondering if she
had
spoken her thoughts aloud.
For a
moment his profile was very clear in the
dim
light, outlined by the coals in the tiny hearth
across
the room. She saw the elegant brow and
straight
nose. He was yet groggy with sleep and
soft
from it; when the sleep fled, his bones would
look
older and harder, with black brows that drew
down
all too often and spoiled the youth of his
face.
1S2
He
slanted her a glance. "Did you dream of
i"
me?
She
smiled. "How could I not?"
It was
his customary question and her custom-
ary
answer, but this time neither appeared to
please
him. He scowled and got out of the narrow
bed,
then reached to pull on black breeches and
boots.
She admired as always the suppleness of
his
muscles, the lithe movements of his body. It
was the
Cheysuli in him, she knew, though he did
not
seem other than Homanan. She had seen a
warrior
up close once and still shivered when she
recalled
the strangeness of his eyes. Beast-eyes,
some
folk called them, and she agreed with them.
His
were not bestial. They could be discon-
certingly
direct and nearly always challenging,
but
they were green, and a man's eyes. For that
she was
grateful.
He
lifted the jug from the crooked table and
poured
wine, not bothering to don the shirt and
fair-lined
doublet on the floor beside the bed. She
hunched
herself up on one elbow. "Are you going?"
"I
have had from you what I came for." He did
not
turn to look at her. "Unless you have discov-
ered
yet another position."
She,
who believed she could no longer blush,
burned
with embarrassment. "No, my lord." She
had
displeased him; he would go, and this time
he
might not come back.
He
swallowed down the wine and set the mug
down
with a thump. "This vintage is foul. Have
you no
better?"
"No,
my lord."
Her
flat tone roused something in him. He
turned,
and the thin gold torque around his throat
glinted.
"You reprove me?"
"No!"
She sat up hastily, jerking the bedclothes
A
TAfCSTSY OF LHMS
SS3
over
her breasts in an instinctive bid for a mod-
esty
she had surrendered years before. "Never!"
He
scowled at her blackly. His mouth had taken
on its
familiar hard line. And then he smiled all
unexpectedly,
and she marveled again at the
beauty
of a man who could be cruel and kind at
once.
"I have frightened you again." He poured
more
wine and drank it, seemingly unaffected by
its
foul taste. "Do you fear I will turn into beast-
shape
here before you?" He laughed as she caught
her
breath, showing white teeth in a mocking grin.
"Have
no fear, meijhana ... there is no /ir-shape
for
this Cheysuli. I have renounced it. What you
see
before you is what I am." He still smiled, but
she saw
the anger in his eyes. "My arms are bare,
and my
ear. There is no shapechanger in this
room."
She
held her silence. He had shown her such
moods
before.
He
swore beneath his breath in a language she
did not
know. He would not come to her bed again
this
night, to set her flesh afire with a longing she
had
believed well passed for her until he had come
with no
word of explanation for a prince's pres-
ence in
a Midden whore's hovel.
A
sudden thought intruded. He might not come
back
ever.
The
fear made her voice a question she had
sworn
never to ask. "Will you leave me?"
His
eyes narrowed. "Do you care?"
"Oh
aye, my lord—very much!" She believed it
would
please him; it was nonetheless the truth.
A muscle
jumped in his jaw. "Do I please you?
Do you
care for me?"
She
breathed it softly. "More than any, my
lord."
"Because
I am a prince?"
She
smiled, believing she had found the proper
IS4 Jennifer Roberson
answer.
"Oh no, my lord. Because you are you. I
care
for you."
He
turned from her. Stunned, she watched as he
put on
his shirt and doublet, then swept up and
pinned
on the heavy green cloak. It was lined with
rich
dark fur, and worth more than the house she
lived
in. She saw the gold cloak-brooch glitter in
firelight,
ruby gemstone burning. The brooch was
worth
more than the entire block.
And
then he strode across the room to her and
caught
her throat in his hands, bending over her.
"No,"
he said. "You do not care for me. Say you
do
not."
She
grasped at his hands. She wanted very
badly
to say the proper words. "But I do! Your
coin is
welcome—I am a whore, for all that, and
claim
myself no better—but it is you I care for!"
He
swore raggedly and released her so abruptly
she
fell back against the wall. He unpinned the
brooch
and dropped it into her lap. "You will not
see me
again."
"My
lord!" A hand beseeched. "Why? What have
I
done?"
"You
said you cared." His eyes were black in
poor
light. "And that I will not have."
"Kellin!"
She dared to use his name, but he
turned
away in a swirl of green wool and was
gone.
The door swung shut behind him-
The
brooch that would buy her freedom was
cold
comfort in the night as she cried herself to
sleep.
One
Kellin
stepped out of the slope-roofed hovel into
the
slushy alley and stopped. He stared blankly
at the
darkened dwelling opposite and expelled a
smoking
breath. He inhaled deeply, almost con-
vulsively,
and the cold air filled his lungs with the
anticipated
burning. The alley stank of peat, filth,
ordure.
Even winter could not overcome the stench
of
depression and poverty.
He
heard movement inside the hovel, through
the
cracks of ill-made walls: a woman crying.
Too
harsh with her. Kellin gritted his teeth. Self-
contempt
boiled up to replace the thought. What
does
she expect? I •warned her. I told her not to care.
There
is nothing in me for anyone to care about,
least
of all a father ... f will not risk losing another
who claims
to care for me.
The
sobs were soft but audible because he made
himself
hear them. He used them to flagellate; he
deserved
the punishment.
She was
well-paid. That is what she cries for.
But he
wondered if there were more, if the
woman
did care—
Kellin
gritted his teeth, fighting off the part of
his
nature that argued for fairness, for a renuncia-
tion of
the oath he had sworn ten years before.
She is
a whore, nothing more. They all of them are
whores.
Where better to spill the seed for which I am
so
valued?
157
Jennifer
Roberson
158
Kellin
swore, hissing invective between set teeth.
His
mood was foul. He detested the duality that
ravaged
his spirit. He had no use for softness, for
compassion;
he wanted nothing at all to do with
the
kind of relationship he saw binding his grand-
sire
and his granddame. That kind of honor and
respect
simply begged for an ending, and therefore
begged
for pain.
And
what was there for him in a relationship
such as
that shared by the Mujhar and his queen?
Had
they not made it clear, all of them, that it
was not
Kellin whom they cared about, but the
seed he
would provide?
Bitterness
engulfed. Let the whores have it. It will
serve
them better; expelling it serves ME.
But the
conscience he had believed eradicated
was not
entirely vanquished. Despite his wishes,
he did
regret his harshness with the woman; did
regret
he could not see her again, for she had been
good to
him. There had been a quiet dignity about
her
despite her life, and a simple acceptance that
the
gods had seen fit to give her this fate.
Self-contempt
made it easy to transfer resent-
ment to
the woman. She would make a good Chey-
suli.
Better than I do; I, after all, am at war with
the
gods.
It was
time to leave, lest he give in to the temp-
tation
to go back inside the hovel and offer com-
fort.
He could not afford that. It was too easy to
succumb,
too easy to give in to the weakness that
would
lead in time to pain. Far better to keep pain
at bay by
permitting it no toehold in the ordering
of his
spirit.
Kellin
glanced over and saw the familiar
guardsmen
waiting in the shadows between two
ramshackle
dwellings. Four shapes. Four watch-
dogs,
set upon his scent by the Mujhar. Even now,
even in
adulthood, no matter where Kellin went
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS
IS9
or what
he chose to do, they accompanied him.
Discreetly,
usually, for he was after all the Prince
of
Homana, but their loyalty was the Mujhar's.
As a
boy, he had accepted it as perfectly natural
and
never thought to question the policy and pro-
tection.
As a man, however, it chafed his spirit
because
such supervision, in his eyes, relegated his
own
abilities, his own opinions, to insignificance.
Initially
his protests were polite, but the Mujhar's
intransigence
soon triggered an angrier opposi-
tion.
Yet the Mujhar remained obdurate. His heir
could
not—would not, by his order—be permitted
to walk
unaccompanied in Mujhara. Ever.
Kellin
had tried losing his dogs, but they tracked
him
down. He tried tricking them, but they had
proved
too smart. He tried ordering them, but
they
were the Mujhar's men. And at last, terribly
angry,
he tried to fight them. To a man, despite
his
insults, they refused to honor him so.
He was
accustomed to them now. He had trained
them to
stay out of his tavern brawls. It had taken
time;
they did not care to see their prince risk
himself,
but they had learned it was his only es-
cape,
and so they left him to it.
Kellin
shivered, wrapping the heavy cloak more
tightly
around his shoulders. It was cold and very
clear.
The cloud cover had blown away, which
meant
the nights would be bitter cold until the
next
snowstorm came. Already he felt the chill in
his
bones; mouthing a curse, he moved on.
He did
not know his destination. He had thought
to
spend the night with the woman, but that was
over
now. She had committed the unpardonable;
the
only punishment he knew was to deny her the
comfort
of his body, so that he, too, was denied
the
contentment he so desperately desired despite
his
vow.
He
splashed through crusted puddles. It did not
160
Jennifer Roberson
matter
to him how it damaged his boots. He had
many
more at home. This sort of revenge offered
little
comfort, but it was something. Let the ser-
vants
gossip as they would. It gave him some
small
pleasure to know he was entirely unpredict-
able in
mood as well as actions.
Better
to keep them off guard. Better to make them
wonder.
As he
wondered himself; it was a twisted form
of
punishment Kellin meted out to bind himself
to his
vow. If he relaxed his vigilance, he might
be
tempted to renounce his oath. He would not
permit
himself that, lest the gods win at last and
turn
him into a Cheysuli who thought only of his
tahlmorra,
instead of such things as a son badly in
need of
a father.
Behind
him, the watchdogs also splashed. Kellin
wondered
what they thought of their honorable
duty:
to spend the night out of doors while their
prince
poured his royal seed into a whore's body-
They
will get no Firstborn of her, or of any other
whore.
Ahead
in wan moonlight, a placard dangled be-
fore a
door. A tavern. Good. I am of a mind to start
a game
not entirely like any other.
Kellin
shouldered open the cracked door and
went
in, knowing the dogs would follow along in
a
moment. He paused just inside, accustoming his
eyes to
greasy candlelight, and found himself in a
dingy
common room. The tables were empty save
one,
where five men gathered to toss dice and
rune-sticks.
For a
moment only. Kellin considered joining
them.
But instead he went to another table and
hooked
over a stool, motioning with a jerk of his
head to
the man in the stained cloth apron.
The
watchdogs came in, marked where he was,
and
went to another table. He saw the tavern-
A
TAPESTRY OF LSO\S
161
keeper
waver, for they wore tunics of the Muj-
haran
Guard and doubtless meant more coin than
a lone
stranger.
Smiling
faintly, Kellin drew his knife and stuck
the
point into wood, so that the heavy hilt stood
upright.
The rampant lion curled around the hilt,
single
ruby eye glinting in greasy light.
As
expected, the tavern-keeper arrived almost at
once.
"My lord?"
"Usca,"
Kellin ordered. "A jug of it."
The man
nodded, but his gaze flicked to the
guardsmen.
"And for them?"
Kellin
favored him with a humorless smile.
"They
drink what they like. Ask them."
The man
was clearly puzzled. "My lord, they
wear
the Mujhar's crest. And you have it here, on
your
knife. Doesn't that mean—"
Kellin
overrode him curtly. "It means we have
something
in common, but it does not mean we
sleep
together." He yanked the broochless cloak
from
his shoulders and slapped it across the table.
He
waited. The man bowed and hastened away.
When
the usca was brought, Kellin poured the
crude
cup full. He downed it all rapidly, waiting
for the
fire. It came, burning his belly and clear
down
into his toes. All at once there was life in
his
body, filling up flesh and blood, and the pain
that
accompanied it.
He had
fought it so very long. Because of his
oath,
because of his need, he had shut himself off
to
emotions, severing his spirit from the Kellin he
had
been, because he could not bear the pain- He
had
seen the bewildered hurt in his grandmother's
eyes
and learned to ignore it, as he learned to
withstand
even the scorn in his grandfather's
voice;
eventually, in fact, he learned to cultivate
that
scorn, because it was a goad that drove him
Jennifer
JRobermn
162
to
maintain his vow even when, in moments of
despair
and self-hatred, he desired to unswear it.
One day
intent became habit, despite the occa-
sional
defiance of a conscience battered for ten
years
into compliance. He was what he was; what
he had
made himself to be. No one could hurt him
now.
Kellin
drank usca. He wanted to fight very
badly.
When the fire filled head and belly, he rose
and
prepared to make his way to the table full of
Homanans
who laughed and wagered and joked.
A man
stepped into his path, blocking his way.
"Well
met, my lord. Shall we share a cup of
wine?"
Kellin's
tongue was thick, but the words suc-
cinct
enough. "I am drinking usca."
"Ah,
of course; forgive me." The stranger smiled \.
faintly.
A lifted hand and a slight gesture beck-
{
oned
usca from the tavern-keeper, j-
Kellin
stared hard at the stranger, struggling to ^
make
out the face. The room shifted and ran to-
gether
so that the colors all seemed one. Too much
usca
for conversation, i
When
the new jug came, the stranger poured
|
two
cups full and offered one to Kellin. "Shall we f
sit, my
lord?" ^
Kellin
did not sit. He set his hand around the
,f
hilt of
his knife, still standing upright in the table,
and
snapped it from the wood.
The
stranger inclined his head. "I am unarmed,
my
lord, and offer no threat to you."
Kellin
stared into the face. It was bland, beguil-
ing;
all mask and no substance. Perhaps he will
give me
my fight. He wanted the fight badly;
needed
it desperately, to assuage the guilt he felt
despite
his desire not to. Physical pain is easier to
bear
than emotional pain.
For
years he had sought it, finding it in taverns
A
TAPESTRr OF LIONS 163
among
men who held back nothing. It was a re-
lease
from self-captivity more wholly satisfying
than
any other he knew.
This
man, perhaps? Or another. Kellin gestured
and sat
down, laying the knife atop the table as
he took
the brimming cup.
"A
fortune-game?" the other man suggested.
It
suited. Kellin nodded and the man took from
beneath
his cloak a wooden casket, all carved
about
its satiny sides with strange runic devices.
Kellin
frowned. Wait—
But the
man turned the casket over and spilled
out
sticks and cubes. The sticks were blank and
black.
The cubes turned lurid purple and began a
dervish-dance.
"Aye,"
the man said softly, "you do remember
me."
Kellin
was abruptly sober. He marked the famil-
iar
blue eyes, the russet hair, the maddeningly se-
rene
expression. How could I have forgotten?
"Aye,"
Convyth said. "Would you care to play
out the
game?"
Kellin
looked for his watchdogs and saw them
spilled
slackly across their table. Their attitudes
bespoke
drunkenness to a man who knew no bet-
ter;
Kellin knew better.
He
looked then at the other men who wagered
near
his own table, and saw they seemed not to
know
anyone else was in the room.
Breath
ran shallowly. Kellin tensed on his stool
and
quietly took up the knife. "You have come for
me."
Convyth
watched the bright cubes spin, seem-
ingly
undismayed by the presence of a weapon.
"Oh,"
he said lightly, "presently. I am in no
hurry."
He gestured briefly, and the knife fell out
of
Kellin's hand. "There is no need for that here."
Kellin
swore and grabbed at it, only to find the
164
Jennifer Roberson
metal
searingly hot. "Kureshtin—" He dropped
the
knife at once, desiring to blow on burned fin-
gers
but holding himself in check. He would not
give
the Ihlini any measure of satisfaction.
Corwyth's
eyes narrowed assessively- "No more
the
boy," he observed, "but a man well-grown,
and
dangerous. Someone who must be dealt with."
Kellin
did not much care for the implication.
"You
tried before to 'deal' with me and failed."
"Aye.
I misjudged you. A failing I shall not be
moved
to repeat."
The
rune-sticks joined the cubes in an obscene
coupling
upon the table. Neither man watched.
They
looked at each other instead.
A
vicious joy welled up in Kellin's soul. Here
was the
fight he had wanted. "I will not accom-
pany
you."
"One
day," Corwyth said. "Be certain of it, Kel-
lin."
He gestured, and the cubes and rune-sticks
fell
into a pattern: one arrow pointed at Kellin,
the
other directly north. "You see? Even the game
agrees."
As he
had done so many years before, Kellin
made a
fist and banged it down upon the table.
The
arrows broke up and fell in disarray to the
floor.
Sticks and cubes scattered.
Corwyth
showed good teeth. "This is a game,"
he
said, "mere prelude to what will follow. If you
think
you have the power to prevent it, you are
indeed
a fool." Slender fingers were unmoving on
scarred
wood. "I do not threaten, Kellin; I come
to warn
instead. Lochiel is too powerful. You can-
not
hope to refuse him."
"I
can. I do." Kellin displayed equally good
teeth,
but his grin was more feral. "He has tried
before
and failed, just as you did. I begin to think
Lochiel
is not so powerful as he would have us
believe,"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 165
Corwyth's
tone was mild- "He need only put out
his
hand, and you will be in it. He need only close
that
hand and crush the life from you."
Kellin
laughed. "Then tell him to do it."
Corwyth's
gaze was steady. "Before, you were a
boy.
They kept you close, and safe. But you are no
longer
a boy, and such chains as you have known
will
bind more than body, but the spirit as well.
Do you
not fight those chains? Do you not come
often
into the Midden, fighting a battle within
your
soul as well as the war with the constraints
of your
station?"
Kellin's
laughter died. Corwyth knew too much.
He was
overly conversant with what was in Kel-
lin's
mind. "I do what I desire to do. That has
nothing
to do with Lochiel."
"Ah,
but it has everything to do with Lochiel.
You
have a choice, my lord: keep yourself to
Homana-Mujhar
and away from sorcery, yet know
there
will always be the threat of a traitorous Ho-
manan."
His smile was slight as he purposely
evoked
the memory of-Rogan. "Or come out as
you
will, as you desire to, and know that each step
you
take is watched by Lochiel."
Kellin
controlled the anger. Such a display was
what
Corwyth wanted to provoke; he would not
satisfy
him. "Then I challenge Lochiel to try me
here
and now."
Corwyth
shook his head. "A game requires time,
my
lord, or the satisfaction is tainted . . - much
like a
man who spends himself too quickly be-
tween a
woman's thighs. There are the rules to be
learned
first, before the game commences," The
smile
was banished. Corwyth leaned forward.
"This
night, you shall go free. This night you may
go home
to Homana-Mujhar—or to whatever whore
you are
keeping—and may sleep without fear for
your
soul. But you are to know this: you are not
166
Jennifer Robersw
free.
Your soul is not unclaimed. Lochiel waits in
Valgaard.
When he touches you, when he deigns
to
gather you up, be certain you shall know it."
The
Ihlini sat back, but his gaze did not waver
from
Kellin's. He smiled again, if faintly, and took
something
else from beneath his cloak. He set it
flat on
the table between them.
Sorcerer's
Tooth.
The
years fell away. Kellin was a frightened boy
again
lost in Homanan forests, with a tutor slain
and a
best friend dying, and the Lion on his trail.
"Keep
it," Corwyth said, "as a token of my
promise."
Kellin
leapt to his feet, groping for the knife, but
a sheet
of purple flame drove him away from the
table.
When the smoke of it shredded away, the
Ihlini
was gone.
Two
Coughing,
Kellin went at once to his watchdogs
and
found them dead. There were no wounds, no
marks,
no blood to prove what had befallen them,
the
four men were simply dead. They slumped
across
the table with blank eyes bulging and their
flesh a
pallid white.
He
looked then for the Homanans, expecting
some
manner of comment, and discovered they no
longer
existed. The tavemkeeper had vanished as
well.
Kellin was quite alone in the common room
save
for the bodies Corwyth had left behind.
Kellin
stood perfectly still- Silence was loud, so
loud it
filled his head and slid down to stuff his
belly,
until he wanted to choke on it, to spew it
forth
and deny everything; to somehow put back
to
rights the horror that had occurred.
The way
I wanted Rogan to be alive again— Kel-
lin
shut his teeth. Rogan was a traitor.
His
grip tightened on the knife. Its heat had dis-
sipated.
No longer tainted by Corwyth's wishes, it
was
merely a knife again, if a royal one. The lion
hilt
mocked him.
He
looked around again. All was as before: four
dead
watchdogs sprawled across the table in a
stinking
common room of a Midden tavern Kellin
was no longer
certain truly existed.
Did
Corwyth conjure the Homanans? Is this tav-
167
168
Jeaaffer Robwaos
em no
more than illusion? If so, he was trapped in
it.
Kellin
shivered, then swore at the response he
interpreted
as weakness. He went hastily back to
his
table, caught up his cloak and threw it around
his
shoulders. With the knife still clutched in one
hand,
hilt slick with sweat, he went out into the
darkness
where the air smelled like air, redolent of
winter,
but without the stink ofCorwyth's sorcery.
The
walk to Homana-Mujhar was the longest of
Kellin's
life. His back was spectacularly naked of
watchdogs;
he had hated them before but had
never
wished them dead.
He
avoided puddles now. His mouth was filled
with
the sour aftertaste of usca. Drunkenness had
passed,
as had hostility and the desire to fight.
What he
wanted most now was to reach Homana-
Mujhar
and deliver unpleasant news to Brennan,
so the
burden of the knowledge was no longer his
alone.
There
were few cobblestones in the Midden.
Boots
sank into muck, denying easy egress from
winding,
narrow alleys shut in by top-heavy dwell-
ings.
Between his shoulder blades Kellin felt a tin-
gling;
the hairs on the nape of his neck rose. He
was
lirless by choice, which left him vulnerable. A
bonded
warrior would know if an Ihlini was near.
He had
only his instincts to trust, and they told
him it
would be a simple thing for Corwyth to
take
him now, with a Tooth flung into his back.
But the
Tooth was back in the tavern. Nothing
could
have induced him to touch it, let alone to
keep
it.
Kellin
shivered despite the fur-lined cloak. His
lips
were excessively dry no matter how often he
licked
them. Corwyth had promised him his free-
dom
tonight; that he might spend the time as he
wished.
Lochiel was patient.
A
TAPESTRY OF LlWS J69
Muck
oozed up, capturing a boot. Kellin paused
to free
himself, then froze into stillness. A new
noise
had begun in place of his audible breathing
and
heartbeat.
The
sound was one he knew: a raspy, throaty
grunting;
the chesty cough of a huge lion.
Gods—
He turned convulsively, shoulders slam-
ming
against the wall. He heard the scrape of his
cloak
against brick. Moonlight sparked on the
ruby as
he lifted the knife.
For one
insane moment Kellin saw his shadow
on the
wall across the narrow alley: the image of
a small
boy desperate to flee. And then the illusion
was
banished, replaced with the truth, and he saw
himself
clearly. No longer the boy. Nightmares
were
long behind him.
This is
how Lochiel intends to take me. This is
some
trick—
Or
perhaps not. After what had happened in the
tavern,
Kellin was not so certain.
Still,
he would not prove such easy prey, to be
terrorized
by childhood nightmares.
He
raised the knife higher. He saw the length of
supple
fingers, the sinewy back of his hand, the
muscle
sheathing wrist. He was a man now, and
a very
different kind of prey.
"Come,
then," he said. "If that is you, Corwyth,
be
certain I am ready. Lochiel will find me no
easier
to defeat despite opportunity. I am, after
all,
Cheysuli."
The
Lion paused. Noise ceased.
"Come,"
Kellin goaded. "Did you think to find
me so
frightened I soiled my leggings? Did you
believe
it would be easy?" He forced a laugh, rely-
ing on
bravado that was genuine only in part.
"Why
not banish the Lion's aspect and face me as
a man?
Or do you fear me after all?"
170
feoatfer Robersoa
Grunting
and panting faded. The night was si-
lent
again.
Kellin
laughed as tension fled, leaving him
atremble
despite his bravado. "So, you prefer to
test a
boy instead of a man. Well, now you know
the
truth of it. To take me now, you will have to
try
harder."
He
waited. He thought perhaps Corwyth would
resort
to ordinary means to attack. But the night
was
silent, and empty; threat was dispersed.
Kellin
drew in a deep breath. Surely they told
stories
of my fears when f was a child. It would be
a.
simple matter to shape a lion out of magic now
merely
to remind me of childhood fears.
It was
a simple explanation, and perhaps a valid
one.
But a nagging thought remained.
What of
Tanni? She was truly gutted.
But men
had been bought before: a cook, and
Rogan.
What if the beast who had slain Blais' lir
was
nothing but a man meant to make it look like
a
beast?
Kellin
gripped the knife more tightly. Corwyth
is
right. I am no safer now than I was as a child.
But I
will not order my life around fear; it would be
a
victory for Lochiel. f will be what I am. If the
Ihlini
is to take me, he will find it difficult.
When
Kellin reached Homana-MuJhar, he went
at once
to the watch commander and gave him
the
news. "Have them brought home," he said.
"But
also tell those sent to fetch them to touch
nothing
else. There was an Ihlini abroad tonight."
The
captain, a hardened veteran, did not scoff.
But
Kellin saw the lowered lids, the shuttered
thoughts,
and knew very well his words were not
wholly
accepted. Men might be dead, but no Ihlini
had
come into Mujhara for years. More likely it
was his
fault, from trouble he had started.
A
TAPESTRY OF LtOMS 171
It
infuriated him. Kellin grabbed a handful of
crimson
tunic. "Do you doubt me?"
The
captain did not hesitate. "Who speaks of
doubt,
my lord? I will of course do your bidding
when
the Mujhar confirms it,"
"The
Mujhar—" Kellin cut it off, gritting teeth
against
the anger he wanted to spew into the
man's
face. "Aye, tell the Mujhar; it will save me
the
trouble." He let go of the crumpled tunic and
turned
on his heel, striding across to a side en-
trance
so as not to disturb the palace with his late
return-
Let the captain tell his beloved Mujhar. I will
spend
my time on other things.
He
climbed the stairs two at a time, shedding
cloak
with a shrug of shoulders. He hooked it over
an arm,
heedless of the dragging hem. When he
entered
his chamber, he flung the cloak across a
stool
and hastily stripped out of soiled clothing.
Naked,
he paced to one of the unshuttered case-
ments
and scowled blackly into darkness.
He felt
stifled. He felt young and old, exquisitely
indifferent
to life, and yet so filled with it he could
not
ignore its clamor. Something surged through
his
veins, charging his body with a vigor so in-
tense
he thought he was on fire. His hands trem-
bled as
if palsied; Kellin suppressed it with a
curse.
A
surfeit of energy. It set his bones ablaze. He
was
burning, burning.
"Too
bright—" Kellin dug fingers into the sill
until
at last the burning faded. Emptiness re-
placed
it; he was desolate now, with a spirit
wholly
diminished. Weakness replaced the hid-
eous
strength that had knotted all his muscles.
It is
only reaction to what occurred earlier. No
more
than that.
But Kellin
was not certain. Panting, he pressed
his
head into the wall, letting the stone pit flesh.
172
Jennifer Robersoa
Fingertips
were sore, scraped raw by his grip upon
the
sill. Everything in him shook.
"Tired."
It was much more than that. Kellin
staggered
to his bed and climbed between the cur-
tains,
blessing the servant who had left the wann-
ing
pan.
But he
could not stay there. A restlessness con-
sumed
his body and mind and made him accede
to its
wishes: that he forsake his bed for a physical
release
that had nothing to do with sex and every-
thing
to do with his spirit.
Breeches,
no boots. Bare-chested, gripping the
knife,
Kellin left his chambers and went into the
shadowed
corridors. He felt as if he were a knife,
honed
sharp and clean and true, balanced in the
hand as
his own knife was balanced, but the hand
which
held him was none that he knew.
The
gods? Kellin wanted to laugh. The old Chey-
suli
saying about a man's fate resting in the hands
of the
gods was imagery, no more, and yet he felt
as if
he fit. As if the hand merely waited.
This is
madness. He went to the Great Hall. It
had
been a long time since he had entered it; it
was his
grandsire's place. Until Kellin could make
it his,
he was content to wait: a lean and hungry
wolf
intently watching its promised meal.
Guilt
nickered; was suppressed. / was bred for
it. All
the blood that flows in me cries out to rule
Homana
... 7 was not made of patient clay, and the
firing
is done.
He
halted before the dais, before the throne, and
looked
upon the Lion. An old beast, he thought,
guarding
its pride with aging eyes and older heart,
its
body tough and stringy, its mouth nearly
empty
of teeth.
Time
runs out for the Lion. Time ran out for
them
all.
Kellin
laughed softly. Slowly he mounted the
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 173
steps
to the throne and sat himself upon it, mov-
ing
back into the shadows until his spine touched
wood.
He placed his arms on the armrests, curled
his
fingers over the paws and felt the extended
claws.
"This
is Homana," he said. "This is Homana—
and one
day it will be mine."
His
fear of the throne was gone. As a child it
had
frightened him, but he was no longer a child.
Kellin
stared out into the hall- "The lion must
swallow
the lands. The lion must swallow us all."
He
roused at the scrape of a boot upon stone floor.
"Not
a comfortable bed," the Mujhar remarked.
Kellin
jerked upright, blinking blearily, stiff" and
sore
and intensely uncomfortable. He had spent
what
little remained of the night in the bosom of
the
Lion. The knife was still in his fist. He was
warrior
enough for that.
Brennan's
expression was masked. "Was there
any
point to it?"
Kellin
challenged him immediately. "I do noth-
ing
without a point."
His
grandfather's mouth twisted scornfully.
"What
you do is your concern, as you have made
it. I
gave up years ago asking myself what could
be in
your mind, to explain your behavior." He
gestured
sharply. "Get up from there, Kellin. You
do not
suit it yet."
The
insult was deliberate, and he felt it strike
true.
He wanted to shout back, but knew it would
gain
him nothing but additional scorn. Of late he
and his
grandfather had played a game with the
stakes
residing in dominance. Brennan was the old
wolf,
Ketlin the new; one day the old would die.
Kellin
tapped the blade against wooden claws.
"Perhaps
better suited than you believe."
174
Jennifer Kohersoa
"Get
up from there," Brennan repeated, "or I
shall
pull you up myself."
Kellin
considered it. At a few years beyond sixty
the
Mujhar was an aging man, but he was not
infirm.
His hair was completely silver with white
frost
around his face, but the fierce eyes were
steady,
the limbs did not tremble, and the arms
with
their weight of ftr-gold did not shrivel and
sag- He
is taller and heavier than I, and he might
be able
to do it.
Kellin
rose with practiced elegance. He made an
elaborate
bow to his grandfather and turned to
walk
away. but Brennan reached out and caught
one
arm.
"How
much longer?" he rasped. "This comedy
we
play? Or is it a tragedy?"
Kellin
knew the answer. "Tragedy, my lord.
What
else could these walls house?"
Brennan's
mouth flattened into a thin, com-
pressed
line of displeasure. "What these walls will
house,
I cannot say. But what they have housed in
the
past I can and do say: greater men than you,
though
they were merely servants."
Kellin
wrenched his arm away. "You offer in-
sult,
my lord."
"I
offer whatever I choose. By the gods, Kellin—
will
you never grow up?"
Kellin
spread his hands in mock display. "Am I
not a
man?"
"No."
Brennan's tone was cold. "You are but a
boy
grown larger in size than in sense."
"Insult
yet again." Kellin was unoffended; it
was all
part of the game though the Mujhar did
not
view it as such.
"What
is your excuse?" Brennan demanded.
"That
you lost people close to you? Well, do you
think I
have not? Do you think none of us has
suffered
as you do?"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 175
Stung,
Kellin glared. "What I suffer is my own
concern!"
"And
mine." Brennan faced him down squarely,
"You
lack a fehan. You know why. You lost a tutor
to
sorcery, a friend to treachery, and a liege man
to
Cheysuli custom. You know how. And yet you
choose
to wallow in grief and make all of Mujhara
suffer."
"Mujhara
has nothing to do with this!"
"It
does." Brennan's tone did not waver. "How
many
fights have you sought out—or caused, or
joined—because
of childish vindictiveness? How
many
men have you fought—and injured—be-
cause
they were easy prey for your anger? How
many
bastards have you sired, duly packed off to
Clankeep
where you need not concern yourself
with
them?" More quietly, he said, "And how
many
guardsmen have died because of you?"
"None
because of me!"
"Oh?
Then what of the four men who died last
night?"
"But
that was not my fault."
"Whose
was it, then? I thought you led them
there
on one of your Midden tours."
Anger
boiled up. "Only because you put them
on my
trail like hounds upon a fox!" Kellin glared.
"Call
them off, grandsire. Then no more will die."
Brennan's
expression was implacable. "Did you
do
it?"
"Did
/—?" Kellin was aghast. "You believe I
would
kill them?"
"Aye,"
Brennan answered evenly. "I believe you
might."
"How?"
Kellin swallowed the painful lump in
his
throat. "I am your own grandson. And you ac-
cuse me
of murder?"
"You
have labored assiduously to make me be-
lieve
you are capable of anything."
176
Jennifer Robersoa
"But
. .." Kellin laughed once, expelling air
rather
than amusement. "I never thought you
would
hate me so."
"Do
you think a man must hate another to be-
lieve
him capable of things another would not
do?"
Brennan shook his head. "I do not hate you.
I know
you better than you think, and why you
have
twisted yourself into this travesty of the Kel-
lin you
once were. I cannot understand it, but I
am
cognizant of why."
"Are
you?" The anger was banished now, re-
placed
with bitter helplessness. "You are not me."
"Thank
the gods, no." Brennan lifted his shoul-
ders
briefly, as if shedding unwanted weight- "You
are not
as hard as you believe. I see it in you,
Kellin.
You still care what people think. It all mat-
ters to
you, but you will not permit yourself to
admit
it. You fight with yourself; do you think I
am
blind? I need no kivama to see that two men
live in
your soul."
"You
cannot begin to know—"
"I
can. I see what drives you, I see what shapes
you. I
only wish you would not give into it. It does
you
more harm than anyone else."
Kellin
lashed out. "I do not care what anyone
else
thinks, only you—" He checked abruptly; he
had
divulged too much.
Brennan
closed his eyes a moment. "Then why
this
charade? If you truly do care what I think—"
"I
do. I know what I have done; it was done
intentionally.
I do not intend to alter it." Kellin's
smile
was humorless. "This way, I cannot be
hurt."
Lines
were graven deeply into Brennan's dark
face. "You
hurt yourself, this way."
"I
can live with myself."
"Can
you? Can you cohabit with both men? Or
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
177
must
you destroy one to allow the other more
freedom?"
Kellin
spat his answer between his teeth. "This
is what
I wanted. This is what / decided. This is
what I
am."
Brennan
made a dismissive gesture. "Another
time,
then, for this; there is something more
important.
Tell me what occurred last night."
Kellin
sighed and stared down at the knife still
clenched
in his hand. "It was Corwyth, the Ihlini
who
killed Rogan and Urchin. He came to the tav-
ern and
told me Lochiel still wants me, and will
take me
whenever he likes. Whenever he wishes, I
was
told, the Ihlini will put out his hand and I
will
fall into it."
Brennan
nodded. "An old Ihlini trick. He terror-
izes
victims long before he confronts them."
"I
have vanquished the lion," Kellin said, "but
he will
look for something else. Corwyth has con-
vinced
me Lochiel will be as patient as necessary."
"Kellin—"
"They
were dead when I reached them." Kellin
looked
at the knife, recalling the bulging eyes and
pallid
faces. "There was nothing I could do."
"Then
you must stay here," Brennan said. "Ho-
mana-Mujhar
will shield you."
Kellin barked
a laugh. "I would go mad inside
a
ten-day!"
"There
may be no choice."
"Mad,
grandsire! I am halfway there already."
He
flipped the knife in his hand, then again, until
it spun
so the hilt and blade became alternating
blurs.
In mid-flip he caught it- "I will not stay
here."
Brennan's
anger showed for the first time since
his
arrival. "Is this some manner of expiation for
your
guilt? A twisted version of i'toshaa-ni?"
"1
feel no guilt," Kellin told him. "That is for
Jennifer
Robersoa
178
my
jehan to do ... but I think it quite beyond
him."
Brennan
groaned in sheer frustration. "How
many
times have I told you? I have said again and
again—"
Kellin
cut him off. "You have said, and I have
heard.
But it means nothing. Not until he says it
directly
to me."
Brennan
shook his head. "I will not send word
to him
again. That is finished."
Kellin
nodded. "Because the last time he refused
to
extend hospitality to your messenger and packed
him off
home again. So, slighted, you surrender. I
think
my jehan must be mad as well, to speak so
to the
Mujhar of Homana."
"Aidan
does not speak for himself, Kellin. He
speaks
for the gods."
"Facile
words, grandsire. But listen first to your-
self—and
then recall that he is your SOM. I know
very
well who should have the ordering of the
other."
Brennan
lost his temper. Kellin listened in star-
tled
surprise; he had never thought to hear such
language
from his grandfather.
"Go,
then." At last the royal fury was spent. "Go
into
the taverns and drink yourself into a stupor.
Go to
your light women and sire all the bastards
you
wish so you may leave them as your jehan left
you,
wondering what manner of man you are to
desert
a child." A pale indented ring circled Bren-
nan's
mouth. "Risk your life and the lives of hon-
orable
men so you may enter the game with
Lochiel.
I no longer care. You are Homana's heir
for
now, but if I must I can find another."
Kellin
laughed at him. "Who can you find?
From
where? There are no more sons, grandsire;
your
cheysula gave you but one. And no more
A
TAPESTRY OF LJOIVS
grandsons,
either; Aidan's loins are empty. He is
in all
ways but half a man."
"Kellin—"
He
raised his head. "There is no heir to be found
other
than the one you invested twenty years ago."
Brennan
reached out and caught the flipping
knife
easily. "You are a fool," he said clearly. "Per-
haps
Homana would be better off without you."
Kellin
looked at the hand that held his knife. He
had not
expected the weapon to be caught. Bren-
nan was
at least as quick as he; a forcible re-
minder
that the Mujhar of Homana was more than
merely
a man, but a Cheysuli as well.
He met
his grandfather's eyes. "May I have it
back?"
"No."
He did
not avoid the packleader's eyes. To do so
was to
submit. "I have need of a knife."
"You
have another. Use it."
Kellin
clenched his teeth. "That one belonged to
BIais.
I have sworn never to touch it."
"Then
unswear it," the Mujhar said. "Tu'halla
dei,
Kellin. Such things "as that come easily to a
man who
cares for nothing."
It was
more than he had anticipated. It twisted
within
his belly. "It shall be as this, then?"
Brennan
did not move. "As you have made it."
After a
long moment, Kellin averted his stare.
The
young wolf, he acknowledged ruefully, could
not yet
pull down the old.
Three
In his
chambers, Kellin sat on the edge of his bed
and
stared at the small darkwood chest for a very
long
time. It rested inoffensively on a bench
against
the wall, where he had placed it many
years
before. He had looked at it often, stared at
it,
hated it, knowing what it contained, but once
locked
it had never been opened again.
He drew
in a deep breath, wishing he need not
consider
doing what was so difficult, because he
had
made it so. He realized that in truth he need
not
consider it; it was more than possible for him
to get
another knife despite his grandfather's sug-
gestion.
He could buy one in Mujhara, or find one
in the
palace, or even go to Clankeep and have
one of
the warriors make him one; everyone knew
Cheysuli
long-knives were superior to all others,
and
only one Cheysuli-made was worth the coin.
But the
challenge had been put forth. The old wolf
mocked
the young. The young wolf found it
intolerable.
His
palms were damp. In disgust Kellin wiped
them
against his breeches-clad thighs. He tests you
with
this. Prove to him you are stronger than he
thinks.
Muttering
an oath, Keilin slid off his bed and
strode
without hesitation directly across to the
chest.
The lid and the key atop it was layered with
dust;
he had ordered no one to touch the chest.
180
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 181
Dust
fell away as he picked up the key, smearing
fingertips.
He blew the iron clean, squinting against
motes,
hesitated a moment longer, then swore and
unlocked
the chest. Kellin flung back the lid so
sharply
it thumped against the wall.
His
lips were dry. He wet them. A flutter of an-
ticipation
filled his belly. / would do better to leave
this
here, as I vowed. I want no part of this. Blais
is dead
ten years, but it feels like ten hours. Kellin's
jaw
clenched so hard his teeth ached. Then he
thrust
a hand inside and drew out the contents: a
single
Cheysuli long-knife.
The
grief had not lessened with the passage of
years,
and the act of retrieving the knife intensi-
fied it
tenfold. Kellin felt the tightening of his
belly,
the constriction of his throat, the anguish of
his
spirit. The wound, despite the decade, was still
too
fresh.
Kellin
held the knife lightly, so that it lay cross-
wise
across his palm. Candlelight glinted off steel
because
the hand beneath it trembled; he could
not
help himself. He recalled in precise detail the
instant
of realization, the comprehension that
Blais
was doomed because his lir was dead. In that
moment
he had come to understand the true cost
of the
magic that lived in a Cheysuli's blood. And
knew
how much he feared it.
The
gods give warriors lir not to bless them, but
to
curse them; to make them vulnerable, so they can
never
be men but minions instead, set to serve spite-
ful
gods. They give warriors lir simply to take them
away.
Kellin
stared hard at the knife, daring himself
to
break down. Beautifully balanced, the steel
blade
was etched with Cheysuli runes denoting
Blais'
name and Houses: Homana first, and Erinn.
The
grip itself was unadorned so as not to inter-
fere
with the hand, but the pommel made up for
182
Jennifer Roberaoa
the
plainness. An elaborate snarling wolf's head
was set
with emeralds for eyes.
Kellin's
throat closed. To swallow was painful.
"A
waste," he said tightly. "The gods would have
done
better to take me in his place."
But
they had not, despite his pleas, and he had
cursed
them for it often. Now he simply ignored
them;
there was no place in Kellin's life for gods
so
vindictive and capricious as to first steal his
father,
then permit his liege man to die.
Anger
goaded his bruised spirit. Kellin slammed
shut
the chest and turned to his belt with its now-
empty
sheath. He slid the knife home with a deci-
sive
motion so that only the wolf's head showed,
snarling
a warning to the world. Apropos, Kellin
thought.
Let them all be forewarned.
He
dressed rapidly, replacing soiled breeches
with
new; a plain wool shirt and velvet doublet,
both
brown; and Homanan-style boots. Over it all
he
fastened the belt, brushing the knife hilt with
the
palm of his hand to make certain of its pres-
ence.
Time I tested Corwyth's promise.
The
Mujhar had assigned new watchdogs. Kellin
wondered
briefly if they knew or were curious
about
what had become of the last four, but he
did not
trouble himself to ask. He merely told
them
curtly to keep their distance, making no ef-
fort to
befriend them or endear himself to them;
he did
not want them as friends, and did not par-
ticularly
care what they thought of him.
This
time Kellin rode; so did they. They fol-
lowed
closely, but not so closely as to tread upon
his
mount's hooves. Testing them—and himself—
he led
them deep into the Midden to its very heart,
where
the weight of filth and poverty was palpable.
No one
will know me here. And so they would
not;
Kellin wore nothing to give away his identify
A TAPESTRY
W LiONS S83
save
his ruby signet ring, but if the stone were
turned
inward against his palm no one would see
it. He
preferred anonymity- Let those of the Mid-
den
believe he was a rich Mujharan lordling gone
slumming
for a lark; he knew better. He wanted
a game,
and a fight. As he had told the Mujhar,
he did
nothing without a point.
The
tavern he selected lay at the dead end of a
narrow,
dark street little better than the manure
trench
behind the hall garderobe in Homana-
Mujhar.
It was a slump-shouldered hovel with
haphazard
slantwise roof; the low door, badly
cracked,
hung crooked in counterpoint to the roof.
The
building resembled nothing so much as a
drunkard
gone sloppy on too much liquor.
Kellin
smiled tightly. This will do. He dropped
off his
horse and waited impatiently for his watch-
dogs to
join him on the ground. "Three of you
shall
remain here," he said briefly. "One I will
take
with me, because I must in compromise; it
seems I
have no choice." He thrust the reins to
one of
the guardsmen. "Wait here, in the shadows.
Do what
you are honor-bound to do; I make no
claim
on your loyalty. You answer the Mujhar's
bidding,
but answer also a little of mine: leave me
to
myself this night." He gestured toward one of
them.
The man was young, tall, blocky-shouldered,
with
pale blond hair and blue eyes. "You will
come in
with me, but see you it is done without
excess
attention. And strip off that tunic."
The
young guardsman was startled- "My lord?"
"Strip
it off. I want no royal dogs at my heels
tonight."
Kellin appraised him closely. "What is
your
name?"
"Teague,
my lord."
Kellin
gestured. "Now."
Slowly
Teague stripped out of his crimson tunic
with
its black rampant lion. He handed it reluc-
184
tantly
to another guardsman, then looked back at
Kellin-
"Anything else, my lord?"
"Rid
yourself of your sword. Do not protest—
you
have a knife still." He allowed derision to
shape
the tone. "Surely more than enough weap-
onry
for a member of the Mujharan Guard."
Cheeks
burning, Teague slowly divested himself
of the
swordbelt and handed it over to the man
who
held his tunic.
Kellin
assessed him again, chewing the inside of
his
cheek. Finally he sighed. "Even a horse with
winter
hair still shows its blood." He bent and
scooped
up a handful of mud, then smeared it pur-
posefully
across league's mail shirt to dull the
polished
links and to foul the pristine breeches.
He
ignored the young man's rigidity and pinched
mouth.
When he was done, Kellin washed his
hands
in slushy snow, then nodded at the discom-
fited
guardsman. "They will not know you at
once."
Distaste
was not entirely suppressed though
Teague
made the effort. "They will not know me
at all,
my lord."
Kellin
grinned. "Better. Now, my orders." He
waited
until his expectant silence gained Teague's
complete
attention. "Once we are through that
door I
am not to be called 'my lord,' nor do I
desire
your interference in anything I undertake."
Teague's
jaw was tight. "We are charged with
your
life, my lord. Would you have me turn my
back on
a knife meant for yours?"
Kellin
laughed. "Any knife meant for my back
would
have to be fast indeed. I doubt I will come
to
harm—though the gods know I would welcome
the
challenge." He gestured at the remaining three
guardsmen.
"Take the horses and move into the
shadows."
A
TAIVSTKY OF LKMS 185
•St
&
"My
lord?" Teague clearly had not forsaken the
honorific.
"It is not for me to reprove you—"
"No.
It is not."
"—but
I think you should know this is not the
best of
all places to spend your time drinking or
dicing."
"Indeed,"
Kellin agreed gravely. "That is pre-
cisely
the point. Now—you are to go in and find
your
own table. I require two things of you only:
to sit
apart from me, and to be silent."
Teague
cast a scowl at his companions waiting
in the
shadows, then grudgingly nodded. "Aye."
Kellin
jerked a thumb at the door. and the
muck-smeared
guardsman went in muttering under
his
breath. Kellin waited until enough time had
passed
to nullify the appearance of companion-
ship,
then went in himself.
The
stench of the hovel tavern struck him first.
Soiled
rushes littered the packed earthen floor in
crumbled
bits and pieces Kellin was certain har-
bored
all manner of vermin. Only a handful of
greasy,
sputtering tallow candles illuminated the
room,
exuding an acrid, rancid aroma and wan,
ocherous
light easily dominated by shadows. An
hour in
such a place would render his clothing
irredeemable,
but Kellin had every intention of
remaining
longer than that. He anticipated a full
night.
Teague
sat at a small flimsy table in the comer
nearest
the door. A crude clay jug stood at his
elbow
and an equally lumpy cup rested in his
hands,
but he paid attention to neither.
Their
eyes met, slid away. Kellin was faintly
surprised
that Teague would enter so convincingly
into
subterfuge. There was no hint of recognition
in the
guardsman's face and nothing about his
posture
that divulged his true purpose. Mud clung
to his
mail shirt; a little had spattered across a
186
Jennifer Robersoa
cheekbone,
altering the angle. His hair now also
was
mussed, as if he had scrubbed a hand through
it
hastily. Teague's expression was closed, almost
sullen,
which suited Kellin's orders and the
surroundings.
Kellin
was deliberate in his perusal of the room
and its
occupants, knowing the men measured
him as
carefully. He allowed them time to mark
his
clothing, bearing, and size, as well as the
heavy
knife at his belt. He wanted no one to un-
dervalue
him, so that when the fight came it
would
be on equal terms. He admired the elegant
simplicity
of organized viciousness.
The
tavern was crowded, but mostly because its
size
was negligible. Most of the men spoke in quiet
tones
lacking aggression or challenge, as if each
knew
the other's worth and standing within the
context
of the tavern, and did not overstep. There
would
be rivals, Kellin knew, because it was the
nature
of men, but with the arrival of a stranger
old
rivalries would be replaced with unity. He and
Teague,
apart or as one, would be suspect, and
therefore
targets.
He
grinned, and let them see it. He let them see
everything
as he strode to the lone empty table
and sat
down upon a stool, shouting to the wine-
girl to
bring him a jug of usca.
She
came almost at once to judge the cut of his
cloth
and the color of his coin. Kellin dropped a
silver
piece onto the table and let it ring, flicking
it in
her direction with a single practiced finger.
Only
the gold of his ring showed; the ruby with
its
etched rampant lion rested against his palm.
"Usca,"
he repeated, "and beef."
She was
a greasy, unkempt girl with soiled
clothing
and filthy nails. She offered him a lone
grimy
dimple and a smile with two teeth missing.
"Mutton
and pork, my lord."
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 187
"Mutton,"
he said easily, "and do not stint it."
She
wore a stained, threadbare apron over
soiled
gray skirts, and the sagging bodice gaped
to
display her breasts. She bent over to give him
fill!
benefit of her bounty. He saw more than she
intended:
flesh aplenty, aye, and wide, darkened
nipples
pinching erect under his perusal, but also
a rash
of insect bites. Dark brown hair swung
down in
its single braid. A louse ran across her
scalp.
"My
lord," the woman said, "we have more than
just
mutton and pork."
She was
certain of her charms. In this place, he
knew,
no man would care about her filth, only the
fit of
his manhood between her diseased thighs.
"Later,"
he said coolly. "Do not press me."
The
brief flash of dismay was overtaken at once
by
enmity. She opened her mouth as if to respond,
then
shut it tight again. He saw her reassess his
clothing,
the coin, then forcibly alter hostility into
a
sullen acceptance- "Aye, my lord. Mutton and
usca."
Kellin
watched her walk away. Her hips swung
invitation
as if by habit; the rigidity of her shoul-
ders
divulged her injured feelings. He laughed
softly
to himself; he had frequent congress with
Midden
whores, but not with one such as she. He
did not
think much of acquiring lice as boon com-
panions
in exchange for a dip in her well-plumbed
womanhood.
As he
waited for usca and mutton, Kellin again
assessed
the room. His entrance, as expected, had
caused
comment, but that had died. Men gambled
again,
paying him no mind except for the occa-
sional
sidelong glance. Impatiently he pressed the
tip of
a fingernail into the edge of the silver piece
and
flipped the coin on the table. Again and again
he did
it, so that the coin rang softly, and the wan
18S
Jennifer JXoberson
light
from greasy candles glinted dully on the
sheen
of clean silver.
The
woman returned with a boiled leather flask,
no cup;
and a platter of mutton. She thumped
down
the platter as he tested the smell of the flask.
"Well?"
Kellin
caught the tang of harsh liquor through
the
bitterness of boiled leather. He nodded, then
nipped
the coin in her direction. She caught it
deftly,
eyed his intent to discern if his mood
toward
her had changed; plainly it had not, but
she
bobbed a quick curtsy in deference to the sil-
ver.
The overpayment was vast, but she accepted
it
readily enough with no offer of coppers in
change.
He had expected none.
"Do
ye game?" she asked, jerking her head
toward
a neighboring table.
And so
the dance commenced; Kellin felt the
knot of
anticipation tie itself into his belly. "I
game."
"Do
ye wager well?"
Kellin
drew the Cheysuli long-knife and sliced
into
the meat. "As well as the next man."
Emerald
wolf's-eyes glinted. She marked them,
and
stared. "Would ye dice with a stranger?"
Kellin
bit into the chunk of meat. It was tough,
stringy,
foul; he ate it anyway, because it was part
of the
test. "If his coin is good enough, no man is
a
stranger."
Indecisive,
she chewed crookedly at her lip.
Then
blurted her warning out. "You lords don't
come
here. The game is sometimes rough."
"Tame
ones bore me." He cut more mutton. Em-
eralds
winked.
Her own
eyes shone with avarice. "Luce will
throw
with you. Will ye have him?"
Kellin
downed a hearty swallow of usca, then
tipped
the flask again. Deliberately, he said, "I
A
TAPESTRY OF LtONS
189
came
here for neither the drink nor the meat. Do
not
waste my time on idle chatter."
She
inhaled a hissing breath. Her spine was stiff
as she
swung away, but he noted it did not prevent
her
from walking to the closest table. She bent
and
murmured to one of the table's occupants,
then
went immediately into the kitchen behind a
tattered
curtain.
Kellin
waited. He ate his way through most of
the
mutton, then shoved aside the platter with a
grimace
of distaste. The rest of the usca eventually
burned
away the mutton's aftertaste.
A
second flask was slapped down upon the table
even as
Kellin set aside the first. The hand that
held it
was not the woman's. It was wide-palmed
and
seamed with scars. Thick dark hair sprouted
from
the back. "Purse," the man said. "I dice
against
rich men, not poor."
Kellin
glanced up eventually. "Then we are well
suited."
The man
did not smile or otherwise indicate
emotion.
He merely untied a pouch from his belt,
loosened
the puckered mouth, and poured a stream
of gemstones
into his hand. With a disdainful ges-
ture he
scattered the treasure across scarred wood.
His
authority was palpable as he stood beside the
table,
making no motion to guard his wealth. No
one in
the tavern would dare test him by at-
tempting
to steal a gemstone.
Real,
every one. Rubies, sapphires, emeralds,
and a
diamond or two for good measure. All were
at
least the size of a man's thumbnail; some were
larger
yet.
Kellin
looked at Luce again. The man was huge.
The
imagery flashed into Kellin's mind: A bull.
And so
Luce seemed, with his thick neck, and a
wide-planed,
saturnine face hidden in bushy brown
beard.
His eyes were dark, nearly black. His
190
Jennifer Robes-son
crooked
teeth were yellow, and he lacked his left
thumb.
A
thief. But caught only once, or the Mujhar's
justice
would have required more than a thumb.
On
thick wrists Luce wore heavy leather bracers
studded
with grime-rimmed metal. His belt was
identical,
fastened with a massive buckle of heavy
greenish
bronze. His clothing was plain homespun
wool,
dark and unexceptional, but in a concession
to
personal vanity—and as a mark of his status—
he wore
a chunky bluish pearl in his right earlobe.
In the
Midden the adornment marked him a
wealthy
man.
A good
thief, then. And undoubtedly dangerous.
Kellin
smiled. He understood why the girl had
gone to
Luce rather than to another. She intended
to
teach the arrogant lordling a very painful lesson
in
payment for his rudeness.
He
untied his belt-purse, loosened the mouth,
then
dumped the contents out onto the table. Gold
spilled
across stained wood, mingling with the
glitter
of Luce's stones. With it spilled also silver,
a
handful of coppers, and a single bloody ruby
Kellin
carried for good luck.
The
pile of coins and lone ruby marked Kellin
a rich
man also, but it did not begin to match the
worth
of Luce's treasure. He knew that at once
and
thought rapidly ahead to alternatives. Only
one
suggested itself. Only one was worth the risk.
The
bearded Homanan grunted and began to
scoop
the gemstones back into his pouch. "A poor
man,
then."
"No."
Kellin's tone was deliberate, cutting
through
the faint clatter of stone against stone.
"Look
again." With an elegant gesture he pushed
the long-knife
into the pile.
He
heard the sibilance of indrawn breaths.
Luce's
presence at Kellin's table had attracted an
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 191
audience.
The huge man was among friends in the
Midden;
Kellin had none. Even Teague, ostensibly
there
to guard him, slouched at the back of the
crowd
and appeared only marginally interested in
Luce
and the lordling who was not, after all, so
rich a
man as that—except he had now raised the
stakes
higher than anyone might expect.
The fingers
on Luce's right hand twitched once.
His
eyes, dark and opaque, showed no expression.
"I'll
touch it."
"You
know what it is," Kellin said. "But aye,
you may
touch it—for a moment."
The
insult was deliberate. As expected, it caused
a
subtle shifting among the audience. Luce's mouth
tightened
fractionally in the hedgerow of his
beard,
then loosened. He picked up the knife and
smoothed
fingers over the massive pommel, closed
on the
grip itself, then eventually tested the clean
steel
as an expert does: he plucked a hair from his
beard
and pulled it gently across the edge. Satis-
fied,
he twisted his mouth. Then it loosened, slack-
ened,
and the tip of his tongue showed as he
turned
the knife in poor light. Emerald eyes
glinted.
Luce wet
thick lips. "Real."
Kellin's
hands were slack on the table top. Com-
pared
to Luce's bulky palms and spatulate fingers.
Kellin's
were almost girlish in their slender ele-
gance.
"I carry no false weapons."
Near-black
eyes flicked an assessive glance at
Kellin.
"Cheysuli long-knife."
"Aye."
Flesh
folded upon itself at the comers of Luce's
eyes.
"You'd risk this."
Kellin
shrugged in elaborate negligence. "When
I dice,
there is no risk."
Thus
the challenge was made. Luce's brows met,
then
parted. "This is worth more than I have."
192
Jennifer Roberson
"Of
course it is." Kellin smiled faintly. "A Chey-
suli
knife cannot be bought, stolen, or copied .. .
only
earned." Idly he rolled his ruby back and
forth
on the splintered wood. "Be certain, Homa-
nan—if
you win that knife from me, you will have
earned
it. But if it concerns you now that you can-
not
match my wager, there is something else you
may
add."
Luce's
eyes narrowed. "What?"
"If
you lose," Kellin said, "your other thumb."
The
tavern thrummed with low-toned growls of
outrage
and murmurs of surprise. In its tone Kel-
lin
heard the implicit threat, the promise of vio-
lence;
he had challenged one of their own. But the
audacity,
once absorbed, was worth a grudging
admiration.
It was a wager to measure the cour-
age of
any man, and Luce had more pride than
most to
risk. They believed in him, Kellin knew,
and
that alone would move a reluctant man to
accept
a wager he would not otherwise consider.
Luce set
the knife down very deliberately next
to
Kellin's hand. It was a subtle display of fairness
that
was, Kellin believed, uncommon to the Mid-
den,
and therefore all the more suspect, but was
also a
salute to Kellin's ploy. The handsome young
lordling
was no friend to them, but no longer pre-
cisely
an enemy. He understood the tenor of their
world.
Luce
smiled. "A wager worth the making, but
over
too quickly. Let's save us the knife—and the
thumb—for
last."
Kellin
suppressed a smile, "Agreed."
"One
more," Luce cautioned, as Kellin moved
to
sweep the coins into his pouch, "if you lose the
knife,
an answer to a question."
Easy
enough. "If I can give it."
Luce's
gaze did not waver. "You'll tell me how
you
came by such a knife."
A TAPESTRY
OF Lsoivs 193
That
was unexpected. Kellin was accustomed to
those
in better taverns recognizing him and there-
fore
knowing he was Cheysuli. But Luce clearly
knew
nothing at all about him, least of all his race,
which
suited him perfectly. "It is important to
you?"
Luce
bent and spat. "I have no love of the shape-
changers,"
he said flatly. "If you got a knife from
one of
them, it can be done again. I want to find
the
way. Then I would be on equal ground."
It was
puzzling. "Equal ground? With the
Cheysuli?"
Luce
hitched massive shoulders. "They're sor-
cerers.
Their weapons are bound with spells. If I
had a
knife, I'd share in the power. If I had two,
I could
rule it."
Kellin
smiled. "Ambitious, for a thief."
Luce's
eyes narrowed. "A thief, aye—for now.
But
these men'11 tell you what my ambition earns
them."
One meaty hand swung out to encompass
the
room. "Without me they earn scraps- With me,
they
earn feasts." His stare was malignant. "The
Midden
is mine, lordling, and I'll be keeping it so.
It'd be
easier done with Cheysuli sorcery."
Kellin
displayed his teeth in an undiluted grin,
then
gestured with a sweep of one eloquent hand.
"Sit
you down, my lord of the Midden, and we
shall
see precisely what power there is to be won."
Four
By the
time Kellin had won some of Luce's jewels
and
Luce a portion of Kelhn's gold, even Teague
had
joined the crowd surrounding the table. No
one
paid him the slightest attention, including the
prince
he was commanded to protect.
Sweat
stippled Kelhn's upper lip. Except for the
cracked
door and holes broken in daub-and-wattle
walls,
the small room was mostly airless. Now
that so
many had moved in close to watch, ringing
the
table, he could not draw a single breath with-
out
inhaling also the stench of the tavern and the
overriding
stink of wool- and grime-swathed men
who had
not bathed since summer.
Kellin
impatiently wiped the dampness from his
face
with the edge of his hand, knowing his ner-
vousness
came as much from belated acknowledg-
ment of
Luce's dicing skills as the closeness of the
room.
He had always been good himself, but Luce
was
better.
The
luck has turned. Kellin tossed back a swal-
low of
usca from his third flask, trying to diffuse
the
nagging sense of trepidation. /; favors Luce,
not
me—and we are nearly through my coin.
Left
were two silver pieces and a handful of cop-
pers,
pitiful remainders of Kelhn's once-plump
purse.
Though he had briefly owned a few of
Luce's
jewels, the giant had easily won them back
and
more, including the lone ruby.
194
A
TAPESTRY OF LtONS
195
the
That is
where my luck went. Kellin eyed
bloody
glint in Luce's pile. He has it now.
Luce
slapped one meaty hand down across the
table,
scattering the dice and the last few coins of
the
current wager. Dark eyes glittered. "Enough,"
he
said. "Put up the rest of it, all of it—it's time
for the
final wager."
To buy
time, Kellin assessed him. The big man
had
consumed cup after cup of usca, but nothing
of it
showed in eyes or manner. There was no indi-
cation
Luce was any less sober than when the
wine-girl
first approached him, only a fixed desire
to
begin the final pattern of the dance.
Kellin
inhaled slowly and deeply, trying to clear
his
head. An unexpected desperation made him
nervous
and irritable, doubling the effects of his
over-indulgence
in usca. His belly was unsettled as
well as
his spirit. He could not bear the knowledge
he
might well lose Blais' knife- He had only risked
the
weapon because he had been certain of keep-
ing it.
Luce
smiled for the first time. Behind him, Kel-
lin
heard the murmuring of the Homanans. Their
anticipation
was clearer, as was their absolute
faith
in Luce's ability. Kellin found it particularly
annoying.
He
shoved all that remained of his wealth into
the
center of the table, mingling it with jewels,
coins,
and dice, then challenged Luce in silence.
The big
man laughed. "All, is it?" He flicked
onto
the pile a glittering diamond. "Worth more
than
yours." he said off-handedly, "but I'll have
it back
anyway." Then, with abject contempt, he
jabbed
a hand toward Kellin. "Your throw. Boy."
The
insult stung, as it was intended, but not so
much
after all. To Luce, he was a boy, for the man
was
much older—but something else was far more
196
Jennifer Roberson
imperative
than answering a gibe at his youth and
inexperience.
If I
could win this throw. I could yet string out
the
game a while and avoid offering the knife. Teeth
set
tightly, Kellin scooped up the six ivory dice.
Carved
markings denoted their value. He threw,
and
counted the values before the dice stopped
rolling-
Leijhana
tu'sai— Relief crowded out the desper-
ation
in Kellin's belly. Sweat dried on his face. He
maintained
a neutral expression only with great
effort,
and only because he knew it would annoy
Luce.
"Your throw," he said negligently, relaxing
on his
stool. Inwardly jubilant, he waited. The
crowd
around the table stirred; only one value
could
beat the total on Kellin's dice, and it was
not
easily accomplished.
Luce
grunted and grabbed the dice. His mouth
moved
silently as he whispered something and
shook
the cubes in his hand.
A body
shifted behind Kellin, breaking his con-
centration.
A voice said irritably: "Don't push!"
Kellin
ignored it, watching Luce entreat the dice
to fall
his way, but within a moment the body
pressed
close again, brushing his shoulder. Kellin
leaned
forward in an attempt to escape the crowd-
ing. If
they take no care, they will upset the table—
And
they did so just as Luce threw. A body fell
into
Kellin, who was in turn shoved against the
table.
Coins, jewels, and dice spilled, showering
the
rush-littered Hoor.
Even as
Kellin, swearing, rose to avoid over-
turned
usca, he recognized the miscreant- The ex-
pression
in Teague's eyes was one of calculation
and
satisfaction, not regret or anger, though he
voiced
a sharp protest against the man who had
caused
him to fall.
For
only a moment Kellin's curiosity roused.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
197
Then he
turned back to Luce, who cursed savagely
and
dropped to his knees, scrabbling for dice. Oth-
ers
were on the floor also, gathering coin and
gemstones.
How
many will make their way into purses and
pockets?
And then Kellin reflected that probably
none
would; Luce's hold over the men was too
strong-
A copper here and there might disappear,
but
nothing of significance.
Luce
came up from the floor, broad face dark in
anger.
A malignancy glittered in near-black eyes.
"The
dice," he grated. "I have them all, but one."
Teague
held it aloft. "I have it." His smile was
odd as
he tossed the cube in his left hand; the
right
lingered very near his knife.
Luce
thrust out a hand. "Give it here."
"I
think not." Teague had discarded his trucu-
lence
and sloppy posture. He looked directly at
Kellin.
"The die is weighted improperly. You have
been
cheated."
"A
lie\" Luce thundered.
Teague
tossed the cube to Kellin. "What say
you?"
Frowning,
Kellin rolled the smooth ivory in his
fingers.
It felt normal enough. The ploy could well
be
Teague's way of rescuing him from a difficult
situation.
He
flashed a glance at the guardsman and saw
nothing
but a cool, poised patience. Nothing at all
indicated
Teague might be lying.
Kellin
considered. A second test of the cube di-
vulged
a faint roughness at one rounded comer,
but
that could come from years of tavern use
rather
than purposeful weighting.
"A
lie," Luce declared. "Give it here."
Kellin
stared back. "You deny the charge."
"I
do!"
"Then
you will have no objection if we test it." Kel-
198
Jennifer Robersoa
lin
kicked aside bits and pieces of soiled rushes.
He
grimaced in distaste as he knelt down on the
packed
earthen floor. It was a vulnerable position,
with
Luce towering over him, but he assumed it
with as
much nonchalance as he could muster. He
dared
not hesitate now, not before the ring of hos-
tile
faces -
"A
lie," Luce repeated.
Kellin
draped one forearm across a doubled
knee.
He gripped the die loosely in his right hand.
"If
it is a fair roll, you shall have the knife." He
saw it
in Teague's hand, emerald eyes glittering.
"Otherwise,
your remaining thumb is forfeit."
Luce
breathed audibly. "Throw it, then."
Kellin
opened his fingers and dropped the cube.
It
bounced, rattled, then stilled.
"You
see?" Luce declared.
Kellin
smiled. "Patience is not your virtue." He
retrieved
the die. "If the identical value shows
four
more times, I think there will be no ques-
tion—"
Luce
bellowed an order.
Kellin
uncoiled from the floor and caught the
knife
easily as Teague slapped it into his hand.
The
blade rested against Luce's massive belly,
forestalling
any attack by others. "I offer you two
things,"
Kellin said clearly. "First, your life; I
have no
desire to gut you here. It would only add
to the
stench." He showed the big man his teeth.
"The
other is the answer to your question. You
see, I
got this knife—" he pressed the tip more
firmly
against Luce's belly above the bronze buckle,
"—in
a sacred ritual. Few Homanans know about
it;
only one has witnessed it. His name was Caril-
lon."
Jubilation welled up in Kellin's spirit. He
had
risked himself, and won. "It is the custom to
exchange
knives when a Cheysuli liege man
swears
blood-oath to serve the Prince of Homana."
A
TAFESTKY w LKWS 199
Luce's
disbelief and fury began as a belly-deep
growl
and rose to a full-throated roar. "Prince—"
Kellin
cut it off with a firmer pressure against
the
heavy belly. "Cheysuli as well, Homanan. Tahl-
morra
lujhala mei wiccan, cheysu." He laughed, de-
lighted
to see the comprehension in Luce's face.
"Now,
perhaps we should discuss your thumb."
"Gut
me, then!" Luce roared, and brought his
knee up
sharply.
The
knife did not by much beat the knee to its
target,
but Kellin's thrust was almost immediately
rendered
ineffective. He intended to sheath the
steel
in Luce's belly, but the man's upthrust knee,
driving
home with speed and accuracy, deprived
Kellin
of everything except a burst of incredible
pain,
and the knowledge—even as he collapsed—
that he
had made a deadly mistake.
—never
hesitate— But he had. Now he lay writh-
ing on
the filthy floor of a dirtier tavern, wonder-
ing if
he would survive long enough to find out if
he
could bed a woman again.
He had
cut Luce, perhaps deeply, but not deeply
enough
to kill; he heard the man shouting orders
to his
confederates. Hands closed on Kellin even
as he
groaned and tried to swallow the usca that
threatened
to exit his body. Bile burned in the
back of
his throat.
Teague.
Somewhere. But they were two against
too
many.
For a
fleeting moment Kellin wished he had not
been so
adamant about posting the remaining
watchdogs
outside, but there was no time for re-
criminations.
He had lost his knife on the floor
and had
only his wits and skills with which to
save
his life.
Hands
dragged him upright. Kellin wanted very
badly
to lie down again, but he dared not if he
were to
preserve his life. So he tapped the pain,
299
used
the pain as a goad. and channeled it into a
weapon.
He tore
loose of the hands holding him, jabbing
with
elbows and stomping with booted feet. One
man he
butted so firmly beneath the chin that
teeth
crunched. Something sharp sliced across his
outflung
hands, grated across knuckles; a second
knife
jabbed him in the back. But its tip fouled on
the
heavy winter doublet as he spun away.
Kellin
lashed out with a boot and smashed a
knee,
then jammed an elbow into the man's face
as he
doubled over. Blood spurted as the nose
broke,
spraying Kellin as well as the Homanan.
Teague.
Near, he knew; he could hear the guards-
man
swearing by the name of the Mujhar. Kellin
hoped
Teague was armed with more than oaths.
If I
could find the door—
A table
was shoved into his path. Kellin braced,
then
swung up onto it, kicked out again, caught
one
man's jaw flush. The head snapped back on
its neck.
The man tell limply even as another re-
placed
him.
Someone
slashed at his leg. Kellin leapt high
into
the air and avoided the knife, but as he came
down
again the flimsy table collapsed. In a spray
of
shattered wood and curses, Kellin went down
with
it-
Something
blunt dug into his spine as he rolled.
Wood,
not blade—
"Mine!"
Luce roared. "He's mine to kill!"
"Teague!"
Kellin shouted.
"My
lord—" But the answering shout was cut
off.
Kellin
thrust himself upward. Arms closed around
his
chest, trapping his own arms in a deadly hug.
His
spine was pressed against the massive belt
buckle;
his head beneath Luce's chin. The Homa-
nan's
strength was immense.
A
TWESTRY OF LHWS 201
A
sharp, firm squeeze instantly expelled what
little
breath was left in Kellin's lungs. The human
vice
around his chest denied him another. Speck-
les
crept into the comers of his eyes, then spread
to
threaten his vision.
Kellin
writhed in Luce's grasp. He kicked but
struck
air, and the big man laughed. "Boy," Luce
said,
"your gods can't hear you now."
He had
not petitioned the gods. Now he did, just
in
case, even as he snapped his head backward in
a
futile attempt to smash Luce's face. He struck
nothing
but muscled neck. Luce's grip tightened.
Frenziedly,
Kellin fought. His breath was gone,
and his
strength, but desperation drove him. He
would
not give up. A Cheysuli warrior never gave
up.
Luce,
laughing, shook him. A rib protested- "Lit-
tle
prince," he baited, "where is your liege man
now?"
Blais
would not permit this— Kellin arched his
body in
a final attempt at escape, then went limp.
Blood
dripped from the corner of his mouth. He
hung
slackly in thick arms.
Luce
squeezed him a final time, threw him
down.
"I'll have that knife now."
Kellin's
breath came back in a rush. He heard
himself
gasping and whooping as his lungs filled
slowly,
then understood what Luce intended to do-
"No
knife—mine-—" And it was there, kicked be-
neath
shattered wood; Kellin clawed for it, touched
it»
closed trembling fingers upon it even as Luce
saw his
intent. But before the big man could react,
Kellin's
hand closed over the hilt.
He came
up from the floor in one awkward
lunge,
still gasping for breath, still doubled up
from
the pain of his bruised ribs. But to hesitate
or
protect himself guaranteed death; Kellin slashed
out
repeatedly, carving himself a clearing. He saw
202
Jennifer Roberson
s,
the
glint of a swordblade—no, two—and realized
^
the watchdogs
were present at last. Teague had
reached
the door, or else they had heard the
commotion.
Luce?
The man
was there, armed as well. The knife he
held
was not so elaborate as Kellin's but its blade
was
equally deadly. Near-black eyes were fastened ^
on
Kellin's face. "I'll have that long-knife yet." ^
Blood
trickled into Kellin's right eye as he
^
sucked
at air. He scrubbed a forearm across his
?
brow,
shook back damp hair, then grinned at the
s
big
man- Without the breath to answer, Kellin
f
beckoned
Luce on with the waggle of one hand.
^
By now
most of the fighting had been stopped,
or
stopped of its own accord. It had come down
to
Kellin and Luce. The silence in the tavern was
heavy
with expectation.
Luce
still watched him, judging his condition.
Kellin
knew it well enough: he was half-sick on
usca
and the blow from Luce's knee, as well as
bruised
about the ribs. He was stippled by half a
dozen
nicks and slices, and a cut across his brow
bled
sluggishly, threatening his vision.
Kellin
forced a ragged laugh. "Are you truly the
king of
the Midden? Do you think yourself fit to
rule?
Then show me, little man. Prove to a Chey-
suli
you are fit to hold his knife."
Luce
came on, as expected. Kellin stood his
ground,
watching the man's posture and the sub-
tle
movements of his body; when Luce's momen-
tum was
fully engaged, his intent divulged, Kellin
slipped
aside and thrust out a boot. Luce stum-
bled,
cursed, then fell against a table. His hands
thrust
out to brace himself.
With a
single definitive blow of Blais' knife, Kel-
lin
chopped down and severed the thief's re-
A
TAPESTSY OF LlOPHS 203
maining
thumb. "There," he said, "the debt now
is
paid."
Luce
screamed. He clutched his bleeding hand
against
his chest. "Shapechanger sorcery!"
Kellin
shook his head. still trying to regain his
breath.
"Just a knife in the hand of a man. But
enough
for you, it seems."
The
conquest of Luce ended the fight entirely.
Kellin
saw bloodied faces and gaping mouths, torn
clothing
and gore-splattered hair. The crimson tu-
nics of
the watchdogs glowed like pristine beacons
in the
smoky shadows of the tavern.
He
ached. His profaned manhood throbbed. He
wanted no
more than to lie down in the slushy
snow
and cool the heat of pain, to drive away the
sickness,
to regain in the bite of winter the self-
control
he had forfeited to a despised desperation.
Kellin
wanted no one, thief or guardsman, to
see how
much he hurt. Without a word, without
an
order, he turned and walked through the crowd
and
pushed open the cracked door, taking himself
from
the tavern into the cold clarity of the alley.
The
stench was no better there, but the familiar
glitter
of stars was an infinite improvement over
the
opaque malignancy of Luce's enraged stare.
Kellin
looked at the horses and very nearly
flinched.
He could not bear the idea of riding.
"My
lord?" It was Teague, exiting the tavern.
He was
bloodied and bruised and very taut around
the
mouth. "We should get you to Homana-
Mujhar,"
The
response was automatic. "If I choose to go."
Teague
neither flinched nor colored. His tone
was
pitched to neutrality. "Are you done for the
evening,
my lord?"
Kellin
gifted him with a scowl as the other
guardsmen
filed out of the tavern. "Is there some-
thing
else you wished to do?"
204
Jennifer Roberson
Teague
shrugged. "I thought perhaps you might
desire
to find another game." He paused. "My
lord."
As he
collected breath and wits, Kellin consid-
ered
any number of retorts. Most of them were
couched
in anger or derision. But after what
Teague
had done, he thought the guardsman de-
served
better.
He blew
out a frosted breath, then drew another
into a
sore chest. He wanted to lie down, or bend
over,
or lean against the wall, but he would do
none of
those things or risk divulging discomfort.
A/
Instead,
he asked a question. "Was the die improp- 4-
eriy
weighted?"
;
Teague
grinned. "As to that, I could not swear. ,;
But
when Luce spread his hand down across the
pile
and challenged you to the final throw, I saw
one die
replaced with another. It seemed logical
to
assume it was weighted to favor Luce."
Kellin
grunted agreement. "But it was not re-
placed
before."
"No,
my lord."
"You
are certain?"
"My
lord—" With effort, Teague suppressed a
smile
and did not look at his companions. "I am
moved
to say your luck was bad tonight."
"And,
no doubt, my tavern selection." Kellin
sighed
and pressed a hand against sore ribs. "I am
going
home. You may come, or go, as you wish. It
is
nothing to me."
Teague
considered it. "I think I will come, my
lord."
The faintest glint brightened his eyes. "I
would
like to hear what the Mujhar has to say
when
you arrive on his front step."
It was
momentarily diverting. "To me, or to
you?"
"To
you, my lord. I have done my duty."
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS 205
Kellin
scowled. "It is not the Mujhar who con-
cerns
me."
"Who,
then?"
It was
an impertinence, but Kellin was too tired
and
sore to remind Teague of that. "The queen,"
he
muttered. "She is Erinnish, remember? And
possessed
of a facile tongue." He sighed. "My ears
will be
burning tonight, as she can no longer red-
den my
rump."
Teague
surrendered his dignity to a shout of
laughter.
Then he recalled whom it was he served—
the
royal temper, Kellin knew, was notorious—
and
quietly gathered up the reins of his own
mount
and Kellin's. "I will walk with you, my
lord."
The
assumption stung. "And if I mean to ride?"
"Then
I will ride also." Teague lowered his eyes
and
stared inoffensively at the ground. "But I
daresay
my journey will be more comfortable than
yours."
Kelin's
face burned. "I daresay."
The
Prince of Homana walked all the way home
as his
faithful watchdogs followed.
Five
The
Queen of Homana pressed a wine-soaked cloth
against
the wound in her grandson's scalp. "Sit
still,
Kellin! Tis a deep cut."
He
could not help himself; he lapsed into an
Erinnish
lilt in echo of her own. "You'll be making
it
deeper, with this! D'ye mean to go into my
brain?"
"
'Twould keep you from further idiocy, now,
wouldn't
it?" The pressure was firm as she worked
to
stanch the dribbling blood.
"That
I doubt," Brennan said. "Kellin courts
idiocy."
"
'Twould seem so," Aileen agreed equably. Then,
when
Kellin meant to protest, "Sit still."
Between
them, they will slice me into little pieces.
Kellin
sat bolt upright in a stool in his chambers,
bare to
the waist. He was not in the slightest dis-
posed
to remain still as she pressed liquor into his
scalp,
because he could not. It stung fiercely. The
right
side of his chest was beginning to purple
from
Luce's affectionate hug, but Kellin was not
certain
Aileen's ministrations—or her words—would
be
gentler.
"You
could bind his ribs," she suggested crisply
to
Brennan, "instead of standing there glowering
like an
old wolf."
"No,"
Kellin answered, knowing the Mujhar's
206
A
TAPESTRY OF LtONS 207
hands
would be far less gentle than hers. "You do
it,
granddame."
"Then
stop twitching."
"It
hurts."
Aileen
sighed as she peeled back the cloth and
inspected
the oozing cut beneath. "For a Cheysuli
warrior,
my braw boyo, you're not so very good
at
hiding your pain."
"The
Erinnish in me," he muttered pointedly.
"Besides,
how many Cheysuli warriors must suffer
a woman
to pour liquid fire into their skulls?"
Aileen
pressed closed the cut. "How many re-
quire
it?"
Kellin
hissed. He slanted a sidelong glance at
his
grandfather. "I am not the first to rebel against
the
constraints of his rank."
The
gibe did not disturb the Mujhar in the least.
He
stood quietly before his battered grandson
with
gold-weighted arms folded, observing his
queen's
ministrations. "Nor will you be the last,"
Brennan
remarked. "But as that comment was
aimed
specifically at me, let me answer you in
like
fashion: dying before you inherit somewhat
diminishes
the opportunity to break free of my
authority."
He arched a brow. "Does it not?"
Kellin
gritted his teeth. "I'm not looking to die,
grandsire—"
"You
give every indication of it."
"—merely
looking for entertainment, something
to fill
my days, something to quench my taste—"
"—for
rebellion." Brennan smiled a little. "Noth-
ing you
tell me now cannot be countered, Kellin.
For
that matter, you may as well save your breath,
which
is likely at this moment difficult to draw
through
bruised ribs—" the Mujhar cast him an
ironic
glance, "—because I know very well what
you
will say. I even know what / will say; it was
said to
me and to my rujholli several decades ago."
208
Jennifer Robersoa
Kellin
scowled. "I am not you, or Hart, or
Corin—"
"—or
even Keely," Aiieen finished, "and I've
heard
this before, myself." Her green eyes were
bright.
"Now both of you be silent while I wrap
up your
ribs."
Kellin
subsided into glum silence, punctuated
only by
an occasional hissed inhalation. He did
not
look again at his grandsire, but stared fixedly
beyond
him so he would not provoke a comment
in the
midst of intense discomfort.
He had
told them little of the altercation in the
tavern,
saying merely that a game had gone bad
and the
fight was the result. No deaths, he pointed
out;
the Mujhar, oddly, asked about fire, to which
Kellin
answered in puzzlement that there was no
fire,
only a little blood. It had satisfied Brennan in
some
indefinable way; he had said little after that
save
for a few caustic comments.
Kellin
sat very still as Aiieen worked, shutting
his
teeth against the pain—he would not permit
her to
believe he was less able than anyone else
to hold
his tongue—and said nothing. But he was
aware
of an odd sensation that had little to do
with
pain.
"—still,"
she murmured, as a brief tremor claimed
his
body.
Kellin
frowned as she snugged the linen around
his
ribs. What is—? And then again the tremor,
and
Aileen's muttered comment, and his own un-
intended
reaction; every inch of flesh burned so
intensely
he sweated with it.
Brennan
frowned. "Perhaps I should call a
surgeon."
"No!"
Kellin blurted.
"If
there is that much pain—"
"—isn't
pain," Kellin gritted. "Except—for that—"
He
sucked in a hissing breath as Aiieen pulled
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
209
linen
taut against sore flesh. "Call no one.
Grandsire."
He held
himself still with effort. It wasn't pain,
but
something else entirely, something he could
not ignore,
that burned through flesh into bone
with a
will of its own, teasing at self-control. Fin-
gers
and toes tingled. It spread to groin and belly,
then
crept upward to his heart.
"Kellin?"
Aileen's hands stilled. "Kel[in—"
He
heard her only dimly, as if water filled his
ears.
His entire being was focused on a single sen-
sation.
It was very like the slow build toward the
physical
release of man into woman, he thought,
but
with a distinct difference he could not voice.
He
could not find the words. He knew only there
was a
vast and abiding thing demanding his atten-
tion,
demanding his body and soul.
"Ihlini?"
he murmured. "Lochiel?"
He need
only put out his hand, Corwyth had
said,
and Kellin would be in it.
His
ribs were strapped and tied. He could not
breathe.
—could
not breathe—
"Kellin!"
Aileen's hands closed on his naked
shoulders.
"Can you hear me?"
He
could. Clearly. The stuffy distance was gone.
The
burning subsided, as did the tremors. He felt
it all
go, leaching him of strength. He sat weak
and
trembling upon the stool, sweat running down
his
face. Damp hair stuck to his brow.
Gods—
But he cut it off. He would not beg aid
or
explanation from those he could not honor.
Kellin
clenched his teeth within an aching jaw.
For a
moment the room wavered around him,
running
together until all the colors were gone.
Everything
was a fleshy gray, lacking depth or
substance.
"Kellin?"
The Mujhar.
219
Jennifer Roberson
He
could make no answer. He blinked, tried to
focus,
and vision eventually steadied. His hearing
now was
acute, so incredibly acute he heard the
soughing
of the folds of Aileen's skirts as she
turned
to Brennan. He could smell her, smell him-
self:
the bitter tang of his own fear, the acrid bite
of
rebelling flesh.
"Brighter—"
he blurted, and then the desolation
swept
in, and emptiness, and a despair so power-
ful he
wanted to cry out. He was a shell, not a
man; a
hollow, empty shell. Shadow, not warrior,
a man
lacking in heart or substance, and therefore
worthless
among his clan.
In
defiance of pain, Kellin lurched up from the
stool.
He shuddered. Tremors began again. He felt
the
protest of his ribs, but they did not matter. He
took a
step forward, then caught himself. For a
moment
he lingered, trapped upon the cusp, then
somehow
found the chamberpot so he could spew
his
excesses into pottery instead of onto the floor.
Even as
Aileen murmured sympathy, Brennan
cut her
off. "He deserves it. The gods know Hart
and
Corin did, and Keely, when they followed such
foolish
whims."
"And
what of your whims?" she retorted. "You
did not
drink overmuch, but you found Rhiannon
instead."
Kellin
stood over over the chamberpot, one arm
cradling
his chest. It hurt to bend over, hurt to
expell
all the usca, hurt worse to draw a breath.
He
straightened slowly, irritated by his grand-
parents'
inconsequential conversation, but mostly
humilated
by the dictates of his body. He felt no
better
for purging his belly. Sickness yet lurked
within,
waiting for the moment he least expected
its
return.
Brennan's
tone was uncharacteristically curt,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
211
but
also defensive as he answered his cheysula.
"Rhiannon
has nothing to do with this."
"She
was your downfall as much as gambling
was
Hart's and / was Corin's!" Aileen snapped.
"Don't
be forgetting it, Brennan. We all of us do
things
better left undone. Why should Kellin be
different?"
He
shivered once more, and then his body
stilled.
In quiescence was relief, carefully Keltin
sought
and found a cloth to wipe his mouth. It
hurt
too much to move; he leaned against the
wall.
Brickwork was cool against overheated flesh.
Distracted
by his movement, Aileen turned from
her
husband. "Are you well?"
"How
can he be well?" Brennan asked. "He has
drunk
himself insensible and now suffers for it, as
well as
for a fight that nearly stove in his chest."
His
mouth hooked down in derision. "But he is
young,
for all of that; he will begin again tomorrow."
"No,"
Kellin managed. "Not tomorrow." The
room
wavered again. He caught at brickwork to
keep
from falling.
"Kellin-"
The derision was banished from Bren-
nan
"s tone. "Sit down."
The
floor moved beneath Kellin's feet. Or was
he
moving?"
"He's
ill!" Aileen cried. "Brennan—catch—"
But the
command came too late. Kellin was
aware
of a brief detached moment of disorienta-
tion,
then found himself sprawled across the floor
with
his head in the Mujhar's arms.
He was
cold, so cold—and a wail of utter despair
rose
from the depths of his spirit. "—empty—" he
mouthed.
"—lost—"
Brennan
sat him upright and held him steady,
examining
his eyes. "Look at me."
Kellin
looked. Then vision slid out of focus and
212
Jennifer Roberson
the
wail came back again. A sob tore loose in his
chest.
"Grandsire—"
"Be
still. Look at me." Brennan cradled Kellin's
head in
his hands, holding it very still.
"Are
you wanting a surgeon?" Aileen asked
crisply.
"No."
"Earth
magic, then."
"No."
"Then—"
"Shansu,"
Brennan told her. "This is something
else,
meijhana. Something far beyond the discon-
tent
caused by too much usca."
It was
indeed. If not for the Mujhar *s hands
holding
him in place, Kellin believed he might fall
through
the floor and beyond. "—too hard—" he
whispered.
"Too—"
"—empty,"
Brennan finished, "and cold, and
alone,
torn apart from the world and everything
in
it."
'—lost—"
"And
angry and terribly frightened, and very
small
and worthless."
Kellin
managed to nod. The anguish and desola-
tion
threatened to overwhelm him. "How can—
how can
you know?"
Brennan's
severity softened. "Because I have felt
it
also- Every Cheysuli does when it is time to
bond
with his Ur."
"Lir!"
"Did
you really believe you would never have
one?"
Brennan's smile was faint. "Did you believe
you
would not need one?"
"I
renounced it!" Kellin cried. "When Blais
left—I
swore—"
"Some
oaths are as nothing."
"I
renounced a Ur, and the gods." It was incom-
prehensible
that now, after so long without one,
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOPiS 213
he
might require a Ur; or that he should have to
battle
the interference of gods he did not honor.
"Clearly
the gods did not renounce you," Bren-
nan
said dryly. "Now the time is come."
Kellin
summoned all his strength; it was a pa-
thetic
amount. "I refuse."
The
Mujhar smiled. "You are welcome to try."
Aileen
was shocked. "You are overharsh!"
"No.
There is nothing he can do. It is his time,
Aileen.
He will drive himself mad if he continues
this
foolishness. He must go. He is Cheysuli."
"And—Ermnish
... and Homanan—and all the
other
lines—" Kellin shivered. " 'Tis all I count
for, is
it not? My seed. My blood. Not Kellin at
aU\"
His spirit felt as cold and hard as the floor.
Desperately,
he said, "I renounce my hr."
"Renounce
as you will," Brennan said, "but for
now,
get up on the stool."
Kellin
gritted his teeth. "You are the Mujhar,
blessed
by the gods. I charge you to take it away."
"What—the
pain? You earned it. The empti-
ness? I
cannot. It can only be filled with a Ur."
"Take
it away!" Kellin shouted. "I cannot live
like
this!"
Brennan
rose. His eyes, so intensely yellow, did
not
waver. "You have the right of that," he agreed.
"You
cannot live like this."
"Grandsire—"
"Get
up, Kellin. There is nothing to be done."
He got
up. He ached. He swore, even before Ai-
leen.
He was profoundly empty, bereft of all save
futility
and a terrifying apartness. "I renounced
it,"
he said, "just as I renounced the gods. They
have no
power over me."
Brennan
turned to Aileen. "I will have usca sent
up.
Best he dulls his pain with that which caused
it; in
the morning he will be better—" he slanted
a
glance at his grandson, "—or he will be worse."
214
Jennifer Roberwa
She was
clearly displeased. "Brennan."
The
Mujhar of Homana extended a hand to his
queen.
"There is nothing to be done, Aileen. Whether
or not
he likes it, Kellin is Cheysuh. The price is
always
high, but no warrior refuses to pay it."
"I
do," Kellin declared. "/ refuse. I will not ac-
cept a
lir."
Brennan
nodded sagely. "Then perhaps you
should
spend the next few hours explaining that
to the
gods."
Six
"Leijhana
tu'sai," Kellin murmured as his grand-
parents
shut the door behind them. He was sick
to
death of Brennan's dire predictions and Aileen's
contentiousness;
could they not simply let him
alone?
They try to shape me to fit their own idea of
how a
prince should be.
Or perhaps
they attempted to shape him into
something
other than his father who had re-
nounced
his rank and title as Kellin renounced his
Hr.
He drew
in a hissing breath and let it out again,
trying
to banish pain as he banished the previous
thought.
Kellin had no desire to consider how his
behavior
might affect his grandparents, or that the
cause
of his own rebellion was incentive for the
very
expectations he detested. Such maunderings
profited
no one, save perhaps the occasional flicker
of
guilt searching for brighter light. He had no
time
for such thoughts; his ribs ached, and his
manhood
as yet reminded him of its abuse- Best
he
simply took to his bed; perhaps he would fall
asleep,
and by morning be much improved in
health
and spirit.
But
restlessness forbade it even as he approached
the
bed. He was dispirited, disgruntled, highly un-
settled.
Even his bones itched. His body would not
be
still, but clamored at him for something—
"What?"
Kellin gritted. "What is it I'm to do?"
215
216
Wa ••
rtfrtM
JUIBuT
He
could not be srifl. Frustrated, Kellin began to
pace,
hoping to burn out the buzz in blood and bones.
But he
managed to stop only when he reached the
polished
plate hanging cockeyed on the wall.
He
stared gloomily at his reflection: a tall man,
fair of
skin—for a Cheysuli, he thought, though
dark
enough for a Homanan\—with green eyes di-
lated
dark and new bruises on his face.
Aileen's
applications of wine had stiffened his
hair.
Kellin impatiently scrubbed a hand through
it,
taking care to avoid the crusting cut. The raven
curls
of youth were gone, banished by adulthood,
but his
hair still maintained a springy vigor. He
scratched
idly at his chest, disliking the tautness
of the
wrappings. The linen bandages stood out in
stark
relief against the nakedness of his torso.
Kellin
stared at his reflection, then grinned as
he
recalled the cause of sore ribs. "And what of
the
thumbless thief?"
But the
brief jolt of pleasure and vindication
dissipated
instantly. Luce was not important. Luce
did not
matter. Nothing at all mattered except the
despair
that welled up so keenly to squash his
spirit
flat.
Kellin
turned from the plate abruptly. Better he
not
look; better he not see—
Emptiness
overwhelmed, and the savage desire
to tear
down all the walls, brick by brick, so he
could
be free of them.
He
burned with it. Cursing weakly, Kellin lurched
to the
narrow casement. Beyond lay Homana of
the
endless skies and meadows, the freedom of the
air. He
was confined by walls, oppressed by brick-
work;
every nerve in his body screamed its de-
mand
for freedom.
"Get
out—" he blurted.
He
needed desperately to get out, get free, get
loose—
A
TMSSHW W LiSHW 217
"Shadow,"
he murmured. "Half-man, hollow-
man—"
And then he squeezed shut his eyes as he
dug
fingers into stone. "I will not ... will not be
what
they expect me to be—"
Cold
stone bit into his brow, hurting his bruised
face;
he had pressed himself against the wall be-
side
the window. Flame washed his flesh and set
afire
every nick, scratch, and cut. Rising bruises
ached
as blood throbbed in them, threatening to
break
through the fragile warding of his skin.
He
paced because he could not help himself; he
could
not be still. A singing was in his blood, echo-
ing
clamorously. He paced and paced and paced,
trying
to suppress the singing, the overriding urge
to
squeeze himself through the narrow casement
and
fling himself into the air.
"—fall—"
he muttered. "Fall and break all my
bones—"
Hands
fisted repeatedly: a cat flexing its claws,
testing
the power in his body, the urge to slash
into
flesh.
He
sweated. Panted. Swore at capricious gods.
He
wanted to open the door, to tear it from its
hinges,
to shatter the wood completely and throw
aside
iron studs.
Kellin
sat down on the stool and hugged bare
arms
against wrapped chest, ignoring the pain. He
rocked
and rocked and rocked: a child in need of
succor;
a spirit in need of release.
Tears
ran down his face. "Too many—" he said.
"Too
many ... I will not risk losing a lir—" Only
to lose
himself to an arcane Cheysuli ritual that
robbed
the world of another warrior despite his
perfect
health.
Liriess
warriors went mad, he had been taught,
as all
Cheysuli were taught. Mad with the pain
and the
grief, the desperate emptiness.
"—mad
now—" he panted. "Is this different?"
218
Jennifer Roberwn
Perhaps
not. Perhaps what he did now was in-
vite
the very madness he did not desire to risk in
bonding
with a lir.
Brickwork
oppressed him. The walls and roof
crushed
his spirit.
"Out—"
he blurted. But to go out was to
surrender.
He
rocked and rocked and rocked until he could
rock no
more; until he could not countenance sit-
ting on
the stool another moment and rose to pace
again,
to move from wall to wall, to stand briefly
at the
casement so as to test his will, to dare the
desperate
need that drove him to pace again, until
he
reached the door.
Unlocked.
Merely latched. He need only lift the
latch—
"No."
A tremor wracked Kellin's body. He sup-
pressed
it. He turned away, jubilant in his victory,
in the
belief he had overcome it—and then felt
his
will crumble beneath the simplicity of sheer
physical
need-
It took
but a moment: boots, doublet, russet wool
cloak,
long-knife. Emeralds winked in candlelight.
Kellin
stared at the knife. Vision blurred: tears.
Tears
for the warrior who had once sworn by the
blade,
by his blood, by the lir whose death had
killed
him.
He
thought of the words Blair had offered him
a
decade before.
It
hurt. It squeezed, until no room was left for
his
heart; no room remained for his spirit.
"Y'ja'hai,"
Kellin breathed, then unlatched and
jerked
open the door.
He did
not awaken the horse-boy sleeping in straw.
He
simply took a bridle, a horse—without benefit
of
blankets or saddle—and swung up bareback.
Pain
thundered in Kellin's chest. He sat rigidly
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 219
straight,
daring himself to give in as sweat trick-
led
down his temples. Scrapes stung from the
taste
of salt, but he ignored them. A smaller pain,
intrusive
but less pronounced, reminded him of
his
offended netherparts, but that pain, too, he rel-
egated
to nothing in the face of his compulsion.
Winter
hair afforded him a better purchase
bareback
than the summer season, when mounts
were
slick-haired and the subsequent ride occa-
sionally
precarious. It was precarious now, but not
because
of horsehair; a rider was required to
adapt
to his mount's movements by adjustments
in body
both large and small, maintaining flexi-
bility
above all else, but the skill was stripped
from
Kellin. With ribs bruised and tightly strapped,
he was
forced to sit bolt upright without bending
his
spine, or risk significant pain.
He knew
the way so well: a side-gate in the
shadows,
tucked away in the wall; he had used it
before.
He used it now, leaving behind the outer
bailey,
then Mujhara herself as he rode straight
through
the city to the meadowlands beyond. The
narrow
track was hard footing in the cold, glinting
with
frost rime in the pallor of the moon.
No more
walls— Kellin gritted his teeth. No more
stone
and brick, no more streets and buildings—
Indeed,
no more. He had traded city for country,
replacing
cobbles with dirt and turf, and captivity
for
freedom.
But the
emptiness remained.
If I
give myself over to the lir-bond, I will be no
different
from any warrior whose promise to chey-
sula
and children to care for them always is threat-
ened by
that very bond.
It
seemed an odd logic to Kellin. How could one
promise
supersede the other, yet still maintain its
worth?
How could any warrior swear himself so
220
Jennifer Roberson
profoundly
to lir and family knowing very well one
of the
oaths might be as nothing?
For
that matter, how could cheysula or child be-
lieve
anything the warrior promised when it was
made
very clear in the sight of gods and clan that
a lir
came first always?
Kellin
shook his head. A selfish oath demanded
from
selfish gods—
The
horse stumbled. Jarred, sore ribs protested;
fresh
sweat broke on Kellin's brow and ran down
his
face. Cold air against dampness made him
shiver
convulsively, which set up fresh complaint.
He cast
a glance at the star-freighted sky. Re-
venge
for my slight? That I dare to question such
overweening
dedication to you?
The
horse did not stumble again. If the gods
heard,
they chose not to answer.
Kellin,
for his part, laughed—until the despair
and
emptiness shattered into pieces the dark humor
of his
doubts, reminding him once again that he
was, if
nothing else, subject to such whims as the
gods
saw fit to send him.
Merely
because I am Cheysuli— He gripped the
horse
with both knees, clutching at reins. He re-
called
all too well what his grandsire had said
regarding
madness. He recalled even more clearly
the
wild grief in Blais' eyes as the warrior ac-
knowledged
a far greater thing than that he must
give up
his life; Tanni's death and the severing of
the
/fr-bond had been, in that moment, the only
thing
upon which Blais could focus himself, though
it
promised his death as well.
Irony
blossomed- Certainly he focused nothing
upon
me, who had from him a blood-oath of service.
One
sworn to the gods, at that.
Kellin
and his mount exchanged meadowlands
for the
outermost fringes of the forest. His passage
stirred
the woods into renewed life, startling
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 221
birds
from branches and field warren from bur-
rows.
Here the moon shone more fitfully, frag-
mented
by branches. Kellin heard the sound of his
horse
and his own breath expelled in pale smoke.
He
pulled the russet cloak more closely around his
shoulders.
The
horse stopped. It stood completely still, ears
erect.
Its nostrils expanded hugely, fluttered, then
whuffed
closed as he expelled a noisy snort of
alarm.
"Shansu—"
Even as Kellin gathered rein to fore-
stall
him, the horse quivered from head to toe.
From
the shadows just ahead came the heavy,
throaty
coughing of a lion.
"Wait—"
But even as Kellin clamped his legs,
the
horse lunged sideways and bolted.
Seven
In the
first awkward lunge, Kellin felt the slide of
horsehair
against breeches and the odd, unbal-
anced
weightlessness of a runaway. With it came
a
twofold panic: first, the chance of injury; the
second
because of the lion.
He had
ridden runaways before. He had fallen
off of
or been thrown from runaways before. It
was a
straightforward hazard of horsemanship re-
gardless
how skilled the rider, regardless how
docile
the horse. A horseman learned to halt a run-
away
mount with various techniques when footing
afforded
it; here, footing was treacherous, and vi-
sion
nonexistent. This particular runaway—at
night,
in the dark, with customary reflexes obliter-
ated by
pain and disorientation—was far more
dangerous
than most.
Kellin's
balance was off. He could not sit prop-
erly.
He was forced to ride mostly upright, perch-
ing
precariously, breaking the fluid melding of
horse
and rider. Vibrations of the flight, instead of
dissipating
in his body, reverberated painfully as
the
horse broke through tangled undergrowth and
leapt
fallen logs.
Branches
snagged hair, slapped face, cut into
Kellin's
mouth. A clawing vine hooked the bridge
of his
nose and tore flesh. He felt something dig
at one
eye and jerked his head aside, cursing help-
lessly.
One misstep-—
222
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
223
He
tried to let reflexes assume control, rather
than
trusting to himself. But reflexes were ban-
ished.
His spine was jarred as the horse essayed a
depression
in the ground, which in turn jarred his
ribs.
Kellin sucked in a noisy breath and tried to
ease
his seat, to let the response of muscles to his
mount's
motion dictate the posture of his body,
but
failed to do so.
The
horse stumbled, then dodged and lurched
sideways
as it shied from an unseen terror. Kellin
blurted
discomfort, biting into his cheek; he thought
of
snubbing the horse's nose back to his left knee
in the
classic technique, but the trees were too
close,
the foliage too dense. He had no leeway, no
leverage.
The
horse hesitated, then leapt again, clearing
an
unseen impediment. It seemed then to realize
it bore
an unwanted rider. Kellin felt the body
shifting
beneath his buttocks, away from clamping
legs;
then it bunched and twisted, elevating but-
tocks,
and flung its rider forward.
Awkwardly
Kellin slid toward the horse's head,
dangling
briefly athwart one big shoulder. Hands
caught
frenziedly at mane as he tried to drag him-
self
upright, clutching at reins, digging in with left
heel,
but the horse ducked out from under him.
Kellin
was very calm as he hung momentarily
in the
air. He was aware of weighty darkness, en-
croaching
vines and branches, the utter physical
incomprehensibility
that he was unconnected to
his
mount—and the unhappy acknowledgment
that
when he landed momentarily it would hurt
very
much.
He
tucked up as best he could, cursing strapped
ribs.
One shoulder struck the ground first- He
rolled
through the motion, smashing hip against
broken
branches shrouded in tangled fern, then
flopped
down onto his back as the protest of his
224
Jennifer Robersoa
ribs
robbed him of control. He landed flat and
very
hard, human prey for the hidden treacheries
of
unseen ground.
For a
moment there was no pain. It terrified
him. He
recalled all too clearly the old Homanan
soldier
who had taken a tumble from his horse in
the bailey
of the castle. The fall had not been bad;
but as
fellow soldiers—and Kellin with them—
gathered
to trade jests, it became clear that
though
old Tammis lived, his neck was broken. He
would
not walk again.
The
panic engendered by that image served as
catalyst
for the bruised strength in legs and
arms.
Kellin managed one huge jerking contortion
against
broken boughs and fern. It renewed all the
pain,
but he welcomed it. Pain was proof he could
yet
move.
/ will
walk again. But just now, he was not cer-
tain he
wanted to. Now that he could move he did
not,
but lay slack and very still against a painful
cradle.
He forced himself not to gasp but to draw
shallow
breaths through the wreckage of his chest.
When he
at last had wind again, Kellin gasped
out a
lengthy string of the vilest oaths he knew in
Homanan,
Old Tongue, and Erinnish. It used up
the
breath he had labored so carefully to recover,
but he
felt it worth it. Dead men did not swear.
The
horse was gone. Kellin did not at that mo-
ment
care; he could not bear the thought of trying
to
mount. He wished the animal good riddance,
suppressing
the flicker of dismayed apprehen-
sion—a
long and painful walk all the way to Mujh-
ara—then
set about making certain he was whole.
Everything
seemed to be, but he supposed he could
not
tell for certain until he got up from the
ground.
Sound
startled him into stillness. But a stride
A
TAPESTRY Of LIONS 225
or two
away came the coughing grunt of beast,
and the
stink of its breath.
It
filled Kellin's nostrils and set him to flight. It
might
be bear, mountain cat— He flailed, then
stilled
himself.
Lion?
It bore
Corwyth's hallmark.
With
effort Kellin pulled his elbows in to his
sides
and levered his torso upright, lifting a bat-
tered
chest until he no longer lay squashed and
helpless.
"Begone," he said aloud, using the scorn
of
royalty. "You have no power over me."
The
odor faded at once, replaced with the damp
cold
smells of winter. A man laughed softly from
the
shadows shielding the beast. "The lion may
not,"
he said, "but be certain that / do."
Kellin's
breath hissed between set teeth as Cor-
wyth
exited the shadows for the star-lighted hol-
low in
which the prince lay. The Ihini wore dark
leathers
and a gray wool cloak. Pinned by a heavy
knot of
silver at one shoulder, the cloak glowed
purple
in the livid shadows of its folds.
Knowledge
diminished pain; made it no longer
important.
"Corwyth the Lion. But the guise is
now
ineffective; I have learned what you are."
Corwyth
affected a negligent shrug. "I am what-
ever it
serves me—and my master—to be. For you,
it was
a lion." The Ihlini walked quietly toward
Kellin,
crackling no branches, snagging no vegeta-
tion.
His hands were gloved in black. "Indeed, we
heard
of the small prince's fear of lions. It permit-
ted us
certain liberties, even though we were pow-
erless
within the palace itself. Fear alone can
prove
effective, as it did in your case. You be-
lieved.
That belief has shaped you, Kellin; it has
made
you what you are in heart and spirit, and
placed
you here within my grasp."
Kellin
longed to repudiate it, but he could not
226
speak.
What Corwyth said was true. His own
weakness
had provided the Ihlini with a weapon.
The
gloved hands spread, displaying tiny white
flames
that transformed themselves to pillars. They
danced
against Corwyth's palms. "lan's death in
particular
was most advantageous. Your certainty
that
the Lion had killed him was unfounded—it
was but
a child's imagination gone awry, interpre-
ting a
passing comment into something of sub-
stance—but
that substance, given life, nearly
consumed
you." The flames within his palms
bathed
Corwyth's smiling face with lurid illumi-
nation.
His eyes were black pockets in a white-
limned
mask. "That, too, served, though it was
none of
ours. A fortuitious death, was lan's. We
could
not have hoped for better."
Kellin
stirred in protest, then suppressed a
grunt
of pain. He wanted very badly to rise and
face
the Ihlini as he would face a man, but pain
ate at
his bones. "Lochiel," he said.
Corwyth
nodded. "The hand at last is outstretched.
It
beckons, Kellin. You are cordially invited to join
your
kinsman in the halls of Valgaard."
"Kinsman!"
Corwyth
laughed. "You recoil as if wounded, my
lord*
But what else are you? Shall I recount your
heritage?"
Kellin's
silence was loud.
The
Ihlini continued regardless. "Lochiel was
Strahan's
son. Strahan was Tynstar's son, who got
him on
Electra of Solinde. She was, at the time,
married
to Carillon and was therefore Queen of
Homana;
but her tastes lay with her true lord
rather
than the Mujhar who professed to be."
White
teeth shone briefly. "Strahan was her son.
He was
brother—rujholli?—to Aislinn, who bore
Niall,
who sired Brennan—and a multitude of oth-
ers—who
in turn sired Aidan. Your very own
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS 227
jehan."
Corwyth nodded. "The line is direct, Kel-
lin.
You and Lochiel are indeed kinsmen, no mat-
ter
what you might prefer."
Something
slow and warm trickled into Kellin's
eyes.
He was bleeding—the cut Aileen had stanched?
Or
another, newer one?
Corwyth
laughed. "Poor prince. So battered, so
bruised
.. . and so entirely helpless."
Kellin
pressed himself up from the ground in a
single
painful lunge, jerking from its sheath the
lethal
Cheysuli long-knife. It fit his grasp so well,
as if
intended for him. Blais could not have known—
He
flipped it instantly in his hand and threw, arc-
ing it
cleanly across the darkness toward the Ihlini
sorcerer.
My own brand of Tooth!
But
Corwyth put up a gloved hand now free of
flames.
The knife stopped in midair. Emerald eyes
turned
black.
"No!"
Kellin's blurted denial was less of fear
than of
the knowledge of profanation. Not Blais'
long-knife!
Corwyth
plucked the weapon from the air. He
studied
it a moment, then tucked it away into his
belt.
His eyes were bright. "I have coveted one of
these
for a century. I thank you for your gift." The
young-looking
Ihlini smiled. "Without you, I might
never
have acquired one; Cheysuli warriors are,
after
all, well-protected by their lir." Corwyth
paused
to consider. "But you lack a lir and there-
fore
lack the protection. Leijhana tu'sai, my lord."
Kellin
wavered. His fragile strength, born of
panic
and fury, was spent. Nothing was left to
him,
not even anger, nor fear. An outthrust hand
earned
him nothing but empty air, certainly little
balance.
Fingers closed, then the hand fell limply
as
Kellin bit into his lip to forestall collapse. He
would
not, would not, show such weakness to the
Ihlini.
228
Jennifer Roberson
"Give
in to it," Corwyth suggested gently. "I am
not
here to be cruel, KeUin ... you paint us so, I
know,
and it is a personal grief; but there is no
sense
in maintaining such rigid and painful con-
trol
merely out of pride."
The
darkness thickened. Sorcery? Or exhaustion
compounded
by pain? "I am Cheysuli. I do not in
any
way, in words or deed or posture, even by
implication,
suggest that I am inferior to an
mlini."
Corwyth
laughed. "Inferior, no. Never. We are
equal,
my lord, in every sense of the word. Sired
by the
gods, we are now little more than petty
children
quarreling over a toy." His hand closed
over
the wolf-headed knife tucked into his belt.
"Once,
we might have been brothers. Rujheldi, as
we
say—is it not close to rujhoUl?" Corwyth did
not
smile. "Uncomfortably close, I see, judging by
your
expression. But it is too late now for anything
more
than enmity. The Cheysuli are too near ful-
fillment.
The time is now to stop the prophecy
before
it can be completed. Before you, my Chey-
suli
rujheldi, can be permitted to sire a child upon
an
Ihlini woman."
KeUin
wanted very much to spit. He did not
because
he thought it was time he showed self-
restraint.
He, who had so little. With careful dis-
dain,
he asked, "Do you believe I would so soil my
manhood
as to permit it entry into the womb of
the
netherworld?"
Corwyth
laughed. It was a genuine sound kiting
into
darkness. It stirred birds from a nearby tree
and
reawakened Kellin's apprehension. "A man is
a fool
to trust to taste and preference in a matter
so
important. I recite to you your own history,
KeUin:
Rhiannon, Lillith's. daughter, sired by lan
himself—"
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOW 229
"lan
was tricked. He was bespelled. He was lir-
less,
and therefore helpless."
"—and
Brennan, your grandsire, who lay with
Rhiannon
and sired the halfling Ihlini woman at
whose
breast you suckled."
Kellin's
belly clenched. "My grandsire was seduced."
"But
you are above such things?" Corwyth
shook
his head. "A single birth, Kellin ... a single
seed of
yours sowed in fertile Ihlini soil, and the
thing
is done." His eyes were black and pitiless in
the
frosted darkness. "We are not all of us sworn
to
Asar-Suti. There are those Ihlini who would, to
throw
us down, try very hard to insure the child
was
conceived. The prophecy is not dependent
upon
whose blood mingles with yours, merely that
it be
Ihlini."
Kellin
summoned the last of waning strength.
In
addition to battered chest, a hip and shoulder
ached.
Welts and scratches stung- Bravado was
difficult.
"So, will you kill me here?"
Corwyth
smiled. "You are meant for Lochiel's
disposition."
Kellin
dredged up scorn. "If you mean to take
me to
Valgaard, you will do it against my will.
That
much you cannot take from me, Hrless or no."
"That
may be true," Corwyth conceded, "but
there
are other methods. And all of them equally
efficient."
He
gestured. From the shadows walked two
cloaked
men and a saddled horse. Kellin looked at
them,
looked at the mount, and knew what they
meant
to do.
"A
long ride," Corwyth said, "and as painful as
I can
make it." He glanced to the horse, then
looked
back at Kellin. "How long do you think
you can
last?"
Eight
Kellin
awoke with his mouth full of blood. He
gagged,
spat it out, felt more flow in sluggishly
from
the cut on the inside of his cheek. Pressure
pounded
in his head. It roused him fully, so that
he
could at last acknowledge the seriousness of his
situation.
Corwyth's
companions had flung him belly-
down
across the saddle, little more than a bat-
tered
carcass shaped in the form of a man. Ankles
were
tied to the right stirrup, wrists to the left.
The
position was exceedingly uncomfortable; the
binding
around his ribs had loosened with abuse
and
provided no support.
He
recalled his defiant challenge: Cheysuli to Ih-
lini.
He recalled losing that challenge, though lit-
tle of
anything afterward; the pain had robbed
him of
consciousness. Now consciousness was
back.
He wished it were otherwise.
Kellin
gagged and coughed again, suppressing
the
grunt of pain that exited his throat and was
trapped
with deliberate effort behind locked teeth.
Regardless
of the discomfort, despite the incipient
rebellion
of his discontented belly, he would not
disgrace
himself by losing that belly's contents in
front
of an Ihlini.
A
thought intruded: Had I listened to my grand-
sire—
But Kellin cut it off. Self-recrimination
merely
added to misery.
230
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 231
The
horse moved on steadily with its Cheysuli
burden.
Every stride of the animal renewed Kel-
lin's
discomfort. He wanted very much to sit up-
right,
to climb down from the horse, to lie down
quietly
and let his headache subside. But he could
do none
of those things.
A
crackling of underbrush forwamed him of
company
as a horse fell in beside him. Kellin's
limited
head-down view provided nothing more of
the
world than stirrup leather and horsehair.
Then
Corwyth spoke, divulging identity. "Awake
at
last, my lord? You have slept most of the
night."
Slept?
I have been in more comfortable beds. Kel-
lin
lifted his head. His skull felt heavy, too heavy;
it took
effort to hold it up. The light now was
better;
he could see the Ihlini plainly. Dawn
waited
impatiently just outside the doorflap.
Corwyth
smiled. There was no derision in his
tone,
no contempt in his expression. "One would
hardly
recognize you. A bath would undoubtedly
benefit.
Would you care to visit a river?"
The
thought of being dumped into an ice-cold
river
bunched the flesh of Kellin's bones. He sup-
pressed
a shiver with effort and made no answer.
The
Ihlini's smile widened. "No, that would
hardly
do. You might sicken from it, and die . . .
and
then my lord would be very wroth with me."
Blue
eyes glinted. "I pity you, Kellin. I have seen
Lochiel's
anger before, and the consequences of
it."
Kellin's
mouth hurt. "Lochiel has tried to throw
down my
House before." It was mostly a croak;
he
firmed his voice so as not to sound so dimin-
ished.
"Why do you believe he will succeed this
time?"
"He
has you," Corwyth said simply.
"You
have me," Kellin corrected. "And I would
232
JeaaSfer Robersoa
not
count a Cheysuli helpless while his heart still
beats."
Russet
brows arched. "Shall I stop it, then? To
be
certain of my safety? To convince you, perhaps,
that
you are indeed helpless despite your Cheysuli
bravado?"
Kellin
opened his mouth to retort but found no
words
would come. Corwyth's gloved hand was
extended,
fingers slack. They curled slowly inward.
There
was no pain. Just a vague breathlessness
that
increased as the fingers closed, and a constric-
tion in
his chest that banished the ache of his ribs
because
this was much worse. Bruised ribs, even
cracked
ones, offered little danger when a man's
heart
was threatened.
Kellin
stirred in protest, but his bonds held
firm.
The horse walked on, led by Corwyth's min-
ions.
The Ihlini's fingers closed.
He felt
each of them: four fingers and a thumb,
distinct
and individual. Each was inside his chest.
They
touched him intimately, caressing the very
muscle
that kept him alive.
It was,
he thought, rape, if of a very different
nature.
Kellin
desired very much to protest, to cry out,
to
shout, to swear, to scream imprecations. But
his
mouth would not function. Hands and feet
were
numb. He thought the pressure in his head
might
cause his eyes and ears to burst.
He
could not breathe.
Corwyth's
hand squeezed.
Kellin
thrashed once, expelling breath and blood
in a
final futile effort to escape the hand in his
chest.
"Your
lips are blue," Corwyth said. "It is not a
flattering
color."
Nothing
more was left. Piece of meat—
A
TAPSSTKY w LIONS 233
It was,
Kellin felt, a supremely inelegant way to
die.
Then
the hand stilled his heart, and he was
dead.
Kellin
roused as Corwyth grabbed a handful of
hair
and jerked his head up. "Do you see?" the
Ihlini
asked. "Do you understand now?"
He
understood only that he had been dead, or
very
close to it. He sucked in a choking breath,
trying
to fill flaccid lungs. The effort was awk-
ward,
spasmodic, so that he recognized only the
muted
breathy roaring of a frightened man trying
desperately
to breathe.
/ am
frightened— And equally desperate; he felt
intensely
helpless, and angry because of it. Lo-
chiel's
ambassador had humiliated him in the
most
elemental of ways: by stripping a Cheysuli
of
freedom, strength, and. pride.
"Say
it again," Corwyth suggested. "Say again
Lochiel
cannot throw down your House."
Kellin
said nothing. He could not manage it.
The
hand was cruel in his hair. Neck tendons
protested.
"You have seen nothing. Nothing, Kel-
lin. I
am proud, but practical; I admit my lesser
place
without hesitation or compunction. The
power I
command is paltry compared to his."
Paltry
enough to kill him with little more than
a
gesture.
Corwyth
released his hair. Kellin's neck was too
weak to
support his skull. It flopped down again,
pressing
face against winter horsehair. He breathed
in its
scent, grateful that he could.
"Think
on it," Corwyth said. "Consider your cir-
cumstances,
and recall that your life depends en-
tirely
upon the sufferance of Lochiel."
Kellin
rather thought his life depended entirely
on his
ability to breathe, regardless of Lochiel's
234
intentions.
As he lay flopped across the saddle, he
concentrated
merely on in- and exhalations. Lo-
chiel
could wait.
When
they cut him from the horse and dragged
him
down, Kellin wondered seriously if death
might
be less painful. He bit into his tongue to
keep
from disgracing himself further by verbal
protestation,
but the sudden sheen of perspiration
gave
his weakness away. Corwyth saw it, weighed
it,
then nodded to himself.
"Against
the tree," the flilini ordered his
companions,
The two
hauled Kellin bodily to the indicated
tree
and left him at its foot to contemplate ex-
posed
roots as he fought to maintain conscious-
ness.
Sweat ran freely, dampening his hair. He lay
mostly
on one side. His wrists, though now cut
free of
the stirrup, were still tied together. He no
longer
was packed by horseback like so much
fresh-killed
meat, but the circumstances seemed
no
better.
Kellin
blew grit from his lips. The taste in his
mouth
was foul, but he had been offered no water.
The sun
was full up. They had been riding for
hours
without a single stop. In addition to the re-
sidual
aches of the Midden battle and the discom-
fort of
the ride, Kellin's bladder protested. It was
a small
but signal irritant that compounded his
misery.
Kellin
eased himself into a sitting position
against
the tree trunk. He sagged minutely, testing
the fit
of his ribs inside their loosened wrappings
and
bruised Hesh, then let wood provide false
strength;
his own was negligible.
/ am
young, strong, and fit ... this is a minor
inconvenience.
Meanwhile, he hurt.
Corwyth
strode from his own mount to Kellin,
A
TAPESTRY OF Liws 23S
who
could not suppress a recoil as the Ihlini
touched
the binding around his wrists. "There, my
lord:
freedom." The wrappings fell away. Corwyth
smiled.
"Test us as you like."
Kellin
wanted to spit into the arrogant face.
Corwyth
knew he knew there was no reason to
test-
No man, Cheysuli or not, would risk his heart
a
second time to Ihlini magic.
"Are
you hungry? Thirsty?" Corwyth gestured,
and one
of his companions answered with a
wrapped
packet and leather flask delivered to Kel-
lin at
once. "Bread, and wine. Eat. Drink." Cor-
wyth
paused. "And if you refuse, be certain I shall
make you."
Immediately
Kellin conjured a vision of his own
hands
made by sorcery to stuff his mouth full of
bread
until he choked on it. His heart had been
stopped
once; better to eat and drink as bidden
than
risk further atrocity.
With
hands made stiff and clumsy by the
weight
of too much blood, he unwrapped the par-
cel. It
was a lumpy, tougfi-crusted loaf of Homa-
nan
journey-bread. He set it aside carefully, ignoring
Corwyth's
interest, and unstoppered the flask. With-
out
hesitation—he would give nothing to the Ih-
lini,
not even distrust—he put the flask to his cut
lips
and poured wine down his throat.
It
stung the inside of his mouth. Kellin drank
steadily,
then restoppered the flask. "A poor vin-
tage,"
he commented. "Powerful you may be, but
you
have no knowledge of wine."
Corwyth
grinned. "Bait me, my lord. and you
do so
at your peril."
Kellin
stared steadily back. "Unless you heal
me,
Lochiel may well wonder what you have done
to
render his valuable kinsman so bruised."
Corwyth
rose. "Lochiel knows you better than
that.
Everyone in Homana—and Valgaard—has
236
Jennifer Roberson
heard
of the Midden exploits undertaken by the
Prince
of Homana."
Midden
exploits. He detested the words. He de-
tested
even more Lochiel's knowledge of them. To
forestall
his own comment, he put bread into his
mouth.
"Eat
quickly," Corwyth said. "We ride again al-
most
immediately."
Kellin
glared at him. "Then why stop at all?"
"Why,
to keep you and anyone else from claim-
ing me
inhumane!" With a glint in blue eyes, the
young-seeming
Ihlini turned away to his mount,
then
paused and turned back. "Would you like me
to help
you rise so you may relieve yourself?"
Kellin's
face caught fire. Every foul word he
knew
crowded into his mouth, which prevented
him
from managing to expell even one.
"Come
now," Corwyth said, "it is an entirely
natural
thing. And, as you are injured—"
"No,"
Kellin declared.
Blue
eyes glinted again. "Hold onto the tree, my
lord.
It might help you to stand up."
Kellin
desired nothing more than to ignore the
suggestion
entirely. But to do so was foolish in
the
face of his need- Pride stung, but so did his
bladder.
"I
will turn my back," Corwyth offered. "Your
condition
presupposes an inability to escape,"
The
comment naturally triggered an urge to
prove
Corwyth wrong, but Kellin knew better
than to
try. If the Ihlini could play with his
heart,
Kellin had no desire to risk a threat to
anything
else.
"Hurry,"
Corwth suggested. He turned away in
an
elaborate swirl of heavy cloak.
"Ku'reshtin,"
Kellin muttered.
Silence
answered him.
237
A
TAPESTRY OF Ll(WS
'i
.1
Corwyth's
companions escorted Kellin to his
horse
when it was time to ride on. Corwyth met
him
there. "You may ride upright, if you like.
Surely
it will prove more comfortable than being
tied
onto a saddle."
Kellin
gritted teeth. "What will it cost me?"
"Nothing
at all, I think—save perhaps respect
for my
magic." Corwyth caught Kellin's wrists be-
fore he
could protest. The Ihlini gripped tightly,
crossed
one wrist over the other, and pressed until
the
bones ached in protest. "Flesh into flesh, Kel-
lin,
Nothing so common as rope, nor so heavy as
iron,
but equally binding." He took his hands
away,
and Kellin saw the flesh of his wrists had
been
seamlessly fused together.
Gods—
Immediately he tried to wrench his
wrists
apart but could no more do that than rip
an arm
from his body. His wrists had grown to-
gether
at the bidding of the Ihlini.
He
could not help himself: he gaped. Like a
child
betrayed, he stared at his wrists in disbelief
so
utterly overwhelming he could think of nothing
else.
My own
flesh— It sent a shudder of repulsion
through
his body. My heart, now this . .. what will
Lochiel
do?
"A
simple thing," Corwyth said easily. Then he
signaled
to his companions. "Help him to mount
his
horse. I doubt he will resist." Corwyth moved
away,
then hesitated as if in sudden thought, and
swung
back. "If he does, I shall seal his eyelids
together."
They
rode north, toward the Bluetooth River,
where
they would cross into the Northern Wastes
and
then climb over the Molon Pass down into
Solinde,
the birthplace of the Ihlini, and on to Val-
gaard
itself. Kellin had heard tales of the Ihlini
238
Jennifer Roberson
fortress
and knew it housed the Gate of Asar-Suti.
It was,
Brennan had said, the Ihlini version of the
Womb of
the Earth deep in the foundations of
Homana-Mujhar.
Kellin
rode upright with precise, careful pos-
ture,
trying to keep his torso very still. His legs
conformed
to the shape of saddle and horse, but
his
hands did not control the horse. The reins had
been
split so that each of Corwyth's companions—
minions?—led
the prisoner's mount. Corwyth rode
ahead.
They
kept to the forest tracks, avoiding main
roads
that would bring them into contact with
those
who might know the Prince of Homana. Kel-
lin
doubted anyone would recognize him. His face ,
was
welted and bruised, his lower lip split and
swollen.
He stank of dried sweat mixed with a film
of grit
and soil, and leaves littered his hair. Little
about
him now recommended his rank.
Snow
crackled in deep shadows, breaking up be-
neath
shod hooves. As afternoon altered to eve-
ning,
the temperature dropped. Kellin shrugged
more
deeply into his cloak as his breath fogged
the
air.
When at
last they halted, it was nearly full dark.
Kellin
was so sore and weary he thought he might
topple
off the horse if he so much as turned his
head.
Let them see none of it. Slowly he kicked free
of
stirrups, slung a leg across the saddle, and slid
from
his mount before the Ihlini could signal him
down; a
small rebellion, but successful.
He made
no attempt to escape because to try
was
sheerest folly. Better to bide his time until his
strength
returned, then wait for the best moment.
Just
now all he could do was stand.
Kellin
leaned against the horse a moment to steady
himself,
flesh cold beneath a film of newborn per-
spiration.
He shivered. Disorientation broke up
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 239
the
edge of consciousness. Weariness, perhaps—
Or—? He
stilled. Sorcery? Corwyth's attempt to
tease
me?
One of
the minions put his hand on Kellin's
shoulder;
he shrugged it off at once. The rebuke
came
easily in view of who received it. "No one is
permitted
to touch the Prince of Homana without
his
leave."
Corwyth,
dropping off his own mount, laughed
in high
good humor. "Feeling better, are we?"
Kellin
felt soiled by the minion's touch. An urge
to bare
his teeth in a feral snarl was suppressed
with
effort. He swung from the black-eyed man,
displaying
a taut line of shoulder.
Corwyth
pointed. "There."
Kellin
lingered a moment beside his horse. His
head felt
oddly packed and tight, so that the Ih-
lini's
order seemed muted. A second shiver wracked
his
body, jostling aching bones. Not just cold-
more—
"Sit
him down," Corwyth said, but before the
minion
could force the issue, Kellin sat down by
himself.
"Better." Corwyth tended his own mount
as his
companions tended Kellin's.
Kellin
itched. It had nothing to do with bruises
and
scrapes, because the itching wasn't in his skin
but in
his blood. Flesh-bound hands flexed, curling
fingers
into palms, then snapping out straight
again.
He
could not eat, though they gave him bread,
nor
could he drink, because his throat refused to
swallow.
Once again he leaned against a tree, but
this
time he needed its support even more than
before.
He felt as if all his bones were soft,
stripped
of rigidity. His spirit was as flaccid.
He
shifted against wood, grimaced in discom-
fort,
then shifted again. He could not be still.
Just
like in Homana-Mujhar. He fixed his eyes on
'^ ,
240
Jennifer Roberson
Corwyth,
who sat quietly by a small fire. "Was it
you who
drove me from the palace?"
"Drove
you?"
"With
sorcery. Was it you?"
Corwyth
shrugged- "That required neither magic
nor
skill. I know your habits. You gamble, you
drink,
you whore. All it required was the proper
time."
Kellin
shifted again, hiding flesh-bound wrists
beneath
a fold of his cloak because to look on them
was too
unsettling. "You set the trap. I put myself
into
it."
The
Ihlini smiled. "A happy accident. It did save
time."
"Accident?
Or my tahlmorra?"
That
provoked a response. "You believe the gods
might
have planned this? This?" Corwyth's sur-
prise
was unfeigned. "Would the Cheysuh gods
risk
the final link in the prophecy so willingly?"
Kellin
scowled- "Who can say what the gods
would
do? I despise them ., . they have done me
little
good."
Corwyth
laughed and fed a stick to the flames.
"Then
perhaps this is their doing, if you and the
gods
are on such bad terms."
Kellin
shivered again. "If Lochiel knows so
much
about me, surely he knows I have already
sired
children. Why kill me now? Before, cer-
tainly—to
prevent the precious seed from being
sown—but
now it is too late. The seed is well
sowed."
"Three
children," Corwyth agreed. "But all bas-
tards,
and none with the proper blood. Halfling
brats
gotten on Homanan whores." He shrugged
elegantly.
"Lochiel only fears the Firstborn child."
Kellin
stilled. Was it a weapon? "Lochiel is
afraid?"
Corwyth's
expression was solemn. "Only a fool
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
241
would
deny he fears this outcome. I fear it. Lochiel
fears
it. Even the Seker fears fulfillment." Flames
illuminated
his face. It was starkly white in harsh
light,
black in hollowed contours. "Have you never
thought
what fulfillment will bring?"
Kellin
laughed. "A beginning for the Cheysuli.
An
ending for the Ihlini."
Flames
consumed wood. A pine knot cracked,
shedding
sparks. Corwyth now was solemn. "In
your
ignorance, you are certain."
"Of
course I am certain. It has been promised
us for
centuries."
"By
the very gods you despise." Corwyth did not
smile,
nor couch his words in contempt. "If that
is
true, how then can you honor their prophecy?"
Kellin
licked a numb lip. His body rang with
tension,
as if he were a harp string wound much
too
taut on its pegs- "I am Cheysuli."
"That
is your answer?" Corwyth shook his head.
"Perhaps
you are more Cheysuli than you believe,
even
lirless as you are. Only fools such as your
people
dedicate themselves to the fulfillment of a
mandate
that will destroy everything they know."
Kellin's
mouth twisted. "I have heard that old
tale
before. When the Ihlini cannot win through
murder
or sorcery, they turn to words. You mean
to
undermine our customs."
"Of
course I do!" Corwyth snapped. "And if you
had any
wit to see it, you would understand why.
Indeed,
the prophecy will destroy Ihlini such as
myself
... but it will also destroy the Cheysuli."
He
extended an empty hand. "The prophecy of the
Firstborn
will close its fist around the heart of the
Cheysuli,
just as I did yours, and stop it." He shut
his
hand. "Just like this."
It was
immediate. "No." Kellin twitched, then
rolled
his head against bark. "You play with
words,
Ihlini."
242 Jennifer
Roberson
"This
is not play. This is truth. You see me as I
am: a
man, not an Ihlini, but simply a man who
fears
the ending of his race in the ascendancy of
another."
"Mine,"
Kellin agreed.
"No."
Corwyth placed another stick on the fire.
His
gloved hand shook. "The ascendancy is that
of the
Firstborn." In firelight his eyes were hidden
by deep
pockets of shadow. "Your child. Your son.
When he
accepts the Lion, the new order replaces
the
old."
"Your
order."
Corwyth
smiled faintly. "Tell me," he said, "is
your
prophecy complete? No—I do not speak of
the
words all of you mouth." His tone was ironic.
"
'One day a man of all blood shall unite, in peace,
four
warring realms and two magical races.' What
I speak
of is the prophecy itself in its entirety. It
was
passed down century after century, was it
not?"
"The
shar tahls make certain of that."
"But
do they know the whole of it? Do they have
record
of it?"
"Written
down?" Kellin frowned. "Such things
can be
lost if not entrusted to shar tahls in an oral
tradition."
Corwyth
nodded. "Such things were lost, Kellin.
I know
very well what the shar tahls teach are
mere
fragments .. . pieces of yarn woven together
into a
single skein. Because that is all they know.
In the
schism that split the Firstborn into Cheysuli
and
Ihlini, very little was left of the dogma on
which
your future hangs." He shook his head.
"You
know nothing of what may come, yet you
serve
it blindly. We are not such fools."
Kellin
said nothing.
The
Ihlini pulled his dark cloak more closely
around
his shoulders. "This profits nothing. I will
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 243
leave
it to my lord to prove what I say is true."
Corwyth
glanced at his companions. "I will leave
it to
Lochiel, and to Asar-Suti."
Kellin
shivered. Lochiel will kill me. Not for my-
self,
For the child. For the seed in my loins.
In the
scheme of the gods he detested, it seemed
he
counted for very little.
Nine
Kellin
watched the three Ihlini prepare to sleep.
Though
his wrists remained sealed, he was certain
something
more would be done to insure he could
not
escape. Perhaps Corwyth would seal his eye-
lids,
or stop his heart again.
But
Corwyth did not even look at his captive.
The
sorcerer quietly went about his business, pac-
ing out
distances. Each time he halted, he sketched
something
in the air. The rune glowed briefly pur-
ple,
then died away.
Wards,
Kellin knew- To keep him in, and others
out.
He
watched them lie down in their cloaks. Three
dark-shrouded
men, sorcerers all, who served a
powerful
god no sane man could possibly honor.
Unless
there is something to what Corwyth says.
But
Kellin shut off the thought. Corwyth's declara-
tions
of a separate Ihlini prophecy—or of the
Cheysuli
one entire—was nothing but arrant non-
sense
designed to shake Kellin's confidence.
But one
telling question had been posed. How
do I
Justify serving the prophecy for gods I cannot
honor?
Kellin
shivered. He did not attempt to sleep. He
sat
against the tree, wrists still bound by flesh,
and
tried to think himself warm, tried to ease his
mind so
it did not trouble itself with questionings
of
Cheysuli customs.
244
A
TAPESTHY OF Lioms 245
But why
not? It was a Cheysuli custom that killed
Blais,
not an Ihlini.
Heresy.
Is it?
Kellin
inhaled carefully, held his breath a mo-
ment as
he expanded cramped lungs, then blew
the air
out again in a steady, hissing stream. He
stared
across the dying fire to the three cloaked
shapes
beyond. To Corwyth in particular. Kellin
knew
very well the Ihlini worked merely to under-
mine
his own convictions, which would" in turn
undermine
a spirit that might yet protest its cap-
tivity;
he was not stupid enough to believe there
was no
motive in Corwyth "s contentions. But his
mind
was overactive, his thoughts too restless;
even
when he tried to think of nothing at all, an
overabundance
of somethings filled his head.
It is a
long Journey to Valgaard. The trick is to lure
them
into a false sense that I will attempt nothing.
A
mountain cat screamed. The nearness of the
sound
was intensely unnerving. Kellin sat bolt up-
right
and immediately regretted it. He reached for
his
knife and realized belatedly he had none, nor
the
freedom of hands to use it.
The
scream came again from closer yet, shear-
ing
through darkness and foliage. Corwyth and the
others,
too, were up, shaking cloaks back from
shoulders
and arms. Corwyth said something in a
low
voice to the others—Kellin heard Lochiel's
name
mentioned—then scribed a shape in the air.
Runes
flared briefly, then went down. Corwyth's
men
were free to hunt.
Kellin
could not remain seated. He climbed
awkwardly
to his feet and waited beside the tree.
The
cat's voice lacked the deep-chested timbre of
the
lion's, but its determination and alien sound
echoed
the beast that had haunted so much of Kel-
lin's
life.
246
Jennifer Roberson
Corwyth
spared him a glance, as if to forestall
any
attempt on Kellin's part to escape. But Kellin
was no
more inclined to risk meeting the cat than
he was
to prompt Corwyth to use more sorcery on
him.
The
Ihlini bent and put new kindling on the fire,
then
waved a negligent hand; flames came to life.
"The
noise is somewhat discomfiting," he com-
mented,
"but even a mountain cat is not immune
to
sorcery. I will have a fine pelt to present my
master."
It
seemed an odd goal to Kellin, in view of his
own
value and Lochiel's desire for his immediate
company.
"You would take the time to kill and
skin a
cat?"
"Lochiel
has an affinity for mountain cats. He
says
they are the loveliest and most dangerous of
all the
predators. Fleet where a bear is slow; more
devious
than the wolf; more determined than a
boar.
And armed far more effectively than any
man
alive." Corywth smiled. "He keeps them in
Valgaard,
in cages beneath the ground."
A
fourth scream sounded closer yet. Even Cor-
wyth
got to his feet.
A
shudder wracked Kellin. "What is—" he grit-
tened
his teeth against another assault. "—ku'resh-
tin—"
he managed. "What threat do I offer?"
Corwyth
cast him a glance. "What inanities do
you
mouth?"
A third
shudder shook him. Kellin gasped. His
bones
were on fire. "What are you—"
Lir,
said a voice, the wards are down. I have done
what I
could to lead the others astray. Now it is up
to you.
He
understood then. "No!" Kellin cried. "I want
none of
you!"
/ am
your only escape.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
247
Corwyth
laughed. "You may want none of me,
but I
have you nevertheless."
Kellin
was not talking for the Ihlini's benefit.
What
consumed him now was the knowledge his
Ur was
near. If he gave in, it would win. And he
would
be no freer than any other Cheysuli bound
by
oaths and service.
He
wavered on his feet. / renounced you. I want
no part
of you.
Would
you rather go to Valgaard and let Lochiel
destroy
you? The tone was crisp. His methods are
not
subtle.
His
spirit screamed with need. The lir was close,
so
close—he had only to give in, to permit the
channel
to be opened that would form a perma-
nent
link.
He
repudiated it. / will not permit it.
Then
die. Allow the Ihlini to win. Remove from
the
line of succession the prince known as Kellin,
and
destroy the prophecy.
He
gritted his teeth. / will not pay your price.
There
is no other escape.
It
infuriated him. Kellin brought his flesh-
bound
hands into the moonlight. A test, then, he
challenged.
The lir
sighed. You believe too easily what the
Ihlini
tells you to. His art is in illusion. Banish this
one as
you banished the lion.
Kellin
stared hard at his wrists. The skin al-
tered,
flowing away, and his wrists were free of
themselves.
Corwyth
marked the movement. He turned sharply,
saw the
truth, and jerked the knife from his belt.
"The
wards are down," Kellin said, "and your
minions
bide elsewhere. Now it is you and I."
You
will have to kill him, lir. He will never let you
go.
"Go
away," Kellin said. "I want nothing to do
with
you."
Corwyth
laughed. "Is this your attempt at es-
cape?
To bait me with babbled nonsense?"
You
must kill him.
He
wanted to shout at the Ur. He is armed, Kellin
said
acidly. He is also Ihlini.
And has
recourse to no arts now that I am here.
We have
not bonded. I will not permit it.
The
tone was implacable. Then die.
"Come
out!" Kellin shouted. "By the gods, I will
fight
you both!"
Corwyth's
laughter grated. "Have you gone mad?
Or do
you use this to bait me?"
Distracted
by a battle fought on two fronts, Kel-
lin
glared. "I need no lir for you. I will take you
as a
man."
"Do
try," Corwyth invited. "Or shall I stop your
heart
again?"
He
cannot, the lir declared. While I am here, such
power
is blunted.
Then
why do I hear you? Near an Ihlini, the link
is
obscured.
You
forget who you are. There is that within you
that
breaks certain rules.
"My
blood?" Kellin jeered. "Aye, always the
blood!"
Old
Blood is powerful. You have it in abundance.
The
voice paused. Have you not read the birthlines
latety?
"Do
you want your blood spilled?" Corwyth
asked.
"I can do that for you ... Lochiel will not
punish
me for that."
Kill
him, the lir said. You are weary and injured.
He will
defeat you even without sorcery.
Kellin
laughed. With what? My teeth?
Those
are your weapons, among others. The tone
A
TMSSTKY or Lwm
was
dryly amused. But mostly there is your blood.
If a
man's form does not serve, take on another.
Yours?
But I do not even know what animal you
are!
You
have heard me. Now hear me again. The
scream
of a mountain cat filled the darkness but
a
handful of paces away.
Corwyth's
face blanched. "I am Ihlini!" he cried.
"You
have no power here!"
Show
him, it said. Let him see what you are.
Kellin
was desperate. "How?"
Forget
you are a man. Become a cat instead.
Kellin
looked at Corwyth. The knife in the Ih-
lini's
hand had belonged to Blais. Kellin wanted
it
back.
Corwyth
laughed. "You and I, then."
Kellin
was angry, so angry he could hardly hold
himself
still. His bones buzzed with newfound en-
ergy
and flesh hardened itself over tensing muscle
and
tendon. He shook with the urge to shred the
Ihlini
into a pile of cracked bone and bloodied
flesh.
A
beginning, the lir said.
And
then he understood—to accomplish what
was
required he must shed all knowledge of
human
form, all human instincts. Anger could
help
that. Anger could assist him.
/ want
Corwyth dead. I want the knife back.
There
is only one way to gain what you desire. I
have
given you the key. Now you must open the door.
To what
future?
To the
one you make.
"Come,
then," Corwyth said. "I will shatter all
your
bones, then knit them together again. Lochiel
need
never know."
Kellin
smiled. He forgot about his ribs and all
the
other nagging pains. He thought about lir-
250
Jennifer Robersoa
shape
instead. He thought about mountain cats,
and the
instincts that served them.
"You
cannot," Corwyth declared. "This is a
trick."
Kellin
laughed. "Do you forget who I am? You
know so
much about me and the others of my
House—surely
you recall that we claim the Old
Blood."
He paused. "With all of its special gifts."
Corwyth
lunged. He was quick, very quick, and
exceedingly
supple. Kellin dodged the outthrust
knife
with no little effort or pain, then ducked a
second
thrust.
Concentrate,
the lir commanded. Fingers and toes
are
claws. Flesh is thickly furred. The body is lean
and
fit. Jaws are heavy and powerful, filled with
tongue
and teeth. All you desire is the taste of his
flesh
in your mouth—his blood spilling from his
throat
into yours—and the hot sweet scent of his
death.
The
knife nearly caught his side. Kellin twisted,
grimacing
as ribs protested.
Mountain
cat, it said. Far superior to any beast
bred by
god or demon.
Kellin
rolled as Corwyth struck a third time. He
panted
audibly, trying to divorce his mind from
his
body, to let his instincts dictate motion-
Now.
Anger
fed his strength. Kellin saw the glint of
the
knife in Corwyth's hand—Blais' knife!—and
then,
briefly, everything faded. The world was
turned
inside out, and when it came right again
it was
a very different place.
His
mouth dropped open to curse the flilini, but
what
issued forth was a rising, angry wail. He felt
the
coiling of haunches to gather himself; the whip
of a
sinuous tail; the tightness in his empty—too
empty!—belly.
Kellin bunched, and sprang. ^
The
knife glinted again. Kellin reached out in
A TAPESTRY
OF LIONS
2S1
midair
with a hind leg and slashed the weapon
from
Corwyth's hand. He heard the Ihlini's cry,
and
then Kellin was on him.
Corwyth
went down easily. Lost in the killing
frenzy,
Kellin did not think about what he did. He
simply
closed powerful jaws on the fragile throat
of a
man and tore it away.
There
was no sense of jubilation, vindication, or
relief.
Merely satiation as the cat fed on the prey's
body.
Ten
What am
I—? Comprehension was immediate.
Kellin
hurled himself away from the body on the
ground.
No more the cat but a man, appalled by
what
had occurred. Gods—I did THAT?
Corwyth
was messily dead. He lay sprawled on
the
ground with blood-soaked cloak bunched up
around
him, gaping throat bared to the moon.
I did.
He was
shaking- All over. He was bloodied to
the
elbows. Blood soaked his doublet. Blood was
in his
mouth. Everywhere, blood—and the taste of
Corwyth's
flesh.
Kellin
thrust himself from the ground to his
knees,
then bent and hugged sore ribs as his belly
purged
itself. He wanted very much to purge his
mind as
well, to forget what he had seen, to forget
what he
had done, but the memory was livid. It
excoriated
him.
He
scrubbed again and again at his face, trying
to rid
it of blood, but his hands, too, were bloody.
Frantically
Kellin scooped up double handfuls of
dirt
and damp leaves and scoured hands, then
face,
pausing twice to spit.
Lir.
Kellin
jumped. He spun on his knees, panting,
bracing
himself on one stiff arm, and searched av-
idly
for the mountain cat who had driven him be-
yond
self. There was no sound. No cat. He saw
252
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 2S3
nothing
but star-weighted darkness and the scal-
loped
outline of dense foliage.
Gone.
Breathing steadied. He scraped the back
of a
hand across his chin. Fingers shook.
Lir.
The tone was gentle. The death was required.
Just as
the deaths of the minions were required.
"You
killed them?"
They
are dead.
He
barked a hoarse laugh. "Then you have bro-
ken one
of the most binding rules of the Ur-bond.
You are
not supposed to kill Ihlini."
The
tone was peculiar. We are reflections of one
another.
"What
does that mean?"
You do
that which you are commanded not to do.
And now
I as well.
It
astounded him. "Because of me you broke the
rule?"
We are
very alike.
He
contemplated that. He knew himself to be a
rebel;
could a lir be so also? If so, they were indeed
well
matched-
He cut
it off at once. "I want nothing to do with
you."
It is
done. The men are dead.
Kellin
stiffened. He refused to look at Corwyth's
body.
"There was no warning—you said nothing
of what
I would feel!"
You
felt as a cat feels.
"But
I am a man."
More,
it said. Cheysuli.
Kellin
spat again, wishing he had the strength
of will
to scour his mouth as well as his flesh. A
quick
glance across the tiny campsite offered re-
lief:
Ihlini supplies laid out in a neat pile.
"Water."
He pressed himself from the ground
and
walked unsteadily to the supplies. He found a
leather
flask and unstoppered it, then methodi-
254
Jennifer Roberson
cally
rinsed his mouth and spat until the taste of
blood
and flesh was gone. As carefully, he poured
the
contents of a second flask into one hand and
then
the other, scraping flesh free of sticky blood
with
cold, damp leaves.
"I'toshaa-ni,"
he murmured, and then realized
that
the ritual merely emphasized the heritage
that
had led him to this.
Dripping,
Kellin rose again. He made himself
look.
The view was no better: a sprawled, stilled
body
with only the pallor of vertebrae glistening
in the
ruin of a throat.
He
shuddered. "I renounced you," he declared.
"I
made it very plain. Now more than ever it is
imperative
that I do not bond with a lir. If that is
what it
means—"
"That"
was necessary. "That" was required.
"No."
He would not now speak inside his head
but say
it as a man, so there existed no doubt as
to
who—and what—he was. "It was butchery, no
more."
It was
to save your life. The tone was terse, as if
the lir
suppressed a great emotion. What the Ihlini
do,
they do to preserve their power. Lochiel would
have
killed you. Or gelded you.
"Gelded—"
Do you
think he would permit you to breed? You
are his
ending. The moment your son is born, the
world
begins anew.
Kellin
wiped damp hands across his face, warp-
ing it
out of shape as if self-inflicted violence
would
banish acknowledgment. "I want nothing
to do
with this."
It is
too late.
"No.
Not if I renounce you, as I have. Not if I
refuse
to bond with you."
Too
late, the lir repeated. The tone now was
muted.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 255
Suspicion
flared. He had been taught to honor
all
fir, but at this moment, conversing with this
lir, he
was afraid to assume it beneficent. "Why?"
Alarm
replaced suspicion. "What have you done?"
It was
necessary.
It
filled him with apprehension. "What have you
done?"
Lent
you a piece of myself.
"You!"
Required,
it insisted. Without that part of me. you
would
never have accomplished the shapechange.
A
shudder wracked Kellin from head to foot.
The
flesh on his scalp itched as if all his hairs
stood
up. "Tell me," he said intently. "Tell me
what I
have become."
Silence
answered him.
"Tell
me!" Kellin shouted. "By the gods, you
beast,
what have you done to me?"
The
tone was odd. Why does a man swear by gods
he
cannot honor?
The
inanity amazed him. "If I could see you—"
Then
see me. A shadow moved at the edge of the
trees.
See me as I am. Know who Sima is.
A soft
rustle, then nothing more. In the reflec-
tion of
dying flames, gold eyes gleamed.
Kellin
nearly gaped. "You are little more than
a
cub\"
Young,
Sima conceded. But old enough for a lir.
"But—"
Kellin blurted a choked laugh, then cut
it off.
"I want nothing to do with you. With you,
or with
any of it. No lir, no bonding, no shape-
change.
I want a full life ... not a travesty always
threatened
by an arcane ritual that needlessly
wastes
a warrior."
Sima
blinked. / would die if you died. The cost
is
equally shared.
"I
do not want to share it! I want not to risk it
at
all."
296
Jennifer Roberwa
A tail
twitched. She was black, black as Sleeta,
the
Mujhar's magnificent lir. But she was small,
as yet
immature, gangly as a half-grown kitten.
Incongruity,
Kellin thought, in view of her
intransigence.
/ am
empty, Sima said. / am but a shadow. Do
you
sentence me to that?
"Can
I? I thought you said it was too late."
Gold
eyes winked out, then opened again. If you
wish to
renounce me, you may. But then the Ihlini
will be
victorious, because both of us will die.
She did
not sound young. She sounded ineffably
old.
"Sima." Kellin wet his lips. "What have you
done to
me?"
The
sleek black head lowered. Tufted ears flat-
tened.
The tail whipped a branch to shreds.
"Sima!"
Caused
you to change before the balance was
learned.
Kellin's
mouth felt dry. "And that is a bad
thing?"
If
balance is lost and not regained, if it is not
maintained,
a warrior in lir-shape risks his humanity.
His
voice sounded rusty. "He would be locked
in
beast-shape?"
If he
lost his balance and spent too long in lir-
shape,
he could lose knowledge of what he was. Self-
knowledge
is essential. Forgotten, the man becomes
a
monster caught between two selfs.
After a
long moment, Kellin nodded. "Leijhana
tu'sai,"
he said grimly, "for giving me the chance
to
become a child's nightmare."
I gave
you the chance to survive. Corwyth would
not
have killed you, but he would have brought you
pain.
And Lochid would have done worse.
Kellin
did not argue. He would not speak to her.
He
would give her no opportunity to drag him
deeper
into the mess she had made of his life.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 257
Because
he could not stay in the clearing with
the
mutilated body, Kellin took Corwyth's horse
for his
own. He turned the other mounts loose; he
had no
time for ponying.
Sima
did not honor his moratorium on speech.
They would
have killed me.
He knew
immediately what she referred to. For
the
first time, he contemplated what it was to a
lir to
experience guilt. He understood there was
no
choice in killing the minions; they would have
skinned
her and taken the pelt to Valgaard for
presentation
to Lochiel.
Even as
they presented me. Grimly Kellin said. "I
would
wish that on no one, beast or no."
Leijhana
tu'sai. Sima twitched her tail.
Kellin
slanted her a hard glance as he snugged
the
girth tight. "You know the Old Tongue?"
Better
than you do.
He
grunted. "Privy to the gods, are you? More
favored
than most?"
Of
course. All lir are. The cat paused. You are an
angry
man.
"After
what you have made of me, do you expect
gratitude?"
No. You
are angry all the time.
He
slipped fingers between girth and belly to
check
for a horse's favorite trick: intentional bloat-
ing to
keep the girth loose. "How would you know
what I
am?"
/ know.
"Obscurity
does not commend you."
Sima
thumped her tail. A difficult bonding, I see.
"No
bonding at all." As the horse released its
breath
in response to an elbow jab, Kellin snugged
the
girth tighter. "Go back to wherever it is lir
come
from."
/
cannot.
"I
will not have you with me."
258
Semdfer Robersoa
You
cannot NOT have me.
"Oh?"
Kellin cast her an arch glance. "Will you
stop me
with violence?"
Of
course not. I am sworn to protect you, not in-
jure
you.
"That
is something." He looped reins over the
bay
gelding's neck. "Go back to the gods, cat. I
will
have none of you."
You
have no choice.
"Have
I not?" Kellin gritted his teeth and put a
boot
toe into the left stirrup. Swearing inven-
tively,
he swung up into the saddle and settled
himself
slowly. "—I think I have every choice,
cat."
None.
Not if you wish to survive.
"There
have been Hrless Cheysuli before."
None
who survived.
Kellin
gathered in reins. "General Rowan," he
said
briefly. "Rowan was meticulous in teaching
my
history. Rowan was one of Carillon's most
trusted
men. He was a lirless Cheysuli."
He did
not lose a lir. He never had one. He was
kept
from the bonding by the Ellasians who did not
know
what he was.
"I
know what I am. I know what you are." He
swung
the horse southwesterly. "Go back to the
gods
who sent you. I will have none of them, or
you."
Lir—
"No."
Kellin spared a final glance at the body
beside
the fire. In time the beasts would eat it. He
would
not be one of them; he had done his part
already.
"Tu'halla dei," he said. "Or whatever the
terminology
from warrior to renounced lir."
The
sleek back cat rose. / am Sima. I am for you.
Kellin
kicked the horse into a walk. "Find an-
other
lir."
There
IS none! she cried.
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOIVS 259
For the
first time he heard the fear in her tone.
Kellin
jerked the horse to a halt. He turned in the
saddle
to stare angrily at the mountain cat. "I saw
what
became of Tanni. I know what became of
Blais.
I am meant to hold the Lion and sire a First-
born
son—do you think I dare risk it all for you?
To know
that if you die, the prophecy dies also?"
Without
me, you die. Without you, I do. With both
of us
dead, there is no need for the prophecy.
Kellin
laughed. "Surely the gods must see the
folly
in this! A lir is a warrior's weakness, not his
strength.
I begin to think the /ir-bond is nothing
more
than divine jest."
/ am
for you, she said. Without you, I am empty.
It
infuriated him- "Tell it to someone who
cares!"
But as
he rode from the campsite, the mountain
cat
followed.
Eleven
Kellin
was exhausted by the time he reached Clan-
keep.
He had briefly considered riding directly to
Homana-Mujhar—no
doubt Brennan and Aileen
wondered
what had become of him—but decided
against
it. Clankeep was the answer. His problem
had
nothing at all to do with the Homanan por-
tion of
his blood, but was wholly a Cheysuli
concern.
/ will
tell them what has happened. I will explain
what I
was forced to become, and the result—surely
they
cannot countenance a warrior who in lir-shape
compromises
every bit of his humanity. He stead-
fastly
ignored the shadow slinking behind him
with
gold eyes fixed on his back. They will under-
stand
that this kind of bonding -cannot be allowed
to stand.
Kellin
sighed relief. He felt better already. Once
his
plight was explained, all would be understood.
He had
spent portions of his childhood in Clan-
keep
and knew the pureblood Cheysuli could be a
stiff-necked,
arrogant lot—he had been accused of
his
share of arrogance by the castle boys in child-
hood—but
they had to acknowledge the difficulty
of his
position. Kellin knew very well his request
would
be neither popular nor readily accepted,
but
once they fully understood what had occurred
the
Cheysuli would not refuse. He was one of their
own,
after all.
260
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 261
I will
speak to Gavan. Gavan was clan-leader, a
man
Kellin respected. He will see this is serious,
not
merely an inconvenience. He will know what
must be
done.
Kellin
felt gingerly at the bridge of his nose. It
was
whole, but badly scratched. His left eyelid
was
swollen so that a portion of his vision was
obstructed.
His clothing was crusted with dried
blood.
I can smell myself. It shamed him to show
himself
to Gavan and the others this way, but how
better
to explain his circumstances save with the
gory
proof before them?
He was
not hungry though his belly was empty.
The
idea of food repulsed him. He had eaten the
throat
of a man; though he was free now of the
taste,
his memory recalled it. Kellin wanted noth-
ing at
all to do with food.
He
listened for and heard the faint rustling be-
hind.
Sima did not hide her presence, nor make
attempt
to quiet her movements. She padded on
softly,
following her lir.
Kellin's
jaws tautened. Gavan will see what has
happened.
He will know what must be done.
Clankeep,
to Kellin, was perfectly ordinary in
its
appearance. He had been taught differently, of
course;
the keep had been razed twenty years be-
fore on
the night of his birth, when Lochiel himself
had
ridden down from Valgaard with sorcerers at
his
beck. The Ihlini had meant to destroy Clankeep
and
kill every living Cheysuli; that they had failed
was in
no way attributable to their inefficiency,
but to
the forced premature birth of Aidan's son.
Cut
from his mother's belly before the proper
time,
Kellin was at risk. Lochiel had immediately
returned
to Valgaard. In that retreat, a portion of
Clankeep
and her Cheysuli were left alive.
Kellin,
gazing with gritty, tired eyes on the
262
Jennifer Roberson
painted
pavilions clustered throughout the forest
like
chicks around a hen, saw nothing of the past,
only of
the present. That the unmortared walls
surrounding
the pavilions were, beneath cloaks of
lichen
and ivy, still charred or split by heat did
not
remind him of that night, because he recalled
nothing
of it. He had no basis for comparison
when he
looked on the present Clankeep. To Kellin
it was
simply another aspect of his heritage, with-
out the
depressing weight of personal recollection.
Despite
the hour he was welcomed immediately
by the
warriors manning the gate and was es-
corted
directly to the clan-leader's pavilion. In the
dark it
stood out because of its color: a pale saf-
fron
bedecked with ruddy-hued foxes. Moonlight
set it
softly aglow.
Kellin
dismounted as his escort ducked into Ga-
van's
pavilion; a second warrior took Corwyth's
horse
and led it away. Kellin was alone save for
the
cat-shaped shadow nearby. He ignored her
utterly.
In only
a moment the first warrior returned and
beckoned
him inside, pulling aside the doorHap.
Kellin
drew in a deep breath and went in, acutely
aware
of his deshabille. He paused inside as his
eyes
adjusted to the muted glow of a firecaim,
then
inclined his head to the older man who
waited.
Gavan offered the ritual welcome in the
Old
Tongue, then indicated a place to sit upon a
thick
black bear pelt. Honey brew and dried fruit
also
were offered. Kellin sat down with a mur-
mured
word of thanks and accepted cup and plat-
ter-
Irresolute, he stared at both, then set aside the
fruit
and drank sparingly of the liquor. Like the
Ihlini
wine, it burned his cut mouth.
Gavan
wore traditional leathers, though tousled
graying
hair indicated he had risen hastily from
bed. In
coal-cast shadows his dark Cheysuli face
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 263
was
hollowed and eerily feral, dominated by yel-
low
eyes above oblique, prominent cheekbones.
Some of
Gavan's face was reflected in Kellin's,
though
his own was less angular and lacked the
sharpness
of additional years.
The
clan-leader sat quietly on a bear pelt before
Kellin,
a ruddy dog-fox curled next to one knee.
His
eyes narrowed minutely as he observed Kel-
lin's
state. "Harsh usage."
Kellin
nodded as he swallowed, then set aside
the
cup. "Ihlini/' he said briefly. He was flattered
by the
instant response in Gavan's eyes: sharp,
fixed
attention, and a contained but palpable ten-
sion.
Kellin wondered fleetingly if Gavan had been
present
during the Ihlini attack. Then he dis-
missed
it, thinking of the man instead. I will have
more
care from him than from my own Jehan.
"Lochiel?"
the clan-leader asked.
Kellin
shook his head. "A minion. Corwyth.
Powerful
in his own right . .. but not the master
himself."
Gavan's
mouth compressed slightly. "So the
war
begins anew."
Kellin
swallowed heavily. "Lochiel wants me
captured
and taken to Valgaard. No more does he
want me
killed outright, but brought to him
alive."
Though his mouth was clean, he tasted Cor-
wyth's
blood again. It was difficult to speak. "In
my
dying—or whatever he decrees is to be my
fate—I
am to be Lochiel's entertainment."
Gavan
set aside his cup. "You have not gone to
the
Mujhar."
"Not
yet- I came here first." Kellin suppressed
a
shudder as the image of throatless Corwyth rose
in his
mind; this man would not understand such
weakness.
"There is a thing I must discuss. A
frightening
thing—" he did not like admitting such
to
Gavan, but it was the simple truth, "—and a
264
Jennifer Roberson
thing
which must be attended." It was more diffi-
cult
than expected. Kellin flicked a glance at the
mountain
cat who lay so quietly beside him. He
longed
to dismiss her, but until all was explained
he did
not dare transgress custom. A lir was to
be
honored; arrant dismissal would immediately
predispose
Gavan to hostility. "I killed Corwyth,
as I
said—but not through a man's means."
Gavan
smiled faintly as he looked at Sima. "It
is my
great personal joy that the bonding has at
last
occurred. It is well past time. Now you may
be
welcomed into the clan as a fully bonded war-
rior
... it was of some concern that the tardiness
of the
/ir-bonding might cause difficulty."
Kellin's
mouth dried. "Difficulty?"
Gavan
gestured negligent dismissal. "But it is
of no
moment, now. No one can deny your right
to the
Lion."
This
was a new topic. "Did someone deny it?"
A
muscle jumped briefly in Gavan's cheek. "There
was
some talk that perhaps the mixture of so many
Houses
in your blood had caused improper dilution."
"But
the mixture is needed." Kellin fought to
control
his tone; he realized in a desperation fray-
ing
into panic that things would not be sorted out
so
easily after all. "The prophecy is very explicit
about a
man of all blood—"
"Of
course." Neatly, Gavan cut him off. "A man
of all
blood, aye .. . but a man clearly Cheysuli."
He
smiled at Sima. "With so lovely a lir, you need
fear no
warrior's doubts."
Kellin
found it difficult to breathe. To gain time
he
looked around the interior of the pavilion: at
the
dog-fox next to Gavan; at the glowing fire-
caim;
at the bronze-bound trunk with a handful
of
Cheysuli ornaments scattered across its closed
lid; at
the compact warbow—once called a hunt-
ing
bow—leaning against the trunk; at the shad-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
265
ows of
painted lir on the exterior of the pavilion
fabric.
Lastly,
at Sima. Gold eyes were unblinking.
Kellin
picked up the cup of liquor and drained
it. It
burned briefly, then mellowed into a warmth
that,
in an empty belly, set his vision to blurring.
His
lips felt stiff. "Carillon had no lir."
Gavan's
black brows, as yet untouched by the
silver
threading his hair, moved more closely to-
gether.
Clearly, he was baffled by the non sequitur-
"Carillon
was Homanan."
"But
the clans accepted him."
"He
was the next link. After Shaine: Carillon.
After
Carillon: Donal."
"Because
Carillon sired only a daughter- A Solin-
dish
halfling."
"Aislinn.
Who wed Donal and bore Niall." Gavan
smiled
then, his faint consternation clearing. "Is
this
because Niall, too, was late receiving his Hr?
Did you
fear, as they say he did, that you would
never
receive one?" He smiled, nodding his head
in
Sima's direction. "You need fear nothing. Your
future
is secure."
Kellin
drew in a deep breath, ignoring the twinge
in his
chest. Ga van's words seemed to come from
a great
distance. "What if—" He broke off, then
began
again. "What if I had never received a lir?"
Gavan
shrugged. "There is no profit in discussing
what
did not occur."
Kellin
forced a smiled. "Curiosity. What if I had
never
received, nor bonded with a lir?" He was no
good at
disingenuity; the smile broke up into
pieces
and fell away, "I am well beyond the age a
warrior
receives a lir. Surely before now there
must
have been some discussion in case I never
did."
The
clan-leader made a dismissive gesture. "Aye,
it was
briefly discussed; there is no sense in hiding
266
Jennifer Robersoa
it from
you. It is a serious matter. Because you are
the
only direct descendant with all of the proper
bloodlines—"
"Save
one."
Gavan
inclined his head slightly. "—save one,
aye ..
. still, it remains that you are the only one
with
all of the necessary lineage required to pro-
duce
the man we await."
"The
Firstborn."
"Cynric."
Gavan's eyes were bright. "So your
jehan
has prophesied."
Kellin
did not desire to discuss his jehan. "Had
I not
received my lir, what would have happened?
Would
you have questioned my right to inherit?"
"Certainly
clan-council would have met to dis-
cuss it
formally at some point."
"Would
you have questioned it?" Suddenly, it
mattered.
It mattered very much. "Would the
Cheysuli
have rejected my claim to the Lion?"
"The
Mujhar is in no danger of giving up his
claim
any time soon." Gavan smiled. "He is a
strong
man, and in sound health."
"Aye."
Kellin's nerves frayed further. It seemed
no
matter how careful he was, how meticulous his
phrasing,
he could not get the answer he wanted;
yet at
the same time he knew what the answer
was,
and dreaded it. "Gavan—" He felt sweat
sting a
scrape on one temple as the droplet ran
down
beneath a lock of hair. "Would the Cheysuli
accept
a lirless Mujhar?"
Gavan
did not hesitate. "Now? No. There is no
question
of it. We are too close to fulfillment .. .
a
lirless Cheysuli would prove a true danger to the
prophecy.
We cannot afford to support a Mujhar
who
lacks the most fundamental of all Cheysuli
gifts.
It would provide the Ihlini an opportunity
to
destroy us forever."
"Of
course." The words were ash. If he opened
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
267
his
mouth too widely, he would spew it like a dis-
mantled
firecairn.
Gavan
laughed. Yellow eyes were bright and
amused,
and wholly inoffensive. "If you are feeling
unworthy
in the aftermath of bonding, it is a natu-
ral
thing. The gift—and the power that comes with
it—is
entirely humbling." He arched black brows.
"Even
for Mujhars—and men who will be
Mujhar."
All of
Kellin's anticipated arguments in favor of
severing
the partial bond with Sima evaporated.
He
would get no understanding from Gavan;
likely,
he would get nothing even remotely ap-
proaching
sympathy. He would simply be stricken
from
the birthlines and summarily removed from
the
succession.
Leaving
no one. "Blais," he said abruptly.
"There
was a time when some warriors wanted
Blais to
be named prince in my place."
"That
was many years ago."
Kellin
felt the dampness of perspiration stipple
his
upper lip. He wanted-to brush it dry, but to
do so
would call attention to his desperation. "The
a'saii
still exist, do they not? Somewhere in Ho-
mana,
separate from here . . . they still desire to
make
their own tahlmorras without benefit of the
prophecy."
Gavan
lifted his cup of honey brew. "There are
always
heretics."
Kellin
watched him drink. If Blais had sur-
vived—
He put it into words. "If Blais had sur-
vived,
and I had gained no lir, would he have been
named
to the Lion?"
Gavan's
eyes were steady. "In lieu of a proper
heir,
there would have been no other. But such a
thing
would have delayed completion for another
generation,
perhaps more. Blais lacked the Solin-
dish
and Atvian bloodlines. It would have taken
Jennifer
Robersoa
268
time—more
time than we have. - . ." Gavan drank,
then
set aside his cup. "But what profit in this,
Kellin?
You are a warrior. You have a lir. It falls
to you,
now, without question. It all falls to you."
Coals
crumbled in the firecaim. Illumination
wavered,
then stilled. It glowed in Gavan's eyes.
"Too
heavy," Kellin murmured, swallowing
tightly.
Gavan
laughed aloud. A hand indicated Sima.
"No
burden is too heavy if there is a lir to help
you
bear it."
Twelve
Though
offered a place in Clankeep, Kellin did not
accept
it. There was something else he wanted—
needed—to
do; something he should have done
years
before. He had avoided it with a steadfast
intransigence,
taking a quiet, vicious pleasure in
the
wrong done him because it fanned the flames
of
rebellion. A part of him knew very well that
without
what he perceived as true cause, his defi-
ance might
yet be warped into something other
than a
natural maturing of personality. He was
expected
to be different from others because of his
heritage
and rank; hot temper and hasty words
were
often overlooked because of who he was.
That in
itself sometimes forced him to more rebel-
lion
because he needed to provoke a response that
would
mitigate self-contempt.
He knew
very well what the mountain cat said
was
right. He was too angry, and had been for
years.
But he knew its cause; it was hardly his
fault.
A motherless infant prince willingly de-
serted
by a father had little recourse to other
emotions-
Kellin
stood outside the pavilion. Like Gavan's,
it also
bore a fox painted on its sides, though the
base
color was blue instead of saffron. The pavil-
ion was
difficult to see in the darkness; moonlight
was
obscured by clustered trees and overhanging
branches.
The Cheysuli had moved Clankeep after
269
270
Jennifer Roberson
the
Ihlini attack, for a part of the forest had
burned.
Only rain a day or two later had pre-
vented
more destruction.
Accost
him now, just after awakening, so he has
no time
to marshal defenses or rhetoric. Kellin drew
in a
deep breath that expanded sore ribs, then
called
through the closed doorflap that he desired
to see
the shar tahi
A
moment only, and then a hand drew aside the
flap so
that the man stood unobstructed. He wore
leather
in place of robes, and ^'r-gold weighted his
arms.
He was alert; Kellin thought perhaps the
man had
not been asleep after all.
"Aye?"
And then the warrior's expression al-
tered.
An ironic arch lifted black brows. "I should
have
expected this. You would not come all the
times I
invited you in the daylight . . . this suits
your
character."
It
sparked an instant retort. "You know nothing
about
my character!"
The
older man considered it. "That is true," he
said at
last. "What I know of you—now—has to
do with
the tales they tell." He widened the door-
flap.
"By your expression, this is not intended to
be a
sanguine visit. Well enough—I had gathered
by your
continued silence you did not accept my
offers
of aid as anything other than insult."
"Not
insult," Kellin said. "Unnecessary."
"Ah."
The man was in his late fifties, not so
much
younger than the Mujhar. Thick hair grayed
heavily,
but the flesh of his face was still taut, and
his
eyes were intent. "But now there is necessity."
Kellin
did not look at Sima. He simply pointed
to her.
"I want to be rid of that."
"Rid?"
The shar tahl's irony evaporated. "Come
in,"
he said curtly.
Kellin
ducked in beside him. Hostility banished
the
dullness engendered by Gavan's honey brew;
A
TAPESTRY OF LJWS 27t
nerves
made him twitchy. He stood aside in stiff
silence
as the shar tahl permitted the mountain
cat to
enter.
He
waited edgily. There were many things he
wanted
to say, and he anticipated multiple
pointed
responses designed to dissuade him. The
shar
tahl would no more understand his desire
than
Gavan would have; the difference was, Kellin
was
better prepared to withstand anything the
shar
tahl might suggest by way of argument. He
disliked
the man. Dislike lent him the strength of
will to
defy a man whose service was to the gods,
and to
the preservation of tradition within the
clans.
"Be
seated," the shar tahl said briefly. Then, to
Sima,
"You are well come to my pavilion."
The cat
lay down. Her tail thumped once. Then
she
stilled, huge eyes fixed on Kellin.
With a
grimace of impatience, Kellin sat down.
Neither
food nor drink was offered; tacit insult,
designed
to tell him a thing or two. Then we are
well
matched. I have things to say as well.
"So."
The older man's expression was closed,
severe
in its aloofness. "You want to be rid of your
lir.
Since it is well known you had none, I can only
assume
this is a very recent bonding."
"Aye,
very recent; last night." Pointedly, Kellin
added,
"When I was a captive of the Ihlini."
The
shar tahl's expression did not alter; he
seemed
fixed upon a single topic. "Yet now you
wish to
sever that bond."
Kellin's
hands closed into fists against crossed
legs.
"Does it mean nothing to you that the Prince
of
Homana was captured by the Ihlini, and less
that he
escaped?"
The
shar tahl's mouth tightened minutely. "We
will
speak of that later. At this moment the Prince
272
Jennifer Robersw
of
Homana's desire to sever what the gods have
made
for him is of greater concern."
"Because
it has to do with gods, and you are a
shar
tahl." Kellin did not bother to hide the deri-
sion in
his tone. "By all means let us discuss that
which
you believe of more import; after all, what
is the
welfare of Homana's future Mujhar com-
pared
to his desire to renounce a gift of the gods?"
"Yet
if you renounce this bond, there is no more
need to
concern ourselves with the welfare of Ho-
mana's
future Mujhar, as he would no longer be
heir."
The shar tahl's eyes burned brightly. "But
you
know that. I can see it in your face." He nod-
ded
slightly. "So you have been to Gaven already
and
what you have heard does not please you.
Therefore
I must assume this meeting is meant
merely
to air your grievance, though you know
very
well nothing can come of it. You cannot re-
nounce
the /M--bond, lest you be stripped of your
rank.
And you would never permit that; it would
echo
your jehan's actions."
Kellin's
response was immediate. "I did not
come to
speak of my jehan\"
"But
we will." The older man's tone allowed no
room
for protest. "We should have had this con-
versation
years ago."
"We
will not have it now. My Jehan has nothing
to do
with this."
'"Your
jehan has much to do with this. His deser-
tion of
you has to do with everything in your life."
"Enough."
"I
have hardly begun."
"Then
I will end it!" Kellin glared at the man.
"I
am still the Prince of Homana. My rank is
higher
than yours."
"Is
it?" Black brows arched. "I think not. Not
in the
eyes of the gods .. . ah, of course—you do
not
recognize their sovereignty." The shar tahl
A
TAPESTRY OF LlWS 273
lifted
a quelling hand. "In fact, you detest them
because
you believe they stole your Jehan from
you."
Much as
he longed to, Kellin knew better than
to
shout. To give in to such a display was to
weaken
his position. "He was meant to be the heir.
Not I.
Not yet; my time was meant for later. They
did
steal him."
"A
warrior follows his tahlmorra."
"Or
obstructs the prophecy?" Kellin shook his
head.
"I think what they say of him is true: he is
mad. No
madman bases his actions on what is real.
He does
as he does because his mind is addled."
"Aidan's
mind is no more addled than your
own,"
the shar tahl retorted. "In fact, some would
argue
it is more sane than yours."
"Mine!"
The
warrior smiled grimly. "Your reputation
precedes
you."
For
only an instant Kellin was silent. Then he
laughed
aloud, letting the sound ml the pavilion.
"Because
I drink? Because' I wager? Because I lie
with
whores?" The laughter died, but the grin was
undiminished.
"These actions appear to be a tradi-
tion
within my family. Shall I name you the
names?
Brennan, Hart, Corin—"
"Enough."
The irony was banished. "You came
because
you wish to renounce your lir. Allow me
to do
my office. Bide a moment, my lord." The
shar
tahl rose abruptly and moved to the doorflap.
He
ducked out, leaving Kellin alone with a silent
black
mountain cat. After a moment the priest re-
turned
and resumed his seat. His smile was hu-
morless.
"How may I serve my lord?"
Kellin's
impatience faded. Hostility dissipated.
If the
man could aid him, he had best mend his
manner.
"The bonding was done hastily, to enable
me to
escape the Ihlini. Even she admits it." He
274
Jennifer Roberaoa
did not
glance at Sima. "She speaks of balance,
and the
danger in lacking it. I have none."
The
shar tahl now was serious. "You assumed
^r-shape
in anger?"
"In
anger, fear, panic -, ." Kellin sighed; the
vestiges
of pride and hostility faded utterly. Qui-
etly,
he explained what had happened—and how
he had
killed a man by tearing out his throat.
The
dark flesh by the older man's eyes folded
upon
itself. His eyes seemed to age. "A harsh
bonding.
But more than that, an improper one. It
is only
half done."
"Half?"
Kellin looked at the cat. "Do you mean
I could
renounce her?"
"No.
Not safely. Your lirlessness is ended; half-
bonded
or no, you will never be what you were.
The
question now is, what will you permit your-
self to
be?"
Alarm
bloomed. "What do you mean?"
"You
are angry," the shar tahl said. "I perhaps
understand
it better than most—your jehan and I
have
shared many confidences." The severity of
the
face now was replaced with a human warmth
that
nearly unmanned Kellin. "Aidan and I have
spent
much time together. It was why I desired to
speak
with you before, to explain his reasoning."
"Let
him explain it!"
The
shar tahl sighed. "The proper time is not
yet
come."
Bitterness
engulfed. "There never will be a
'proper
time'!" Kellin cried. "That is the point!"
"No."
The shar tahl lifted a hand, then let it
drop.
"That is not the point. There will come a
time, I
promise - . - when the gods intend that you
should
meet."
"When
he intends, you mean .. . and he never
will."
Kellin gathered himself to rise- "This is
bootless.
It wastes my time."
A
TAPESTRY OF Lfws 275
"Sit
down." The tone was a whipcrack. "You
have
come to me with a serious concern that needs
to be
addressed. Set aside your hatred and hostil-
ity
long enough, if you will, to permit me to ex-
plain
that you are in grave danger."
"I
have escaped the Ihlini."
"This
has nothing to do with the Ihlini. This has
to do
with yourself. It is of the balance I speak."
The
shar tahl glanced at Sima. "Has she explained
what
could happen?"
"That
I might be locked in beast-form if I lose
my
balance?" Kellin's mouth twisted. "Aye. After
she
urged me to take ftr-shape."
"Then
she must have believed it necessary." The
shar
tahl studied Sima with something very akin
to
sympathy, which seemed an odd thing to Kel-
lin;
the lir were considered far wiser than their
warriors.
"The lir are proscribed from attacking
Ihlini.
If she urged you to assume /ir-shape before
the
proper time, fully cognizant of the risk, it was
because
she believed it necessary to preserve your
life."
The yellow eyes were intent. "The life has
been
preserved. Now we must insure that the
mind
within the body is preserved as well."
"Burr—"
Kellin cut it off- It was time for truth,
not
protest. Defiance crumbled in the face of his
admission.
"I have resented you for years."
"I
know." The shar tahl reached for a jug and
cups,
then poured two full. "Drink. What you must
know
will dry your mouth; wet it first, and then
we
shall begin."
"Can
I learn it by dawn?"
"A
thing so vital as this cannot be learned in a
night.
It requires years." Burr sipped his honey
brew.
"A young warrior is taught from the day of
his
birth how to strike the balance in all things.
We are
a proud race, we Cheysuli, and surpass-
ingly
arrogant—" Burr smiled, "—because we are,
276
Jennifer Robersoa
after
all, the children of the gods .. . but we are
not an
angry race, nor one much given to war
except
when it is required. The Homanans have
called
us beasts and predators, but it is because
of what
we can do with our bodies, not our desire
for
blood. We are a peaceful race. That desire for
peace—in
mind as well as lifestyle—is taught from
birth.
By the time a young man reaches the age
to
receive a lir, his knowledge of self-control is
well-rooted.
His longing for a lir supercedes the
recklessness
of youth—no young Cheysuli would
risk
the wrath of the gods that might result in
lirlessness."
"is
that true?" Kellin asked. "You are a shar
tahl—would
the gods deny a boy a Ur because he
does
not suit their idea of a well-behaved
Cheysuli?"
Burr
laughed. "You are the most defiant and
reckless
of Cheysuli I have ever known. Yet there
is the
proof that the gods do as they will." A hand
indicated
Sima. "You have your place, Kellin. You
have a
tahlmorra. Now it is your task to acknowl-
edge
the path before you."
"And
take it?"
"If
it is what the gods intend."
"Gods,"
Kellin muttered. "They clutter up a life.
They
bind a man's spirit so he cannot do as he
will."
"You,
I believe, are a perfect example of the fal-
lacy in
that logic. You do—and have always
done—precisely
as you desire." Burr sipped li-
quor,
then set the cup aside. "You must fully ac-
cept
your lir. To remain half-bonded sentences
both of
you to a life to which no man—or lir—
should
ever be subjected."
"Madness,"
Kellin said. He worked a trapped
twig
from the weave of soiled breeches. "What if
I told
you I believed it was arrant nonsense, this
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 277
belief
that lirlessness results in madness? That I
believe
it is no more than a means for a man's
misplaced
faith in his gods to control him, or de-
stroy
him?"
Burr
smiled. "You would not be the first to sug-
gest
that. In fact, if you were not the heir to the
Lion
and therefore assured of your place, I would
say
your defiance and determination resembles
the
a'saii." He drank, watching Kellin over the
rim of
his cup- "It is not easy for a man to accept
that
one moment he is in the fullness of his prime,
healthy
and strong, while the next he is sentenced
to the
death-ritual despite his continued health
and
strength. It is the true test of what we are,
Kellin;
do you know of any other race which will-
ingly
embraces death when there appears to be no
reason
to die?"
"No.
No other race is so ludicrously constrained
by the
gods." Kellin shook his head, tapping the
twig
against his knee. "It is a waste. Burr! Just as
kin-wrecking
is!"
"That.
I agree with," Burr said. "Once, the cus-
tom had
its place .. . there was a need, Kellin."
"To
cast out a man because he was maimed?"
Kellin
shook his head. "The loss of a hand does
not
render a man incapable of serving his clan or
his
kin."
"Once,
it might have. If a one-handed warrior
failed,
because of his infirmity, to protect a single
life,
he was a detriment. There was a time we
dared
not permit such a risk, lest our people die
out
entirely."
Kellin
gestured. "Enough. I am speaking now of
the
death-ritual-1 contend it is nothing more than
a means
of control, a method by which the gods—
and
shar tahls, perhaps?—" he grinned in arch
contempt,
"—can force others to do their will."
Burr
was silent. His eyes were partially hidden
278
Jennifer Roberson
behind
lowered lashes. Kellin thought perhaps he
might
at last have provoked the older man into
anger,
but when Burr at last met his eyes there
was
nothing of anger in his expression. "What the
gods
have required of men is duty, honor, rever-
ence—"
"And
self-sacrifice!"
"—and
sacrifice." Burr finished. "Aye. I deny
none of
it. But if we had not offered any of these
things,
Kellin, you would not be seated here before
me
contesting the need for such service."
"Words!"
Kellin snapped. "You are as bad as
the
Ihlini. You weave magic with words, to ensor-
cell me
to your will."
"I
do nothing but state the truth." Burr's tone
was
very quiet, lacking all emotion. "If a single
man in
your birthline had turned his back on his
tahlmorra,
you would not be the warrior destined
to
inherit the Lion."
"You
mean if my Jehan had turned his back on
his
tahlmorra." Kellin wanted to swear. "This is
merely
another attempt to persuade me that what
my
jehan did was necessary. You said yourself you
are
friends ... I hear bias in his favor,"
"It
was necessary," Burr said- "Who can say
what
might have become of you if Aidan had not
renounced
his title? Paths can be altered, Kellin—
and
prophecies. If Aidan had remained here, he
would
be Prince of Homana. You would merely be
third
in line behind Brennan and Aidan. That
extra
time could well have delayed completion of
the
prophecy, and destroyed it utterly."
"You
mean, it might have prevented me from
lying
with whatever woman I am supposed to lie
with—according
to the gods—in order to sire Cyn-
ric."
Kellin tossed aside the twig. "A convenience,
nothing
more. No one knows this. Just as no one
knows
for certain a warrior goes mad if his lir is
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 279
killed."
He smiled victory. "You see? We have
come
full circle."
Burr's
answering smile was grim. "But I can
name
you the proofs; Duncan, Cheysuli clan-
leader,
kept alive by Ihlini sorcery though his lir
was
dead, and used as a weapon to strike at his
son,
Donal, who was meant to be Mujhar."
Kellin
felt cold; he knew this history.
"Teiman,
Blais' jehan, who assumed the role of
clan-leader
to the heretical a'saii. A warrior who
would
have, given the chance, pulled Brennan
from
the Lion and mounted it himself." Burr's
tone
was steady. "Tieman renounced his lir. In the
end,
completely mad, he threw himself into the
Womb of
the Earth before the eyes of your Jehan
and
jehana in an attempt to prove himself worthy
to hold
the Lion. He did not come out."
Kellin
knew that also.
Burr
said softly, "First we will speak of your
jehan.
Then of the balance."
Kellin
wanted it badly. "No," he said roughly.
"What
I leam of my jehan will be learned from
him."
Burr
looked beyond him to the slack door-flap.
He said
a single word—a name—and a warrior
came
in. In his arms he held a small girl asleep
against
his shoulder; by his side stood a tousle-
haired
boy of perhaps three years.
"There
is another," the shar tahl said. "Another
son; do
you recall? Or have you forgotten entirely
that
these are your children?"
"Mine—"
Kellin blurted.
"Three
royal bastards." Burr's tone was unre-
lenting.
"Packed off to Clankeep like so much un-
wanted
baggage, and never once visited by the
man who
sired them."
Thirteen
Kellin
refused to look at the children, or at the
warrior
with them. Instead he stared at Burr.
"Bastards,"
he declared, biting off the word.
The
shar tahl's voice was calm. "That they are
bastards
does not preclude the need for parents."
Kellin's
lips were stiff. "Homanan halflings."
"And
what are you, my lord, but Homanan, Sol-
indish,
Atvian, Ennnish. .. ?" Burr let it trail off.
"/
am pure Cheysuli."
"A'saU?"
Kellin challenged. "You believe I
should
be replaced?"
"If
you refuse your lir, assuredly." Burr was re-
lentless.
"Look at your children, Kellin."
He did
not want to. He was desperate not to.
"Bastards
have no place in the line of succession—"
"—and
therefore do not matter?" Burr shook his
head.
"That is the Homanan in you, I fear ... in
the
clans bastardy bears no stigma." He paused.
"Did
lan know you felt so? He, too, was a
bastard."
"Enough!"
Kellin hissed. "You try to twist me
inside
out no matter what I say."
"I
shall twist you any way I deem necessary, if
the
result achieved is as I believe it should be."
Burr
looked at the boy. "Young, but he promises
well.
Homanan eyes—they are hazel—but the hair
is
yours. And the chin—"
"Stop
it."
280
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 281
"The
girl is too young yet to show much of what
she
shall be—"
"Stop
it!"
"—and
of course the other boy is but a handful
of
months." Burr looked at Kellin, all pretenses to
neutrality
dropped. "Explain it away, if you
please.
Justify your actions with regard to these
children,
though you refuse to permit your jehan
the
same favor."
"He
traded me for the gods!" It was a cry from
the
heart Kellin regretted at once. "Can you not
see—"
"What
I see are two children without a jehan,"
Burr
said. "Another yet sleeps at the breast of a
Cheysuli
woman who lost her own baby. I submit
to you,
my lord: for what did you trade them?"
Words
boiled up in Kellin's mouth, so many at
first
he could not find a single one that would,
conjoined
with another, make any sense at all. Fu-
rious,
he thrust himself to his feet. At last the
words
broke free. "I get nothing from you. No
truths,
no support, no honorable service! Nothing
more
than drivel mouthed by a man who is truer
to the
a'saii than to his own Mujhar!"
Burr
did not rise. "Until you can look on those
children
and acknowledge your place in their
lives,
speak no word against Aidan."
Kellin
extended a shaking hand. He pointed at
Sima.
"I want no lir."
"You
have one."
"I
want to be rid of her."
"And
open the door to madness."
"I
do not believe it."
Burr's
eyes glinted. "Then test it, my lord. Chal-
lenge
the gods- Renounce your lir and withstand
the
madness." He rose and took the small girl
from
the silent warrior's arms, settling her against
his
shoulder. Over her head, he said, "It will be a
282
Jennifer Robersoa
true
test, I think. Certainly as true as the one Teir-
nan
undertook at the Womb of the Earth."
Desperate,
Kellin declared, "I have no room in
my life
for the impediment of halfling bastards'"
"That,"
Burr said, "is between you and the
gods."
Kellin
shut his teeth. "You are wrong. All of you.
I will
prove you wrong."
"Tahlmorra
lujhalla mei wiccan, cheysu," Burr
said-
Then, as Kellin turned to flee, "Cheysuli
i'haUa
shansu."
Kellin
did not stay the rest of the night in Clan-
keep
but took back his borrowed mount and rode
on
toward Mujhara. He had moved beyond the
point
of weariness into the realm of an exhaustion
so complex
as to render him almost pretematu-
rally
alert. Small sounds were magnified into a
clamor
that filled his head, so that there was no
room
for thought. It pleased him. Thought re-
newed
anger, reestablished frustration, reminded
him yet
again that no matter what he said—no
matter
who he was—no Cheysuli warrior would
accept
him as one of them so long as he lacked a
lir.
They
would sooner have me go mad with a lir
than go
mad because I renounce one.
It made
no sense to Kellin. But neither did the
mountain
cat who shadowed his horse, loping in
its
wake.
He had
tried to send her away. Sima refused to
go.
Since he had made very clear his intentions to
forswear
her, the cat had said nothing. The link
was
suspiciously empty -
As if
she no longer exists. And yet here she was;
he had
only to glance over a shoulder to see her
behind
him.
Would
it not be simpler if he shut off that link
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 283
forever?
Certainly less hazardous. If Sima died
while
as yet unbonded, he could escape the death-
ritual.
Though
Burr says I will not.
Kellin
shifted in the saddle, attempting to lessen
the
discomfort of his chest. The shar tahl had chal-
lenged
him to test the conviction that a lirless war-
rior
went mad. And he had accepted. Part of the
reason
was pride, part a natural defiance; uneasily
Kellin
wondered what might happen if he lost the
challenge.
If, after all, the Cheysuli belief was
based
on truth.
What
does it feel like to go mad? He slowed his
mount
as he approached the city; star- and moon-
light,
now tainted by Mujhara's illumination,
made it
difficult to see the road. What was Teiman
thinking,
as he leapt into the Womb?
What
had his father thought, and his mother, as
the
warrior without a lir tested his right to the
Lion,
and was repudiated?
/ would
never throw myself into the Womb of the
Earth.
It was— He brought himself up short.
Madness?
Kellin
swore the vilest oaths he could think of.
An arm
scrubbed roughly across his face did noth-
ing to
rid his head of such thoughts. It smeared
grime
and crusted blood—he had left Clankeep
without
even so much as a damp cloth for clean-
ing his
face—and tousled stiffened hair. His cloth-
ing was
rigid with dried blood and scratched at
bruised
flesh. Inside the flesh, bones ached.
He did
not enter Mujhara by way of the Eastern
Gate
because they knew him there. Instead he
angled
the horse right and rode for the Northern
Gate.
Of all the gates it was the least used; the
Eastern
led toward Clankeep, the Southern to
Hondarth,
the Western to Solinde. The Northern
opened
onto the road that, followed to its end, led
284
Jennifer Kobersoa
to the
Bluetooth River: beyond lay the Northern
Wastes,
and Valgaard.
Kellin
shivered. / would have gone there, had
Corwyth
persevered.
Through
the Northern Gate lay the poorer sec-
tions
of Mujhara, including the Midden. Kellin in-
tended
to ride directly through, bound for
Homana-Mujhar
on its low rise in the center of
the city.
He wanted a bath very badly, and a bed—
His
horse—Corwyth's horse—shied suddenly,
even as
Kellin heard the low-pitched growling. He
gathered
rein, swearing, as the dog boiled out of
the
darkness.
Kellin
took a deeper seat, anticipating trouble,
but the
dog streaked by him. Then he knew.
The
link that had been so empty blazed sud-
denly
to life, engulfing him utterly. He heard the
frantic
barking, the growls; then Sima's wailing
cry.
The link, half-made though it was, reverber-
ated with
the mountain cat's
frenzied
counterattack.
"Wait!"
It was a blurt of shock. Stunned by the
explosion
within the link, Kellin sat immobile. His
body
rang with pain and outrage; yet none of it
was his
own. "Hers." She had said they were
linked,
even if improperly. He felt whatever the
cat
felt.
Freed
of the paralysis, Kellin jerked the horse
around,
feeling for the long-knife retrieved from
Corwyth.
He saw a huddle of black in the shad-
ows,
and the gleam of pale slick hide as the dog
darted
in toward Sima. It was joined by another,
and
then a third; in a moment the noise would
bring
every dog at a run.
They
will kill— The rest was lost. A man-shaped
shadow
stepped out of a dark doorway and, with
a
doubled fist, smashed the horse's muzzle.
Kellin
lost control instantly, and very nearly his
A
TAPESTRV OF LIONS 285
nose.
The horse's head shot skyward, narrowly
missing
Kellin's bowed head. The animal fell back
a step
or two, scrabbling in mucky footing, fling-
ing his
head in protest.
Before
Kellin could attempt to regain control of
the
reins, hands grabbed his left leg. It was sum-
marily
jerked out of the stirrup and twisted vio-
lently,
so that Kellin was forced to follow the
angle
or risk having his ankle broken. The position
made
him vulnerable; a second violent twist and
a heave
tipped Kellin off backward even as he
grabbed
for the saddle.
"Ku'reshtin—"
He twisted in midair, broke free
of the
hands, then landed awkwardly on his feet—
leifhana
tu'sai!—and caught his balance haphaz-
ardly
against the startled horse's quivering nimp.
Before
he could draw a breath, the man was on
him.
Inconsequentially,
even as he fought, Kellin be-
lieved
it ironic. He had no coin. All anyone would
get from
him was a Cheysuli long-knife; which, he
supposed,
was reward enough.
His own
breathing was loud, but over his noise
he
heard the yowling of the mountain cat and the
clamor
of dogs. His concentration was split—for
all he
wanted no Hr, he did not desire her to be
killed
or injured—which made it that much
harder
to withstand his assault.
Booted
feet slipped in muck. The alley was nar-
row,
twisted upon itself, hidden in deep shadow
because
dwellings blocked out much of the moon.
Kellin
did not hesitate but grabbed at once for
Blais'
knife; massive hands grasped his right arm
immediately
and wrenched his hand away from
the
hilt. The grip on his arm was odd, but firm
enough;
then it shifted. Fingers closed tautly on
flesh,
shutting off strength and blood. Kellin's
286
Jennifer Robes-son
hand
was naught but a lifeless blob of bone, flesh,
and
muscle on the end of a useless arm.
"Ku'resh—"
The
grip shifted. A knee was brought up as Kel-
lin's
captive forearm was slammed down. The
bones
of his wrist snapped easily against the
man's
thigh.
Pain
was immediate, Kellin's outcry echoed the
frenzy
of the mountain cat as she fought off the
dogs.
But the attacker was undeterred. Even as
Kellin
panted a shocked protest colored by angry
oaths,
the stranger wound his fists into the blood-
stiffened
doublet. He lifted Kellin from the
ground,
then slammed him against the nearest
wall.
Skull
smacked stone. Lungs collapsed, expelling
air. A
purposeful elbow was dug deeply into Kel-
lin's
laboring chest, rummaging imperiously
amidst
the wreckage of fragile ribs. Bones gave
way.
He
inhaled raggedly and managed a breathless
string
of foul words in a mixture of Homanan, Old
Tongue,
and Erinnish, depending on the words to
give
him something on which he might focus. The
pain
was all-consuming, but not nearly so
astounding
as the violence of the attack itself.
Sima's
screaming echoed in the canyon of
cheek-by-jowl
dwellings- A dog yelped, then an-
other;
others belled a call to join the attack.
Lir— It
was instinctive. He meant nothing by
it. The
appeal faded immediately, though not the
knowledge
of it.
Kellin
sagged against the wall, pinned there by
a
massive body. A shoulder leaned into his chest.
His
broken wrist remained trapped.
The odd
grip tightened, shirting on his forearm.
"First
the thumb," the attacker grunted.
There
was no air, no air at all—but pain—
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 287
"First
the thumb, then the fingers—"
Kellin
sucked frantically at air.
"—and
lastly, the hand—"
He knew
the truth then- "Luce!" Kellin gasped.
"Gods—"
"None
here, little princeling. Only me." A grin
split
Luce's beard in the pallor of the night. "I'll
hold
the hand just so—" He did it one-handed,
while
the other snagged the long-knife from Kel-
lin's
belt.
One
word, no more, "Wait—"
"What?
D'ye think to buy me, princeling? No,
not
Luce—he's enough coin to last him, and ways
of
getting more." Luce's breath stank. He hooked
an
elbow up and slammed it into Kellin's jaw. The
back of
Kellin's skull smashed against stone wall;
he felt
a tooth break from the blow, and weakly
spat
out the pieces. Luce laughed. "A love-tap,
nothing
more . . . and speaking of that, perhaps I
should
make you mine to use as I will—a royal
sheath
for my sword—"
Kellin
squirmed against the wall. His vision yet
swam
from the blow, and he tasted blood in his
mouth.
He did not know if it came from the empty
root
socket, or was expelled from pierced lungs.
Luce
still pinned the broken wrist against the
wall.
In the other hand gleamed the knife. He set
the
point between Kellin's spread tegs and tapped
cloth-warded
genitals. "The Midden's a harsh
place
full of desperate people—but Luce would
protect
you. Luce would make you his—"
"Sima!"
Kellin shouted, spraying blood and des-
peration.
In the distance he heard growls and
yelps,
and the wailing cry of an infuriated cat.
"Sim—"
But
Luce shut it off with a dig of an elbow into
broken
ribs. "First the thumb," he said.
288
Jennifer Robersoa
Kellin
understood what a lir was for. He had
repudiated
his own. What, then, was left?
He hurt
very badly. The injuries were serious.
Even if
Luce did nothing else, he would probably
die
regardless.
Sima
had said before she had given him the key.
Now it
was his task to open the door again.
Kellin
used the pain. He used the pain, the fury,
the
frustration, the fear. He feasted on it, and al-
lowed
it to fill his spirit until there was nothing
left of
the man but the elemental drives to kill,
and to
feed.
As the
knife came down to sever the thumb from
his
hand, the hand was no longer there. In its
place
was the flexing paw of a mountain cat.
Fourteen
With a
shocked cry. Luce let go. The knife glinted
briefly,
then tumbled into muck. Kellin dropped
four-footed
to splayed, leathery pads, then twisted
sinuously
in the body made for fluid movement,
like
water over stone; like runoff in the ancient
cut of
a waterfall over sheer cliffs.
He will
learn what it means to harm a Cheysuli—
But
then the thought spilled away into a jumble
of
crazed images tumbled one against another, all
stuck
together like layers of leaves adhered one on
top of
another, until vision fell out of focus and
no
longer mattered at all. What mattered now was
scent
and the stink of a frightened man; the sound
of the
man's sobbing; the taste of promised
revenge.
The cat
who was Kellin reached out. Easily—
so
easily!—he slapped a negligent paw across the
giant's
thigh. Claws dug in sharply; blood spurted
through
rent cloth.
Luce
screamed. Thumbless hands clutched at
his
bleeding thigh, trying to stanch it. Lazily, exul-
tant in
his strength, Kellin reached out again and
slapped
at the other meaty thigh so that it, too,
bled.
As Luce sobbed and whimpered, he curved
a
playful paw around one ankle and dug claws
into
bone. With a snarl that warped his mouth
slantways,
he jerked the man to the ground. The
289
290
feanffer Roberson
sound
of the skull splitting was swallowed by his
snarl.
The
noise of the hounds was gone. Tail lashed
anticipation,
beating against cold air. Kellin
moved
to stand over his meal so no one else could
steal
it.
Lir!
Kellin
did not listen.
Lir! Do
not!
It was
easier to frame the feelings, the images,
not the
words. His mouth was no longer human.
His
response was built of instinct, not the logic of
a man.
You want it.
No. No,
lir. Leave it. A bleeding Sima was free
of
dogs, though some lay dead, others dying, while
another
ran off yelping. Leave it.
He
challenged her. YOU want it.
No.
I
hunger. Here is food. He paused. Are you my
mate?
Come
away.
He
panted. He drooled. Hunger was paramount,
but
pain ate at his spirit. It was easiest to give in,
to let
instinct rule a comprehension that was, even
more
quickly now, flowing away from him. I hun-
ger.
Here is food.
You are
man, not cat.
Man? I
wear a cat's shape.
You are
man. Cheysuli. Shapechanger. You have
borrowed
this shape. Give it back. Let the earth
magic
have it back. When you have learned the
proper
balance, you can borrow the shape again.
He let
his tail lash. Who am I, then?"
Kellin.
Not cat. Man.
He
considered it. / do not feel like a man. THIS
is man,
this food here beneath me. Saliva dripped
from
his jowls. You want it for yourself.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 291
Come
away, she said. You have wounds to be
healed.
So have I.
The
dogs hurt you?
I have
hurts. So do you. Come away, lir. We will
have
them healed.
Nearby
a door was opened. Someone looked out
into
the street. He heard a gabble of voices. He
understood
none of the words- Noise, no more; the
noise
of puny humans.
He
lowered his jaws. Blood, sweat, urine, fear,
and
death commingled in a powerful perfume. He
would
taste it—
NO. The
female was at his side. She leaned a
shoulder
into his. Her chin rubbed at his head. If
you
would feed here, there will be no choice but to
kill
you.
Who
would kill me? Who would dare?
Men.
Inner
knowledge gloated. They could not accom-
plish
it.
She
leaned harder, rubbing against his neck.
They
could. They would. Come away, lir. You are
badly
hurt.
Another
door opened. A slash of candlelight
slanted
into the street. In its illumination he saw
the
dead hounds, the slack hulk of a man. Voices
cried
out, full of terror.
Away?
he asked. But—the food—
Leave
it, she said. There is better elsewhere.
The big
cat hurt. His wounds were uncounted,
and
untended; he required tending. He went with
her
then because the urge to feed had left him. He
felt
disoriented and distant, unsure of himself. She
led him
away from the alley to another not far
away
and found a hidden comer.
Here,
she said, nudging at a shoulder.
She was
wounded, he saw. Blood spiked the fur
on her
spine. He turned to her. tending the bites,
292
Jennifer Robersm
licking
to wash the blood away. She had been hurt
by the
hounds, torn and tainted by the audacity
of mere
beasts who did not know what it was to
be
gods-blessed.
Leave
it, she said. Remember what you are.
He
paused. / am— He checked.
Gold
eyes were intent. What are you?
I am—as
you see me.
No.
I am—I
am—
Remember!
she snapped. Recall your knowledge
of self
.
He
could not. He was what he was.
She
leaned against him. He smelled her fear, her
blood.
She was alien to him, who did not know
what
she was to him. Stay here. You are too badly
wounded
to walk. Wait here for me.
It
frightened him. Where are you going?
For
help. Stay here.
She
left him. He crouched against the wall, tail
whipping
a counterpoint to the pain in his foreleg,
in his
ribs, in his jaws. Licking intensified pain.
He
flattened his ears against his head and pulled
back his
lips from his teeth in a feral grimace of
pain
and fear.
She had
left him alone, and now he was
helpless.
Men
came. And torches. The big cat shied back,
huddling
into a comer as he snarled and growled
a
warning. He slitted eyes against the flame and
saw
silhouettes, man-shapes holding sticks with
fire
blooming from them. He smelled them: they
stank
of anticipation, apprehension; the giddy
tang of
an excitement nearly sexual, as if they
hoped
to mate once the task was done. The odor
was strong.
It filled up his nostrils and entered
his
head, causing the reflex response that dropped
A
TAPESTRY OF LtONS 293
open
his jaws. Raspy in- and exhalations as he
scented
the men made him sound like a bellows.
Lir. It
was the female. Sima. Lir, do not fear.
They
have come to help, not harm.
Fire.
They
will come no closer, save one. She slunk out
of the
blinding light into his slime-coated corner.
Blood
crusted across her shoulders; she had run,
and
bled again. Let the man come.
He
permitted it. He pressed himself against the
wall
and waited, one swollen paw dangling.
Breathing
hurt. He hissed and shook his head; a
tooth
in his jaw was broken.
The man
came away from the fire. Kellin could
not
judge him by any but a cat's standards: his
hair
was silver like frost in winter sunlight, and
his
eyes glowed like coals. Metal glinted on naked
arms,
bared by a shed cloak despite the winter's
bite.
"Kellin."
The man knelt down on one knee, un-
mindful
of the muck that would soil his leathers.
"Kellin."
The cat
opened his mouth and panted. Pain
caused
him to drool.
"Kellin,
you must loose the cat-shape. There is
no more
need."
The cat
rumbled a growl; he could not
understand.
The man
sighed and rose, turned back to the
men
with flames. He spoke quietly, and they
melted
away. Light followed them, so that though
empty
of men the corner still shone with a sickly,
frenzied
pallor.
The men
were gone. In their places was a void,
a
blurred nothingness that filled the alley. And
then a
tawny mountain cat stalked out of the fad-
ing
flame-dazzle with another at his side: a mag-
nificent
black female well into her prime. Her
294
Jennifer Robersoa
grace
denounced the gangliness of the young fe-
male
with Kellin who was, after all, little more
than a
cub.
Three
mountain cats: two black, one tawny
gold.
In his mind formed the images that in hu-
mans
would have been speech; to him, now, the
images
made promises that they would lend him
required
strength, and the healing he needed so
badly.
In
their eyes he saw a man. Human, like the
others.
His hair was not winter-frost, but black as
a night
sky. His eyes were green coals in place of
ruddy
or yellow. He did not glint with gold; he
wore no
gold at all. He was smooth and sleek and
strong,
with the blood running hot in his veins.
Pain
blossomed anew. Broken bones protested.
Three
cats pressed close. The tawny male
mouthed
his neck; Kellin flattened his ears and
lowered
his head. He hurt too much to display
dominance
postures to one who was clearly much
older
and wiser than he.
Come
home, the cat said. Come home with me
now.
Kellin
panted heavily. In the muck, his pads
were
damp with sweat. Weakness overrode cau-
tion.
He let them guide his mind until he saw
what
"home" meant: the true-body that was his.
Fingers
and toes in place of claws. Hair in place
of fur,
and smooth, taut flesh too easily bruised by
harsh
treatment.
Come
home, the tawny cat said, and in its place
was a
man with eyes that understood his pain and
the
turmoil in his soul. "I have been there," he
said.
"My weakness is my fear of small dark places
... I
will be with you in this. I understand what
it is
to fear a part of yourself over which you have
no
control." Then, very softly, "Come home, Kel-
lin-
Let the anger go."
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 295
He let
it go. Exhaustion engulfed, and a blurred
disorientation.
Spent, he slumped against the half-
grown
female. She licked at his face and scraped
a layer
of skin; human skin, not feline.
Kellin
recoiled. He pressed himself into the
stone
wall.
"Kellin."
Brennan still knelt. Behind him
torches
flared. "Shansu, Kellin—it is over."
"I—I—"
Kellin stopped. He swallowed hard
against
the sour taste of bile. He could frame no
proper
words, as if he had lost them in his trans-
formation.
"I."
The
Mujhar's expression was infinitely gentle. "I
know.
Come with me." Brennan paused. "Kellin,
you are
hurt. Come with me."
He panted
shallowly. He cradled his wrist
against
a chest that hurt as much. His legs were
coiled
under him so he could rise instantly in a
single
upward thrust.
Brennan's
hand was on his shoulder.
Kellin
tensed. And then it mattered no longer.
He closed
his eyes and sagged against the stone.
Tears
ran unchecked through grime, perspiration,
and
blood old as well as new. He was not
ashamed.
Brennan's
hand touched his blood-stiffened hair
softly,
tenderly, as if to frame words he could not
say- And
then the hand was gone from Kellin's
hair,
closing instead on the arm that was whole.
"Come
up from there, my lord."
His
grandsire had offered him no honor in man-
ner or
words for a very long time, nor the deep
and
abiding affection that now lived in his tone.
Kellin
looked at him. "I am not . . . not . .." He
was
still too close to the cat. He wanted to wail
instead
of speak. "Am. Not. Deserving .. ." He
tried
again in desperation, needing to say it; to
recover
the human words. "—not of such care—"
Jennifer
Roberson
296
Tears
shone in Brennan's eyes. "You are deserv-
ing of
many things, not the least of which is care,
Shansu,
my young one—we will find a balance for
you.
Somehow, we will find a proper balance."
Torchlight
streamed closer. Kellin looked be-
yond
his grandfather and saw the royal guard.
One of
the men was Teague.
Their
faces had been schooled to show no emo-
tion.
But he had seen it. He had seen them, and
the
fear in their eyes as they had looked upon the
cat who
had been to all of them before nothing
more
than a man.
Kellin
shuddered, "I was—I was ..." The wail
was
very near. He shut his mouth upon it, so as
to give
them no more reason to look upon him
with
fear and apprehension.
They
were the elite guard of a warrior who be-
came a
mountain cat at will. It was not new to
them,
who had seen it before. But Brennan was
nothing
if not a dignified man of immense self-
control.
Kellin was not and had never been a dig-
nified
man; self-control was nonexistent. In him,
as a
human, they saw an angry man desirous of
shedding
blood.
In him
now, as a cat, they saw the beast instead.
They
know what I have become. What I will al-
ways be
to them. It spilled from Kellin's mouth,
accompanied
by blood. "Grandsire—help me—"
Brennan
did not shirk it. "We will mend the
body
first. Then we shall mend the mind."
Fifteen
He was
but half conscious, drifting on fading
awareness
that told him very little save his
wounds
were healed at last, his broken bones
made
whole—yet the spirit remained flaccid. He
wanted
badly to sleep. Earth magic drained a
man,
regardless of which side he walked.
His
eyes were closed, sticky lashes resting
against
drawn cheeks. Earth magic reknit bones,
but did
not dissipate bruises or prevent scarring
from a
wound that would otherwise require
stitching.
It merely restored enough health and
strength
to vanquish immediate danger; a warrior
remade
by the earth magic was nonetheless well
cognizant
of what had occurred to require it.
Kellin's
face bore testimony to the violence done
him.
The flesh across the bridge of his nose had
been
torn by a thorn; welts distorted his cheeks;
his
bottom lip was swollen. He had drunk and
rinsed
out his mouth, but the tang of blood re-
mained
from the cuts in his lip and the inside of
his
cheek.
A hand
remained on Kellin's naked shoulder.
Fingertips
trembled against smooth, freshly
sponged
flesh; Aileen had seen to the washing.
"Shansu,"
Brennan murmured hoarsely, lifting
the
hand. He, too, was drained, for he had under-
taken
the healing alone. It would have been better
had
there been another Cheysuli to aid him, but
297
298
Jennifer Roberson
Brennan
had not dared waste the time to send for
a
warrior. He had done the healing himself, and
now
suffered for it.
Kellin
was dimly aware of Aileen's murmuring-
The
Mujhar said something unintelligible, then
the
door thumped closed. Kellin believed himself
alone
until he heard the sibilance of skirt folds
against
one another, the faint slide of thin slipper
sole on
stone where the rug did not reach. He
smelled
the scent she favored. Her presence was a
beacon
as she sat down by his bed.
"She
is lovely," Aileen said quietly. "This must
be very
much what Sleeta looked like, before she
and
Brennan bonded."
He lay
slumped on one side with his back to
her- A
shoulder jutted skyward. Along his spine
and the
curve of his buttocks lay warmth, incredi-
ble
warmth; the living bulk of a mountain cat.
Kellin
sighed. He wanted to sleep, not speak,
but he
owed Aileen something. Into the limp hand
curled
against his chin, he murmured, "I would
sooner
do without her, lovely or no."
"D'ye
blame her, then? For being what you
are?"
It
jerked him out of lassitude into startled wake-
fulness.
He turned over hastily, thrusting elbows
beneath
his spine to lever his sheet-draped torso
upright.
"Do you think /—"
"You,"
Aileen said crisply; she was not and had
never
been a woman who deferred, nor did she
now
blunt her words because of his condition.
"Are
you forgetting, my braw boyo, that I've lived
with a
Cheysuli longer than you've been one?"
It took
him aback. He had expected sympathy,
gentleness,
her quiet, abiding support. What Ai-
leen offered
now was something other than that.
"It
is because of Sima that I—did that."
"Did
what? Killed a man? Two?" Aileen did not
^
!»
299
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
smile.
"I'm born of the House of Eagles; d'ye think
the
knowledge of killing's new to me? My House
has
been to war more times than I can count ...
my
birthlines are as bloody as yours." She sat very
straight
upon the stool, russet-hued skirts puddled
about
slippered feet. "You've killed an Ihlini sor-
cerer,
and a Homanan who meant to kill—or
maim—you;
as good as dead to the Cheysuli; I
know
about kin-wrecking.'' Aileen's tone was
steady,
as were her eyes. "The first killing won't
be
questioned; he was an Ihlini."
His
mouth flattened into a grim, contemptuous
line.
"But the other was Homanan."
"Thief
or no," she said, "some will call you a
beast."
Memory
was merciless. "I was."
"So
now you're blaming your lovely lir."
"She
is not my lir. Not yet. We are not fully
bonded."
"Ah."
Aileen's green eyes narrowed. She looked
more
catlike for it, with a fixed and unsettling
stare.
"And you're for ending it, are you?"
She
read him too easily. Kellin slumped back
onto
bolsters and bedclothes. She was due honor
and
courtesy, but he was very tired. Bones were
healed,
but the body was yet unaware of its im-
proved
condition, save the blazing pain was gone.
Stiffriess
persisted; after all that had happened in
the
space of two days, his resiliency was weak-
ened.
Youth could not usurp reality though its
teeth be
blunted. "I have no choice. She made me
become—"
"I'm
doubting that." Aileen's tone was level, un-
forgiving;
she offered no platitudes designed to
ease
his soul, but harsher truths instead. "By the
gods,
I'm doubting that\ You're the blood of my
blood,
Kellin, and I'll not hear a word against you
from
others—but / will say what I choose. In this
300
Jennifer Roberson
instance,
I hide none of it behind kindness and
love,
but tell it to you plainly: you've only yourself
to
blame,"
His protest
was immediate, if incomplete.
"Me?"
"No
Cheysuli warrior alive is without anger,
Kellin.
He merely controls it better. You control
nothing
at all, nor make any attempt."
He had
no time to think, merely the need to fill
the
toothed silence yawning between them; to
fight
back with words from a heart that was filled
to
bursting with despair and desperation: could
she not
understand? She was his own blood. "I
did not
want to kill them, granddame—at least,
aye,
perhaps the Ihlini—he threatened me, after
all!—but
not the Homanan, not like that—he was
a
thief, aye, and deserving of roughness, but to kill
him
like that?" He gestured impatiently, disliking
his
incoherency; it obscured the strength of intent.
"Kill
him, aye, because he meant to kill me, or
maim me
in such a way as to cut me off from my
clan,
but I never wanted to kill him—at least, not
as a
cat ... as a man, aye—"
"Kellin."
She cut him off sharply with voice and
gesture;
a quick motion of eloquent hand. It was
a Cheysuli
gesture. "If you would listen to what
you
just said—or tried to say!—you would under-
stand
why it is imperative that you fully accept
your
lir,"
All his
muscles stood up inside flesh in mute
repudiation.
"My lir—or the beast who would be
my lir—has
nothing to do with this."
Aileen
rose. She was in that moment less his
granddame
than the Queen of Homana. "You are
a
fool," she declared. "A spoiled, petulant boy
trapped
in a man's body, and dangerous because
of it.
A boy filled to bursting on anger and bitter-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 301
if
ness
can do little harm; a man may do more. A
man who
is half a beast may do more yet."
"I
am not—"
"You
are what you are," she said flatly. "What
are we
to think? Aye, a man under attack will do
as he
must to survive—d'ye think I will excuse a
man who
means to kill my grandson?—but a man
such as
you, gifted so terribly, can never be a
man."
Gifted
so terribly. He had not looked on it as
such.
"Grandsire also wears the shape of a cat."
Her
mouth was compressed. She permitted her-
self no
latitude in the weight of her displeasure.
"No
man in all of Homana, not even a Midden
thief,
need fear that the Mujhar of Homana would
ever
lose himself to the point he sheds his human-
ity and
feeds as a beast."
It
shook him. Her face was taut and pale; his
own
felt worse. He felt it would stretch until the
bones
of his skull broke through, shredding thin-
ning
flesh, thereby displaying the true architecture
lying
too near the surface.'
Human?
Or beast? Kellin swallowed heavily. "I
want
nothing to do with it. You are not Cheysuli—
surely
you can understand how I feel. Does it not
frighten
you that the man whose bed you share
becomes
a cat at will?"
"I
know the man," she said evenly. "I'm not
knowing
you at all."
"But—lam/!"
"No.
You are a bared blade hungry for blood,
with no
hand on its hilt to steady its course."
' *
Granddame—"
"He
is old," Aileen said, and the cracks of des-
peration
in her self-control began abruptly to
show.
"He is the Mujhar of Homana, in whose
veins
the Old Blood flows, and he serves the
prophecy.
There is no doubt in him; what he does,
302
Jennifer Robersoa
he does
for the Lion, and for the gods who made
the
Cheysuli. What I think does not matter, though
he
honors me for it; he does what he must do."
Her
hands trembled slightly until she hid them in
skin
folds. "How do you think it felt to be given
a tiny
infant and told the future of a realm de-
pended
on that infant, because the infant's father
was
meant for the gods, not men?"
Kellin
did not answer. There were no words in
his
mouth.
"How
do you think it felt for him to realize the
entire
fate of Homana and his own race depended
solely
on that infant; that there would be no others
to
shore up the claim. If that infant died, the
prophecy
died with him. Aidan can sire no more."
Beside
him, Sima stirred.
"How
do you think it has been for him to watch
what
you became? To see you waste yourself on
whores,
when there is a cousin in Solinde ... to
see you
risk yourself in the Midden, when there
are
safer games nearby ... to hear you rant about
fatherlessness
when he has been a father in every
way but
seed, and even then he is your grandsire!
How do
you think it feels?"
He wet
dry lips. "Granddame—"
Aileen's
face was white and terrible. "How do
you
think it feels to know that your grandson—
the
only heir to the Lion—lacks the balance that
will
maintain his humanity; that if he does not
gain
it, the beast in him will prevail?" Aileen
leaned
close. "He is my husband," she declared.
"He
is my man. If you threaten him with this, be
certain
you shall suffer."
It
shocked him. "Granddame!"
She was
not finished. "I wasted too many years
not
honoring him enough. That time is past. I will .,
do what
I must do to keep him from destroying
£
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
303
himself
because a spoiled, defiant grandson re-
fuses
to grow up."
"Granddame,
you cannot know—"
"/
know," she said. "I saw his face when he
looked
at you. I saw his fear."
The
Erinnish possessed his tongue. "I'm not
knowing
what to do\"
Aileen
stepped close to the bed. Her hand
touched
Sima's head. "Be what you are. Be a
Cheysuli
warrior. You're in need of the gods' care
more
than any man I know."
It
filled his mouth before he could prevent it,
lashing
out to punish. The question was utterly
unexpected,
yet even as he asked it, Kellin knew
he had
desired to frame the words for many, many
years.
"Does it mean nothing to you at all that
your
son repudiates you?"
Color
spilled out of her face.
Kellin
was appalled. But the words were said;
he
could not unsay them. "I only mean—"
"You
only mean that he deserted his mother as
well as
his son. yet she does nothing?" Aileen's
eyes
were a clear, unearthly green, and empty of
tears.
"She has not done nothing, Kellin—she has
done
everything within her power to convince him
to come
home. But Aidan says—said—no, when he
answered
my letters at first. He answers nothing
now; he
said I need only ask the gods." Her chin
trembled
minutely. "He has a powerful faith, my
son—so
powerful it blinds him to the needs of
other
people."
"If
you went there—"
"He
forbids it."
"You
are his jehana\"
Her
fingers folded themselves into her skirts. "I
will
not go as a supplicant to my own son. I have
some
measure of pride."
"But
it must hurt you!"
304
Jennifer Rohersoa
Her
eyes dimmed behind a glaze of tears. "As it
hurts
you. As it hurts Brennan. We are all of us
scarred
by the absence of Aidan."
Cold
fury filled Kellin. "And you wonder why I
want
nothing to do with a lir, or with the gods!
You
have only to look at him, and what obsession
has
made of him. I will not be so bound."
"You
will be Mujhar one day. That will bind
you
even as it does your grandsire."
Kellin
shook his head. "That is different- What
kind of
a Mujhar risks himself by bonding with an
animal
who might be the death of him? Does he
not
therefore risk his realm as well—and the
prophecy?"
Aileen's
voice was steady. "What is worth hav-
ing if
you are naught but a beast, and your people
desire
to kill you?"
Sixteen
One
hundred and two steps. Kellin counted them
as he
climbed down from the Great Hall into the
undercroft
of Homana-Mujhar, where the Womb
of the
Earth lay within /t'r-warded walls. As a boy
he had
gone once with lan, and once with the
Mujhar.
He had never gone alone.
Not
entirely alone. The cat is with me.
He did
not want her there. But she was the rea-
son he
went down to the Womb at all.
One
hundred and two steps. He stood in a small
closet
made of stone and depressed the keystone.
A wall
turned on edge, and the Womb lay before
him.
Air was
stale, but did not stink of an ending.
The
passageway walls were damp-slicked and
shiny.
He carried a torch; it smoked and streamed,
shedding
fragile light as he put it forward to illu-
minate
the Womb.
Kellin
tensed, though he knew what to expect;
three
visits were not enough to diminish the im-
pact.
Lir leapt out of walls and ceiling, tearing
free of
stone. They were incredibly lifelike, as if a
sculptor
had captured living animals and encased
them in
marble rather than carving them. They
stared
back at him from hard, challenging eyes:
creamy
ivory veined with gold.
The
Womb gaped. Its rim was nonexistent in
distorting
light, so that he could not see the rune-
305
306
Jennifer Robersoa
worked
edge. Only the deeper blackness that
marked
its mouth.
Kellin
wet drying lips and moved past the Ur-
carved
door slowly, holding the torch outthrust so
he did
not mistake the footing and tumble to his
death.
But
would I die? I am meant to be Mujhar ...
those
to be Mujhar can survive the rebirth.
He did
not have the courage to accept the
challenge.
Kellin
stepped inside. The Womb's maw ex-
panded
as the torch, held in an unsteady hand,
illuminated
the truth: a perfectly rounded hole
that
had accepted men before and refused to give
them a
second birth.
"Carillon,"
he murmured. "The last Prince of
Homana
to enter into the Womb and be born in
the
shape of a king."
He had
learned the histories. He knew his
birthline.
Carillon of Homana, the last Homanan
Mujhar.
"After
him, Donal. Then Niall. Then—Brennan."
Kellin's
jaws tightened. The next should have been
my
jehan, had he the courage to understand.
But
Aidan had renounced it. Aidan had been a
coward.
Should
I leap into the Womb to prove my worthi-
ness?
Can I atone for my jehan's weakness with my
own
strength? He stared hard at the marble lir. "Is
that
what they want?"
No
answer. The lir stared back in silence.
Kellin
turned and set the torch into a bracket.
Carefully
he took three steps to the edge of the
Womb,
then squatted down beside it. Buttocks
brushed
booted heels. Sore thighs protested, as
did
newly knit ribs.
Silence.
Kellin's
mouth went dry. In the presence of the
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
307
Lion,
he had felt many things. But the Womb was
not the
Lion. It spoke to him of a heritage far older
than
the Lion's, who was, in the unbiased nature
of
measurement, naught but a newmade thing. A
cub to
the Womb's adulthood. The walls were
man-made,
and the lir carved within stone, but
before
men had meddled to glorify what they per-
ceived
as the tangible proof of power, there had
been
the Womb.
"A
gate," Kellin murmured. "How many have
gone
through it?"
Movement
caught his attention. A black shadow
paced
into the vault, then rounded the Womb. It
sat
down across from him so that the Womb lay
between,
black and impenetrable. Gold eyes threw
back
smoky torchlight, opaque and eerily slanted.
Now,
she said. Your choice.
He did
not speak as a lir. "Is it?"
/; has
always been your choice.
"According
to the prophecy, there can be no
choice.
If a warrior repudiates his tahlmorra, his
service
to the prophecy, he is denied the afterlife."
Her
tail twitched once, then folded over arched
toes.
He had seen housecats sit so; incongruity.
She was
not and could never be tame. A man may
turn
his back on life after death. It is his right to do
so. It
is the price of living.
"To
choose how he will live after he is dead?"
Kellin
grinned derisively. "I sense obscurity. I
smell
the kind of argument that must content my
jehan,
who trafficks with the gods. How else could
a man
be made to repudiate his son?"
He did
not. He answered his tahlmorra. Her tail
twitched
again. He created your tahlmorra in the
following
of his own.
Kellin
frowned. "I mislike oblique speech. Say
what
there is to say."
308
Jennifer Robersoa
That it
is a warrior's choice to be other than the
gods
might prefer him to be.
"And
therefore alter the prophecy?"
Your
jehan might say that altering of the prophecy
also
follows its path.
Kellin
swore and sat down upon his rump, let-
ting
his heels slide forward. With blatant disre-
gard
for proprieties, he dangled both legs into the
void.
"You are saying that a man who turns his
back on
the prophecy also follows it by that very
repudiation.
But how? It makes no sense. If I made
myself
celibate and sired no more children, there
would
be no Firstborn. How would that serve a
prophecy
that exists solely to make another
Firstborn?"
You have
already sired children.
He
thought about it. So he had. They, too, each
of
them, claimed the proper blood. Save for the
final
House, the final link in the chain. Kellin drew
in a
deep breath. "If I went to Solinde and found
myself
an Ihlini woman with whom I could bear
to lie
and got a child upon her, the task is finished.
The
prophecy complete."
Sima's
tail twitched. She offered no answer.
"I
could do it tomorrow, if I decided to. Leave.
Go to
Solinde. Find myself a woman, and end this
travesty."
Sima
displayed her teeth. No one ever said it
would
be difficult.
Kellin
exploded. "Then if it is so easy to do—"
But he
let it trail off. "The blood. It comes to that.
lan lay
with Lillith and sired Rhiannon. Rhiannon
lay
with my grandsire and bore—who? A daugh-
ter?
The one who in turn lay with Lochiel and
bore
him the daughter with whom I shared a cra-
dle?"
Kellin hitched his shoulders. "And who, no
doubt,
would be the unlikehest woman with
whom I
should be matched—and therefore is, in
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
309
the
perversity of the gods, the very woman they
intend
for me to lie with. To sire the proper son.
Cynric,
the Firstborn.'"
Sima
held her silence.
The
image was vivid before him. "Lochiel will
geld
me. He will show the woman to me—or,
rather,
me to her—and then he will geld me! So
that I
know, and she knows, how very close we
came—and
how superior the Ihlini are despite our
Cheysuli
gifts."
Sima
bent her head and licked delicately at a
paw.
"No
answer?" Kellin asked. "No commentary?
But I
believed the lir were put here to aid their
warriors,
not obfuscate the truth."
The cat
lowered her paw. She stared directly at
him
across the black expanse of the Womb. Feral
gold
eyes dominated the darkness. / am not your
lir.
Have you not declared it? Have you not re-
nounced
me as your jehan renounced you?
Had he?
Had he?
A
lirless warrior was destined to go mad. A lirless
Cheysuli
was not a warrior at all. A lirless Cheysuli
could
never be Mujhar. Could never hold the Lion.
Could
never sire the Firstborn because the Chey-
suli
would look to another.
A
solution presented itself. An answer to the
questions.
Kellin
shuddered once- Sweat ran down his tem-
ples
and stung the scratches on his face. Breathing
was
shallow, though the ribs now were healed. A
flutter
filled his belly, then spilled to genitals.
He
swallowed painfully because his throat was
dry and
tight. He pressed both hands against cold
stone
on either side of his thighs. Fingertips left
damp
marks. Within the link, he said, Let the gods
decide.
Jeaaifer
Robersoa
310
Kellin,
prince of Homana, thrust himself into
the
Womb.
No top.
No bottom. No sides.
No
beginning, nor an ending.
Merely
a being.
Kellin
bit his lips bloody so he would not
scream.
It would diminish him to scream. Such
noise
would dishonor the gods.
Gods?
What did he know of gods? They were,
he had
said, little more than constructs invented
by men
who desired to rule others, to keep lesser
men
contained so that they maintained the power.
Gods.
His father worshiped them. Jehan, father,
sire .
.. there were so many words. None of them
made
sense. Nothing at all made sense to a man
who
leapt into the Womb.
The
only sense in such folly was the search for
sense,
so he might understand what manner of
man he
was and what he was meant to be in the
context
of the gods.
Gods.
Yet again.
If he
renounced them, if he repudiated them,
would
they permit him to die?
If there
were no gods, then surely he was dead.
Kellin
fell. There was no bottom. He did not
scream
at all.
What
were the Cheysuli but children of the
gods?
It was what the word meant.
Upon
such unflagging faith was a race made
strong,
so others could not destroy it.
Men who
had nothing in which to believe soon
believed
in Nothing. Nothing destroyed a man.
Nothing
destroyed a race.
Was
Nothing, then, a demon?
Belief
replaced Nothing. Belief destroyed the
demon.
The
Cheysuli were, if nothing else, a dedicated
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 311
race.
Once a thing made sense within the context
of
their culture, belief was overriding. Belief was
their
champion; it overwhelmed Nothing so the
demon
died of disuse, of DisBelief.
In the
Womb, Kellin laughed. What had Sima
said as
Kellin looked upon flesh-bound wrists?
"You
believe too easily in what the Ihlini tells you
to. His
art is illusion. Banish this one as you ban-
ished
the Lion."
Illusion
was another's successful attempt to
make a
man believe in something that did not
truly
exist. The key to banishing illusion was to
disbelieve.
Corwyth,
and other Ihlini, had tried very hard
to make
the Cheysuli disbelieve in the prophecy.
The
Ihlini disbelieved. Teirnan and the a'saii
had—and
did—disbelieve. And if disbelief could
defeat
illusion, and yet the prophecy survived, was
it
therefore a true thing, a thing with substance?
Or was
it simply that the Cheysuli who believed
in it
believed 50 strongly that the weight of their
faith,
the contents of their spirits, destroyed the
disbelief?
The
champion of the gods, called Belief, de-
stroyed
the demon whose true-name was
DisBelief.
Kellin
cried out in the confines of the Womb: "I
do not
understand.'"
History
rose up. So many lessons learned. The
hours
and days and weeks and months Rogan had
spent
with him, laboring to instruct so that Kellin
comprehended
the heritage of the races he
represented-
He
could name all his races, all the Houses in
his blood.
They were each of them necessary.
So was
it necessary for him to have a lir; to
renounce
the bond was to renounce his very self
and the
legacy of the blood.
312
Jennifer Robersw
A
^rfcs-s Cheysuli had hurled himself into the
Womb.
He had placed his fate within the hands
of the
gods.
Kellin's
shout echoed: "Tahlmorra lujhalla mei
wiccan,
cheysu!"
He had
invited them to decide. If a man did not
believe,
would he risk himself so? If DisBelief
ruled
him, he would therefore commit suicide by
issuing
such a challenge, for a challenge with no
recipient
was no challenge at all but the sub-
stanceless
defiance of an ignorant child.
Suicide
was taboo.
Paradox,
Kellin thought: Suicide was taboo, yet
a
Hrless Cheysuli undertook the death-ritual. His
sojourn
in the forest was meant to find his death
however
it chose to take him; it was nothing else
but
suicide, though a man did not stab himself, or
drink
poison knowingly.
He died
because of beasts. He died as prey to
predator,
as meat for the gods' creatures.
From
flesh-colored clay in the hands of the gods,
a man
became meat.
The
Wheel of Life turned so that the clay was
fired
in the kiln of the gods and set upon the earth
to live
as the clay willed. Believing or
DisBelieving.
Kellin
understood.
"Y'ja'hai!"
he shouted.
Clay
without the blood of a lir was nothing but
colorless
powder. Unmixed. Unmade. Never
thrown
upon the Wheel.
Kellin
understood.
Kellin
Believed.
The
image of Sima's face flashed before blind
eyes.
"I
accept," he said. "Y'ja'hai." Then, desper-
ately,
"Will you accept me?"
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS
313
The
words rang in his head. Ja'hai-na, she said.
Y'ja'hai.
The
/fr-link meshed, locked, sealed itself to-
gether.
Nothing could break it now but the death
of
warrior or lir.
That
knowledge no longer mattered to Kellin.
He was
whole. He was Cheysuli.
The
Womb of the Earth was fertile. The Jehana
gave
birth once again after nearly one hundred
years,
to suckle the newbom man upon the bosom
of his
tahlmorra.
The
Prince of Homana would one day become
Mujhar.
He
roused to torch-smudged darkness and the
gaze of
marble lir. He lay sprawled on his back
with
arms and legs splayed loosely, without pur-
pose or
arrangement, as if a large negligent hand
had
spilled him from its palm onto the vault floor.
He
thought perhaps one had.
"Lir?"
He gasped it aloud, because before he had
refused
to honor her in -the link. "Sima?" And
then,
scraping himself up from the floor, he
wrenched
his body sideways, to grasp frenziedly
at the
cat who sat quietly by the hole into which
he had
pushed himself. Lir? This time in the link,
so
there was no room for doubt. There would
never
be doubt again. He would not permit it;
could
not allow himself—
Sima
blinked huge eyes.
He
scrabbled to her on awkward knees, needing
to
touch her fur; requiring to touch the body that
housed
the blazing spirit. Lir? Lir?
Sima
yawned widely to display fearsome fangs.
Then
she shook her head, worked wiry whiskers,
and
rose. She padded all of two steps, pressed her
head
into his shoulder, then butted him down. She
was
ungentle; she wanted him to acknowledge the
314
Jennifer Roberson
power
in her body despite its immaturity. She was
lir,
after all; far superior to cat.
He
could say nothing but her name. He said it
many
times despite the fur in his mouth as she
leaned
down upon him; despite the weight on his
chest
as she lay down across him; despite the
warping
of his mouth as her tongue reshaped his
lips.
Lir—lir—lir.
He could not say it enough.
Sima
kneaded his shoulders. Smugly, she said,
Better
now than never.
While
the tears ran down his face.
Seventeen
Kellin
clattered down the stairs to the first floor,
intent
on his destination. Behind him came Sima,
glossy
in mid-morning light; gold eyes gleamed.
Daily
her gangliness faded and was replaced by a
burgeoning
maturity, as if full bonding had at last
loosed
the vestiges of cubhood. She would one
day,
Kellin believed, rival Sleeta for size and
beauty.
A month
ago you would not have considered it,
she
told him.
A month
ago I was lirless, and therefore lacked a
soul.
What man without a soul can acknowledge his
lir's
promise?
Within
the link, she laughed. How we have
changed
in four weeks!
He left
behind the staircase and strode on
toward
the entryway. Some would argue I have not
changed
at all; that I still frequent taverns—
But not
those in the Midden.
No, but
taverns all the same—
And the
women in them?
Kellin
grinned; its suddenness startled a passing
serving-woman,
who dropped into an awkward,
red-faced
curtsy even as he went by- 7s there some-
thing
you have neglected to tell me? Is there more to
a link
between warrior and female lir than I have
been
led to believe?
That is
vulgarity, lir.
31S
Jennifer
Roberson
316
Of
course it is. You had best get used to it. No one
has
ever argued for my kindness and decency—have
you not
heard the stories?
Sima
padded beside him, bumping a shoulder
into
his knee. / need hear nothing, lir. What you are
is in
your mind.
So I
gave up privacy when I linked with you.
She
yawned. When a warrior bonds with a lir, he
no
longer desires privacy.
It was
true. He shared everything with Sima,
save
the intimacy his vulgarity implied. And while
she did
not climb into the bed he shared with a
woman,
she nonetheless was fully aware of what
passed
within it; she merely curled herself on the
floor
and slept—or pretended to. Kellin had gotten
used to
it, though he supposed there was gossip
exchanged
regarding a certain perverse affinity for
a
mountain cat as onlooker; and he was not cer-
tain he
disapproved. Let them wonder about him.
He
would sooner be of interest than taken for
granted,
as he believed the Mujhar was.
"Kellin!
Kellin?" It was Aileen, silver threads
more
evident in fading hair. "Have you a
moment?"
He
paused as she came down the corridor.
"Now?"
He displayed the warbow he carried, and
the
suede quiver full of white-fletched arrows. "I
was
bound for a hunt with my watchdogs." Kellin
grinned.
"They require activity. Of late I bore
them,
now I am reformed."
Aileen
arched an ironic eyebrow. "You are not
'reformed,'
my lad, merely diverted. And 'twill only
take a
moment; a letter has come from Hart. Bren-
nan
wants you in the solar."
"Bad
news?"
Aileen
touched a fingertip to her upper lip. "I'm
thinking
not," she said neutrally, "depending on
point
of view."
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS 317
"On
point of—" His suspicions blossomed as he
saw the
glint in green eyes. "Gods—'tis Dulcie,
isn't
it? Grandsire's put off Hart long enough,
waiting
for me to measure up ... and now that he
believes
I've done it, he begins a discussion about
marriage!"
"There
was discussion of it a decade ago," she
reminded
him. " 'Tis nothing new, and should not
surprise
you. You are both well-grown."
He put
up a silencing hand. "Enough. I will go.
Will
you send word to the watchdogs I will be
delayed?"
"
'Tis sent," Aileen said. "Now, go to Brennan.
Whatever
complaint you have to make is better
made to
him."
"Aye.
You argued against the marriage that de-
cade
ago." Kellin sighed. "But now you are for it,
undoubtedly;
catch the feckless warrior before he
becomes
less malleable."
"You
are not now and never will be malleable,"
Aileen
retorted, "merely occasionally less inclined
to
defy." She pointed. "Go."
Kellin
went.
The
solar was less bright now that the sun had
moved
westward, but displayed no shadows. The
Mujhar
sat in his usual chair with his legs
propped
on a stool and a wine cup in his hand.
Against
his thigh rested a creased, wax-weighted
parchment
held down by a slack hand-
The
door stood ajar. Kellin shouldered it open
more
fully and crossed the threshold, tapping rat-
tling
arrows against one knee. "So, I am to be
wed.
This year, or next? In Homana, or Solinde?"
Brennan
smiled. He showed more age now; the
healing
of his grandson had left its mark. "Have
you no
objection?"
"A
mouthful, but you will hear none of them."
318
Jennifer Robersoa
Kellin
tapped arrows again as he halted before his
grandsire.
"What does Hart say?"
"That
there is no sense in putting off what must
be done."
"How
cognizant of tenderness is my great-uncle
of
Solinde." Kellin sighed. "I suppose it must,
then.
To link Houses, and bloodlines .. . and no
doubt
beget the child who will fulfill the proph-
ecy."
Irony spilled away. "Neither of us has a
choice,
grandsire. Neither Dulcie, nor me. Like
you and
granddame; like Niall and Gisella; Uke
Donal
and Aislinn."
"Nor
did Carillon and Solindish Electra,
through
whose blood comes the proper match."
Brennan's
mouth twisted- "So many years, so
many
marriages—all designed to bring us to this
point."
"Not
to this point, surely; to the birth, grand-
sire.
Wedding Dulcie means nothing at all to the
gods,
only the son born of the union." Kellin ges-
tured
with the warbow. "Have it carved in stone,
if you
will, like the Hr within the Womb: Kellin of
Homana
shall wed Dulcie of Solinde, and so beget
the
Firstborn."
Brennan's
fingers creased soiled parchment.
"Left
to your own devices—"
Kellin
took it up. "Left to my own devices, I
would
doubtless waste my seed on a dozen differ-
ent
whores for the rest of the month, then turn to
a dozen
more." He shrugged. "Does it matter? I
have
known since I was ten it would come to this
...
Dulcie knew it, too. It may as well have been
settled
as we soiled our royal wrappings; there
never
was a chance we could look another way."
"No,"
Brennan conceded. "We are so very close,
Kellin—"
"Then
be done with it. Have her come here, or
I will
go there. I do not care." He waved bunched
A
TAPcsmv w LHMS 319
arrows.
"Write it now, if you will. Let me be about
my
hunt. My watchdogs wait."
Brennan's
mouth compressed though the faint
displeasure
engendered by flippancy was less pro-
nounced
than resignation. "Be about it, then. I
will
have this sent tomorrow."
Glumly,
Kellin nodded. "My last hunt in
freedom."
Brennan
barked a laugh. "I doubt Dulcie will
curtail
your hunting, Kellin! She is very much
Hart's
daughter, in spirit as well as tastes."
"Why?
Does she wager? Well, then, perhaps we
will
make a match of it after all." But levity faded
in the
face of his future now brought so near. Kel-
lin
shrugged. "It will do well enough. At least she
is half
Cheysuli; she will understand about Sima."
"Indeed,"
Brennan said gravely; a glint in his
eye
bespoke the irony of the statement because
but
four weeks before Sima was sheer impediment
rather
than half of Kellin's soul.
Kellin,
who knew it; who saw the look in his
grandsire's
eye and colored under it. lifted his
arrows.
"I will help replenish the larder." Erinn
slid
into his words. " 'Twill take a day or two—
don't
be expecting me back before then." He
grinned,
"And aye, I'll be taking my watchdogs;
they'll
be hunting as well!"
Spring
had arrived fitfully, turning snow to
slush,
slush to mud, then freezing it all together
in a
brief defiant spasm before resolving itself to
its
work. Kellin felt an affinity for the season as
he rode
out with Teague and the others; now more
than
ever he longed to remember winter, because
then
there had been no cause to concern himself
with a
wife.
"Cheysula,"
he muttered.
320
Jennifer Roberson
Teague,
next to him on a red roan, lifted inquisi-
tive
brows. "What?"
Kellin
repeated the word. "Old Tongue," he
said,
"for 'wife.' "
"Ah."
Teague understood at once. "That time at
last,
is it?"
Kellin
knew the incident in the Midden tavern
had
sealed their friendship, though Teague was
careful
to keep a distance between them so famil-
iarity
did not interfere with service. The others
also
had relaxed now that their lord was easier in
himself;
he knew very well the prevailing opinion
was
that Sima had worked wonders with the
prince's
temperament. For all he had initially dis-
turbed
them the night he was trapped in cat-form,
they
did not in any way indicate residual fear.
"That
time," he agreed glumly. "I hoped it
might
wait a year or two more—or three, or
four—"
"—or
five?—"
"—but
they'll not wait any longer. I'll be wed
before
summer, I'll wager."
Teague
laughed. "Then you know nothing of
women,
my lord. She will be wanting an elaborate
wedding
with all the Houses of the world invited
so they
can bring her gifts."
KelUn
considered it. "She did not appear to be
much
concerned for such things when I saw her
last."
"How
old was she?"
"Twelve?"
He shrugged. "Or thirteen; I have
lost
track."
The
young watchdog grinned. "Then she'll be
Just
the age to demand such elaboration! You will
not
escape, my lord. But it offers you respite; it
will
take at least until next winter to prepare for
such a
feast!"
Kellin
slanted a glance at Sima across one
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 321
shoulder.
"I do not know which is worse: wedding
immediately
with little ceremony—" he turned
back to
guide his mount, "—or putting it off a year
so that
so much can be made of it!"
One of
the others joined in: a man named Ennis,
who was
Teague's boon companion. "Better now
than
tomorrow," he offered. "That way we can be
done
with our duty that much the sooner."
Kellin
looked at him blankly.
Ennis
grinned. "Do you think the Princess of Ho-
mana
will desire our company?"
He had
not considered that. Perhaps his mar-
riage
would offer him respite from the watchdogs,
but
Kellin was not convinced trading one for the
other
would prove so good a thing.
They
left Mujhara and headed directly north,
toward
the woods that fringed the road. Because
not so
many people traveled the North Road,
hunting
was better. It did not take long for Kellin
and his
watchdogs to flush game. He hung back
slightly,
letting the Homanans do much of the
work,
and waited until they were so caught up in
chasing
down a hart that they forgot about him
entirely.
Satisfied,
he glanced down at Sima. Now we can
test
it.
She
fixed him with an unwavering stare. Best to
know
now what the last four weeks have wrought.
Kellin
dismounted and dropped reins over a
limb
thrust slantwise from a tree. He left the
horse,
quiver, and warbow and walked farther
into
the woods, conscious of the anticipatory flut-
ter in
his belly.
Be not
so fearful, Sima suggested, following on
his
heels. We have time.
How
much? he asked uneasily. What should hap-
pen if,
driven to anger in the midst of political tur-
322
JeoaiCer Kobersoa
moil, I
forget my human trappings and become
nothing
more than a beast?
Time,
she repeated. What turmoil is there to be?
You are
prince, not king. You matter little yet for the
turmoil
to involve you.
A
humbling reminder. Kellin sighed and beat
his way
through brush to a small clearing, then
closed
his hand on the wolf's-head pommel of
Blais'
knife. "Strength," he murmured, invoking
his
kinsman's memory. "You had your share of it,
and of
courage; lend a measure to me."
Sima
pressed against one knee, then flowed
away to
take up position nearby. She sat with tail
tucked
over toes, ear-tufts flicking minutely. You
have
learned much in four weeks.
Kellin
rubbed at too-taut shoulders, trying to
ease
the tension. / have learned advice in four
weeks.
The doing yet remains, and that is what I
fear.
Be what
you are, Sima said. Kellin. That is all
you can
be, regardless of your shape.
"More,"
he said. "I was more, twice."
Sima
blinked. That was before.
"Before
you?" He grinned. "Aye, and therefore
did not
count; I was lirless, and unblessed."
Humor
spilled away. "Well enough- Let us see
what I
become when I trade my shape for
another."
He
squeezed the hilt once more, then let his
hand
fall away. With careful deliberation Kellin
detached
himself from the moment and let his
awareness
drift from the here and now to the there,
with no
sense of time, where the magic resided
deep in
the earth.
Power
pulsed. At first it was coy, caressing his
awareness
so he knew it was there for the taking,
then
flowing away to tease him yet again with
insubstantiality.
A
TAPESTRY OF Lio/vs 323
It was
frustrating. Sima—
Yours
to do, she told him.
He
concentrated. Power flirted, seduced; he
wanted
it very badly. His body rang with tension
that
was almost sexual, an intense and abiding
need-
He let himself go into it until awareness of
self
became awareness of need, of what would sat-
isfy
him, and then Power uncovered itself like a
woman
shedding draperies and let him touch it.
—different—
It was.
Before he had merely thought of the
beast,
neglecting to recall that he was a man with
a man's
distinct needs. The beast had overtaken
all
that was man, until he was helpless and un-
aware,
beaten down from his humanity into ani-
mal
instinct. This time he knew. His name was
Kellin,
not cat, and he was a man, A fully bonded
Cheysuli
warrior who had recourse to the magic
that
lived in the womb of the earth.
He
touched it. It set his fingertips atingle.
Kellin,
he whispered. Man, not cat—but lend me
the
shape, and I will do it honor.
Senses
flared- Images broke up his mind. No
longer
human images of a human world, but the
patterns
of a cat.
Am I—?
Not
yet, Sima said. There is more yet to be done.
More-
He did not know more.
He
fell. He was in the Womb again, empty of
everything
save a vague but burning awareness
that he
was a man who desired, but briefly, to give
his
human form to the earth so he might, for only
a
while, walk the world as a cat.
Not so
much to ask.
Vision
exploded. His eyes were open, but he saw
nothing
save a disorientation so great it threat-
ened
equilibrium. Kellin thrust out a staying hand
intended
to hold him upright, but it broke through
324
Jennifer Robersoa
the
crust of the earth and sank deep into the river
of
Homana's Power.
Earth
magic. There for the taking.
Kellin
took it.
There,
Sima said. Not so difficult after all.
Smells
engulfed, replacing reliance on sight. In
cat-form,
Kellin exulted.
Let us
run, Sima suggested- Let us run as cats,
so you
know what it is to honor the gods.
He did
not think much of gods. But in this form,
filled
with the glory of /fr-shape, Kellin could not
protest.
If it
was gods who were responsible, he would
honor
them.
Eighteen
Kellin
ran through the sun-dappled forest with
Sima at
his shoulder, lovely, magnificent Sima—
no
other warrior's lir was half so beautiful!—and
took
joy in the pure, almost sensual freedom the
cat-shape
gave him. He explored it as he ran,
marking
the differences within his brain, yet the
samenesses
as well- His awareness of self was un-
changed
despite the body's alteration; he knew
perfectly
well he was a man in a borrowed form
that
would, when he chose, be exchanged once
again
for the proper body. There was no division
in his
soul other than that his awareness permit-
ted; he
did not wish himself one or the other. He
simply
was what he was: a Cheysuli warrior with
magic
in his blood, who could, when he desired
to,
become a mountain cat-
You
see? Sima asked.
Kellin
exulted. He believed he understood him-
self at
last, and the needs that lived in his soul;
he
could control himself in this shape as easily as
he
could in human form. He need only remember,
to keep
alive the spark of self-knowledge that re-
called
he was Kellin, and human, so as not to tip
the
balance from Ur-shape into beast form.
Not so
difficult. His muscled body stretched,
fluid
in graceful motion, stronger by far than the
human
shape. She has taught me much in the past
weeks.
I understand better. I understand what it is.
32S
326
Jennifer Robersoa
Sima
interrupted. A stag. Just ahead. Fit for
Homana-Mujhar?
He saw
it; it was. A fine, huge stag with a mag-
nificent
rack of antlers.
Kellin
slowed, then stilled even as Sima did.
The
stag stood unmoving, poised in a patch of sun-
light.
Flanks heaved from exertion; was he prey to
someone's
hunt?
Kellin
did not care. The stag was theirs, now,
and
indeed fit for Homana-Mujhar. He was large
and
would no doubt prove difficult to take down,
but
there were two of them. Together they could
manage
it.
First
leap to you, Kellin said.
Sima
was pleased. She crouched even as he did,
tail
barely twitching at the tip. She tensed in a
perfect
stillness, tufted ears motionless.
Now—
She was instantly in motion: a black,
sleek
blur that sprang effortlessly from the ground
and
hurled herself through the air.
Sima screamed.
For an instant Kellin pinned
tufted
ears, wondering why she would startle the
stag
into flight and risk losing the prey, then saw
the
feathered shaft of an arrow protruding from
her
flank as she twisted in midair and fell.
She
screamed again, and so did he. Her pain
was his
own, and the shock that consumed her
body.
She was down, twisting to bite frenziedly at
the
shaft.
Kellin
heard a human voice shouting in fear and
horror.
A man burst through the bushes on foot.
His
face was drained; when he saw both cats, his
horror
was redoubled- "My lord! My lord, I did
not
mean it! It was the stag—the arrow was loosed
before
I saw her!"
The
/ir-link was alive with Sima's pain. Kellin
shuddered
with it, and the hair along his spine
stood
up straight. The shout of rage that issued
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 327
from
his throat was not that of a man, but of the
beast
instead.
The
arrow in Sima's flesh dug deeply into his
own.
Pain, shock, and weakness merged into fury,
and the
comprehension of hideous truth: his lir
was
dying; so, then, was he.
Kellin
screamed, and leapt.
The man
thrust up a warding arm, but made no
effort
to draw the knife that might have saved his
life.
His mouth warped open in horror, but he did
not
move. It was as if he did not believe that his
Cheysuli
lord, though bound now by /ir-shape,
would
ever truly harm him.
The man
went down beneath the cat and gave
up his
life in an instant. He did not even cry out
as the
throat was torn from his body.
Other
men burst from the trees on horseback
and
drew up in a ragged, abrupt halt that set
horses'
mouths to gaping and men to swearing.
Kellin
dared them to attack. He stood over the
prey
and dared them to take it.
The
keening scream welted in his chest and
burst
from his throat. Their faces twitched and
blanched.
None of them moved.
"Teague,"
one said, though the word made little
sense.
"Gods—he has killed TeagueV
Sima
panted behind him. Kellin turned his drip-
ping
head and saw her sprawled on her right side,
feathered
shaft buried deep in her left flank. It
bore
the Mujhar's colors, and the richer crimson
of her
blood.
She
panted. Her tongue lolled- The gold eyes
dimmed.
Lir!
Kellin cried.
She was
beyond speech. He felt only her fear
and
pain and the bewildered questioning of what
had
happened.
Anger
burned fiercely. Kellin swung back to the
328
Jeaaifer Roberson
others
and took a single step toward them. Horses
snorted
uneasily; one jibbed at the bit.
"My
lord," a man said; his hands shook on the
reins.
A companion broke and ran, then a third,
then a
fourth. The one who had named the prey
remained
behind. "My lord," he said again, and
his
young face twisted in a mingling of shock and
outrage,
"Do you even know whom you have
killed?"
Kellin
tried to say it: "The man who nearly killed
Sima!"
But none of the words came out. Only a
keening
growl.
"He
was your friend!" the Homanan shouted,
tears
filling his eyes. "Or now that you are a beast,
do you
only count them as friends?" In his anger,
the
young man drew his knife and threw it to the
ground.
"There! You may have it. I want none of
it! I
forswear my service; I renounce my rank. I
want
nothing to do with a prince who kills his
friends,
for assuredly he is not the man I want as
my
king!" He scrubbed hastily at his face- "The
Mujhar
is a man I honor, but I owe you nothing.
I give
you nothing; I am quit of royal service as of
this
moment!"
Kellin
could not form the words. With effort he
beat
back the pain within the link, the knowledge
of
Sima's condition, and concentrated long enough
to
banish the shape that prevented communica-
tion.
Human-form came quickly, too quickly; he
stumbled
to his knees, bracing himself upright
with
one hand thrust into deadfall. "Wait—" he
blurted,
"Wait?
Wait?" It was Ennis; Kellin's human
eyes
recognized him now. "For what? So you may
change
again, and tear out my throat?" Ennis's
grief
was profound. "He was my friend, my lord.
We grew
up together, and now you have killed
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 329
him. Do
you expect me to wait while you fashion
an
explanation?"
"Sima—"
Kellin panted. He hung there on
hands
and knees, then scrubbed haphazardly at
his
bloodied face. "My lir—in her pain, I could not
stop."
Sima's pain still ruled him, though now he
was a
man. Breathlessly he insisted, "He attacked
her!
What else was I to do? Permit him to kill her?
Then he
kills me!"
"He
wanted the stag, my lord! None of us saw
the cat."
Ennis reined in his restive horse. His an-
guished
face was twisted. "Will you permit me,
my
lord, to recover the body? I would prefer to
give it
a proper burial before you decide to eat it!"
Disorientation
faded. The link remained strong,
as did
the pain contained within it, but Kellin was
no
longer a cat and he felt Sima's pain another
way. He
understood the difference between her
senses
and his own.
A man
dead? By his doing? Still weak from the
abruptness
of his shapechange, Kellin turned awk-
wardly
and saw the body sprawled in deadfall; the
torn
and bloodied throat. He recognized the man,
acknowledged
the handiwork. In that moment he
fully
comprehended what he had done. "NO!"
"Aye,"
Ennis retorted. "You have blood on your
mouth,
my lord; royalty or not, you cannot hide
the
truth from a man who has seen the Prince of
Homana
murder an innocent man."
Nearby,
Sima panted. Blood matted her flank.
Brief
concentration broke up in response to re-
newed
pain. The link was filled with it, stuffing
Kellin's
head. He could think of nothing else but
his
lir. "Sima—"
"May
I take the body?" Ennis persisted. "You
may
find another dinner,"
Teague.
It was Teague. He had killed Teague.
330
Jennifer Robersoa
Lir?
Sirna's tone was weak. Lir, you must heal
me.
Waste no time.
"Will
you permit me the leave to take my friend
back?"
Ennis asked.
Now,
Sima said. Her tongue lolled from her
mouth.
Lir—
Teague
was dead. Sima was dying. No doubt at
that
moment Ennis would prefer his prince died
also,
but Kellin could not give in merely to please
him. He
would not permit the travesty to go forth.
"Take
him," he rasped, moving toward the cat,
thinking
only of the cat so he could avoid the
truth.
"Take him to my grandsire."
Ennis
blurted a laugh that was profound in its
anguish.
"Be certain I shall! The Mujhar shall be
told of
this. He needs to know what manner of
beast
is his heir."
The
tone flayed. "Go!" Kellin shouted. "It is a
matter
of balance—I have no control! It you would
live,
take Teague and go!" He knelt down at
Sima's
side- What am 1 to do? How do I heal you?
You are
Cheysuli, she said. Rely on that which
makes
you a warrior, and use it to heal me.
The
instructions he found obscure, but her con-
dition
alarmed him. It was all he could do not to
fling
back his head and howl his fear and pain.
"Magic,"
he panted. "Gods—give me the magic."
He was
Cheysuli. The power came at his call.
When it
was done, Kellin came awake with a
snap
and realized in his trance he tread close to
sleep,
or to collapse. His bloodied hands were yet
pressed
against Sima's side, but the arrow was
gone.
He saw a few bits of feathers lying on the
ground
with the arrowhead itself, but the shaft
was
gone, as if burned to ash.
The
breath came back into his lungs all unex-
pectedly,
expanding what had collapsed, refilling
A
TAPESTRY OF Lf OPUS 331
what
was empty. He coughed painfully. The world
slid
sideways; braced arms failed and spilled him
to the
ground, so that he landed flat upon his
spine.
The back of his skull thumped dully against
leaf-strewn
ground.
Sima
stirred next to him. The healing is com-
plete.
You have done well.
He
could not so much as open his eyes. Had I
not, we
would both be bound for the afterlife. I was
not in
so much of a hurry.
Nor I.
She shifted closer yet, pressing the
warmth
of her body against his right side. The
magic
drains a man. There is balance in that, also
... we
have time, lir. No need to move at once.
He did
not much feel like moving ever, let alone
at
once. Kellin sighed, welcoming the coolness of
the
deadfall beneath him. His itching face felt
crusted.
He longed to scratch it, but to do that
required
him to move a hand. It was too much to
attempt.
Lir.
Sima again, resting her chin upon his shoul-
der. /
am sorry for the man.
"What
m—" He broke off. Kellin thrust himself
to
hands and knees and hurled himself over, to
look,
to seek, to reassure himself that none of it
was true.
Teague's
body was gone, but bloodied leaves
and
hoofprints confirmed the truth Kellin desired
to
avoid. Teague indeed had died, and Ennis had
carried
him home.
Kellin
touched his crusted face with fingers that
shook.
Teague's blood.
"Gods,"
he choked aloud, "why do you permit
this?"
Lir.
Sima rose, butted at an arm. Lir, it is done.
It
cannot be undone.
"I
killed—" He could not voice it, could not
find
the words. "I killed Teague—"
332
Jennifer Roberson
Reflex,
she told him. A cat, to protect himself,
strikes
first. You struck to protect me.
"Teague,"
Kellin mouthed.
Even
the comfort of the ft'r-link was not enough.
He had
killed a man who was not an Ihlini, not
a
thief, not an enemy.
/ have
killed a friend.
Kellin
sank down- to the ground and pressed his
face
against it, unmindful of bloodied leaves.
/ have
killed a friend.
He
recalled Teague's presence in the Midden
tavern
where Luce held sovereignty, and how the
Homanan
had aided him. How Teague had, of
them
all, not looked upon him as a beast the night
he had
nearly killed Luce because Teague had a
better
understanding of what lived in his lord's
mind,
I swore
to have no friends because I lost them
all—because
they all died .. . and now when I let
one
come close again after so much time, I kill him
MYSELF—
He
wound rigid hands into his hair and knotted
them
there, then permitted himself to shout as a
man
might shout to declare his grief and torment.
But the
sound, to Kellin, was naught but a
beast's
wail.
Nineteen
It was
demonstrably obvious, when Kellin reached
Homana-Mujhar,
that Ennis and the others had
carried
word before him. The horse-boy who took
his
mount did so with eyes averted and led the
horse
away quickly, not even waiting for his cus-
tomary
coin- Off-duty men gathered before the
guardhouse
in the bailey fell silent as Kellin
walked
by them, breaking off conversation to stare
from
the corners of their eyes- They measured
him, he
knew; they looked for the proof in his face,
in his
clothing, in the expression in his eyes-
What do
they see?
He had
washed the blood from face and hands,
and
scrubbed at his jerkin? He believed no blood-
stains
remained, but possibly none were required;
he wore
guilt in his posture despite his desire not
to.
Sima
padded beside him. They watched her,
too,
marking her apparent health. She did not
limp or
show any indication an arrow had but
hours
before driven her toward death. It was a
natural
healing, but to the Homanans, who had
little
knowledge of such things, it seemed to sug-
gest
that Kellin's reaction was one of whim. not
of
need; as if he had killed Teague because the
idea
had occurred, and because he could.
Kellin
paused inside the palace to inquire as to
the
Mujhar's whereabouts, and was told to go at
333
334
Jennifer Roberson
once to
the Great Hall. Inwardly, Kellin's spirit
quailed.
Not in privacy? Or is it that he will discuss
it with
me as Mujhar, not grandsire, nor even Chey-
suli
warrior?
Sima
bumped his leg. / am with you.
No.
Kellin paused. This is for me to face alone.
Go up
to my chambers and wait.
She
hesitated, then turned and padded away.
Kellin
brushed haphazardly at the perspiration
stippling
his upper lip, then went on toward the
Great
Hall, Foreboding weighted his spirit until
he
twitched with it, desiring to scratch at stinging
flesh.
Brennan
was on the throne. The Lion's head
reared
above the Mujhar in a display of wooden
glory.
Aged eyes stared blindly; Kellin was grate-
ful the
Lion could not see what had become of a
prince
who would one day inherit it.
It was
nearing sundown. Light slanting through
stained
glass formed lattices on the stone floor, so
that
Kellin walked through sharp-etched pools of
pure
color. In spring, the firepit was unlighted.
Kellin
walked its length steadily, though more
slowly
than was his wont; he would not shirk the
confrontation
but did not desire to hasten it. What
would
come, would come; no need to accelerate
it.
He
reached the dais all too soon. And then he
saw
Aileen standing at Brennan's right side with
one
hand on the Lion. It is serious— Kellin
clamped
closed his teeth, feeling again the empti-
ness in
his jaw where Luce had broken a tooth.
Healing
had sealed it closed, but the tooth was
banished
forever.
His
grandsire looked old. The years had been
kind to
him for a long time, but now the kindness
was
banished. The healing four weeks before had
left
its mark, and the knowledge Ennis had
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 33S
brought.
Dark skin no longer was as supple and
taut,
permitting brackets to form at nose and
mouth,
and webwork patches beside his eyes. The
Mujhar
*s hands rested lightly over the curving,
clawed
armrests, but the knuckles were distended.
Kellin
halted before the dais. Briefly he inclined
his
head to Aileen, then offered homage to the
Mujhar.
He waited in tense silence, wishing Sima
stood
beside him; knowing it as weakness. It was
time he
acknowledged it.
Brennan's
eyes did not waver. His voice was
steady.
"When a king has but a single heir, and
no hope
of any others, he often overlooks such
things
as the hot blood of youth, and the trouble
a boy
can rouse. Gold soothes injured pride and
mends broken
taverns. It will even, occasionally,
placate
an angry jehan whose daughter has been
taken
with child. But it does not buy back a life.
Even a
king dares not overlook that."
Kellin
wet dry lips. "I do not ask you to overlook
it.
Merely understand it."
"I
have been told by Ennis and the others that
they
heard Teague cry out; that he knew he had
made a
mistake."
"My
lord, he did."
"And
yet you used the power of /ir-shape to kill
him
anyway."
It
would have been better, Kellin decided, if the
Mujhar
had shouted at him, because then he could
rely
upon anger. But Brennan did not; he merely
made
quiet statements in a grave and habitual
dignity
that Kellin knew very well he could never
emulate.
He
inhaled a trembling breath. "My lord, I am
moved
to remind you of what you already know:
that a
warrior in /ir-shape encounters all of the
pain
his lir does. It—affects—him."
"I
do know it," Brennan agreed. "But a warrior
336
Jennifer Roberson
in
lir-shape is yet a man, and understands that a
Homanan
who acknowledges his mistake is not to
be
murdered."
Behind
his back, Kellin balled his hands into
fists.
It would undermine his appeal if he shouted;
and
besides, he was guilty. "Sima was wounded.
She was
dying. All I could think about was that
he had
shot her, that she was badly hurt, and that
if she
died, I died also." The words were hard to
force
past a tight throat. "He was my friend, my
lord. I
never meant to kill him."
"You
did. In that moment, you did indeed in-
tend to
kill him." Brennan's hands closed more
tightly
over the armrest. "Do you think I cannot
see it?
I am Cheysuli also."
Grief
and anguish commingled to overwhelm.
"Then
why confront me like this?" Kellin cried.
"By
the gods, grandsire—"
But
Brennan's sharp gesture cut Kellin's protest
off.
"Enough. There are other things to concern
ourselves
with than whether I understand what
led to
the attack."
"What
other things?" Kellin demanded. "You
yourself
have said we cannot buy back Teague's
life,
but I will do whatever I must to atone for my
mistake."
Brennan
leaned forward. "Do you hear what you
are
saying? You speak of Teague's death as a mis-
take,
an unfortunate circumstance you could not
avoid."
"It
was!"
"Yet
when Teague makes a mistake, you re-
spond
by killing him." Brennan's face was taut.
"Tell
me where the difference lies. Why is one mis-
take
excused—because you are a prince?—while
one
results in murder?"
"I—"
Kellin swallowed heavily. "I could not
help
myself."
A
TAPESTRY OF LSONS 337
"In
/ir-shape."
"Aye."
He understood now what Brennan meant
him to
see. "I felt her pain, her fear—"
"And
your own,"
"And
my own." Kellin's face warped briefly. "I
feared
for her, grandsire—I had not had her very
long,
yet I could not imagine what it would be like
to lose
her. The grief, the anguish—" He looked at
Brennan.
"I thought I might go mad."
"Had
she died, you would have." The Mujhar
sank
back into the Lion. "It is the price we pay.
All
your arguments against the death-ritual now
mean
nothing."
Kellin
stared hard at the stone beneath his
boots.
"Aye."
"Through
the link, her pain was yours .. . and
you
feared she would die. Knowing what it would
cost."
"My
life," Kellin murmured.
"So
you took his, even though you might have
turned
to Sima at once and begun the healing that
would
have saved two lives: hers, and Teague's."
His
mouth was stiff, awkward. "I could not help
myself."
"No,"
Brennan agreed in abject weariness, "you
never
have been able to- And that is why you are
here
before us now: to decide what must be done."
He
looked up sharply. "What must be done?" he
echoed.
"But—what is there to do? There are ritu-
als for
Teague, and his family to tend, and i'toshoa-ni
for
me—"
"Kellin."
Brennan's voice was steady. He glanced
briefly
at Aileen, whose expression was so taut as
to
break, then firmed his mouth and looked back
at his
grandson. "Tell me why the qu'mahlin came
about."
It was
preposterous. Kellin nearly gaped. "Now?"
"Now."
338
JeaaSfer Robersoa
"You
desire a history lesson?"
"I
desire you to do whatever I require of you."
"Aye."
It was blurted before Kellin thought
about
it. Frowning his perplexity, he began the
lesson.
"A Homanan princess ran away with a
Cheysuli.
Lindir, Shaine's daughter—she went away
with
Hale, Shaine's liege man." In the face of
Brennan's
expectant patience, Kellin groped for
more.
"She was meant to wed Ellic of Solinde, to
seal an
alliance between Homana and Solinde, but
she ran
away instead with Hale." He paused.
"That
is what I was taught, grandsire. Is there
more
you want?"
"Those
are the political concerns, Kellin. What
the
elopement did as regards Homana and Solinde
was to
destroy any opportunity for peace to flour-
ish;
the two realms remained at war. But that
would
not cause the birth of the qu'mahlin, which
was a
strictly Homanan-Cheysuli conflict."
"Shaine's
pride was such that he declared them
attainted,
subject to punishment."
"That
is pan of it, Kellin. But think a moment
,. -
consider something more." Brennan's fingers
tightened
against aged wood. "It is one thing for
a king
to declare his daughter and his liege man
attainted;
he has the right to ask for their lives if
he
chooses to. It is quite another for that king to
declare
an entire race attainted, and set all of Ho-
mana
against it."
Kellin
waited for more. Nothing more was said.
"Aye,"
he agreed at last. "But Shaine was a mad-
man-
"Even
a madman cannot lead his people into
civil
war if they do not believe what he has said.
What
did he say, Kellin?"
He knew
it very well; Rogan had been at some
pains
to instruct him, and the Cheysuli at Clan-
339
A
TAPESTRY OF LSOIVS
keep as
well. "He said we were demons and sor-
cerers
and had to be destroyed."
"Why
were we demons and sorcerers? What was
his
foremost proof?"
"That
we could assume the shape of animals at
will—"
Kellin broke it off. He stared blindly at his
grandsire.
"That we could assume beast-shape and
kill
all the Homanans." He felt ill. "As—I killed
Teague."
"As
you killed Teague." Brennan sighed deeply.
"In
the days of Shaine, the Homanans believed
themselves
in danger. It was far easier to kill all
the Cheysuli
than risk their sovereignty. And so
they
tried- Shaine began it, and others carried it
out. It
took many years, including Ihlini and
Solindish
domination, before the Cheysuli were
admitted
again to Homana without fear of
extermination."
"Carillon,"
Kellin murmured. "He ended the
qu'mahlin."
"And
made a Cheysuli Prince of Homana when
he
sired no sons of his own.." A silver forelock had
frosted
to white. "Before the Lion came into the
hands
of Homanans, it was a Cheysuli legacy. The
kingdom
of Homana was a Cheysuli realm. But we
gave it
up rather than have the Homanans fear us,
knowing
that someday it would fall again to us,
and to
the Firstborn who would bind four realms
and two
magical races in a true peace." Brennan
drew in
a breath. "How can the Homanans permit
a man
to rule them who cannot control himself
when he
assumes /ir-shape? He is, to them, night-
mare; a
beast without self-control. And I am not
so
certain, just at this moment, the Homanans are
wrong."
It
shocked. "Grandsire—"
"I
know what it is to share pain through the
link- I
know what it is to be driven half-mad by
340
Jennifer Roberson
fear—you
have heard stories, I know, of how I am
in
small places—but I do not kill."
"Grandsire—"
"What
if it happens again?"
"Again!"
Kellin stared. "You believe it might?"
"I
must- These four weeks you have achieved
much,
but obviously self-control in /ir-shape is not
one of
them. I cannot risk it, Kellin."
"Given
time, guidance—"
"Aye.
But I cannot risk it while you remain in
Homana-Mujhar.
It gives the Homanans too broad
a
target."
Kellin's
belly clenched. "Clankeep, then." Where
he
would have to explain to Gavan, and to Burr,
and to
men and women who would not under-
stand
how a Cheysuli warrior could permit such
atrocity
in the name of his lir, whom once he had
meant
to banish. "Balance," he murmured. "If I
can
learn the balance ..."
"There
is another balance, Kellin. One which
has
eluded you through all of your life, and which
I have,
in my ignorance, permitted to warp that
life. I
am as much to blame as you are, in this."
Aileen
stirred. "No. Not you. I will not allow
you to
blame yourself."
Kellin
looked at her. Aileen's green eyes blazed
with
conviction as she stared at her husband; he
would
get no support from her. He longed for
Sima.
but would not call her to him. "Banish-
ment,
then."
"The
Council has approved."
Kellin
winced.
"It
is not a permanent thing. You will be per-
mitted
home when I am assured you have learned
what
you need to know."
"And
when the rumors have died down." Kellin
sighed.
"I understand, grandsire. But—"
"I
know." Brennan's eyes were filled with com-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 341
passion.
"It has happened before. My own jehan
grew
weary of the excesses of his sons, and ban-
ished
two of them. Hart he sent to Solinde, Corin
to
Atvia. Neither wanted to go any more than you
desire
to go. As for me—" he smiled briefly at Ai-
leen,
"—I was made to wed before either of us was
ready."
Aileen's
face was rigid. "I do not regret it now."
"We
both did then." Brennan turned back to his
grandson,
"For a six-month, a year—no longer
than is
necessary."
Kellin
nodded. "When?"
"In
the morning. I have made arrangements for
the
journey, and a boat will be waiting."
"Boat?"
Kellin stared. "A boat? Why? What
need
have I of a boat?" Trepidation flared into
panic.
"Where are you sending me?"
"To
the Crystal Isle. To your jehan."
Panic
transmuted itself to outrage. "No!"
"It
is arranged."
"l/narrange
it! I will not go!"
"You
wanted this for years."
"Not
now. Not for ten years, grandsire! I have
no
intention of going to my jehan."
Brennan's
gaze was level. "You will go. For all
your
anger and bitterness, and the multiplicity of
your
small rebellions, you are still a warrior of the
clan. I
am Mujhar. If I bid you to do so, you will
go."
"What
has he to do with this? This is something
I must
deal with on my own! I do not require the
aid of a
man who cannot keep his son but must
give up
everything to live on an island—"
"—where
you will go." Brennan rose. "Aidan
has
everything to do with this. We could not have
predicted
it then, and I doubt it occurred to him—
he was
in thrall to the gods, and thought of noth-
ing
else but the tahlmorra meant for him—but it
342
Jennifer Robersoa
is
something we must deal with now. You will go
to the
Crystal Isle and see your jehan."
"Why?
Why do you think this will help me?"
"Because
perhaps he can remove the boy's anger
and
replace it with a man's understanding that
what
the world—and gods—mete out is what he
must
deal with in a rational, realistic manner,
without
recourse to an anger that, in asserting it-
self,
kills men." The muscles flexed in Brennan's
jaw.
"Because there is nowhere else I can send you
and not
be afraid."
Kellin
stared. Shame banished outrage. "Of me?
You are
afraid of me?"
"I
must be. I have seen what happens when the
anger
consumes the man." His eyes were bleak.
"You
must go to the source of your pain. To some-
one who
can aid you."
"I
want nothing to do with him'."
"He
shaped you. By his very distance, by his
own
tahlmorra, he shaped you. I think it is time
the
jehan, and not the grandsire, tended the clay
that
his own loins sired." Brennan pushed a
trembling
hand across his brow. "I am too old to
raise
you now. It is Aidan's turn."
"Why,"
Kellin spat out between clenched teeth,
"did
you wait so long for this? I begged it all those
years'"
"He
did not wish it, and I believed you did not
need
it."
"Does
he wish it now?"
"No."
"But
now you believe I need it."
"Aye."
It
congealed into bitterness. "Would I need it
now if
I had had it then?"
Brennan
shut his eyes. "Gods—I cannot say .. .
if so,
I am to blame for what you have become—"
"No!"
Aileen cried, "By all the gods of Erinn,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 343
Brennan,
I've said it before—I'll not have you
blaming
yourself for this! What must I do to con-
vince
you? He is what he is. Let him take it to his
father.
Aidan is more fit to deal with aberration
than
either of us!"
"Why?"
Kellin asked. "Because he is 'aberra-
tion,'
and now I am also?"
Aileen
looked at him. "You are my grandson,"
she said.
"I love you for that—I will always love
you for
that—but I cannot comprehend a man who
lacks
the self-control to prevent him from killing
other
men." Her hands balled into fists. "I am
Erinnish,
not Cheysuli—I cannot understand the
soul of
a Cheysuli. That it is wild, I know, and
untamed,
and unlike that of any other, I know.
But it
is an honorable soul also, well-bound by the
gods,
and duty . .. yours is unbound. Yours is as
unlike
Brennan's—or Corin's—than any I have
known.
It is most like Aidan's in its waywardness,
but
with a blackness of spirit that makes you dan-
gerous.
Aidan was never that." Aileen glanced at
Brennan
briefly, then back-to her grandson. "Go
to your
father. 'Tis what you need—and, I'm think-
ing,
Aidan also."
Kellin's
jaws hurt. "You said—'no longer than
is
necessary.' How am I to know?"
Brennan
reached for and took into his own one
of
Aileen's hands. "Until Aidan sends you back."
He
looked at Aileen in desperation. "Was it your
idea?"
She
offered oblique answer though her face was
wasted.
"In Erinn," she said quietly, "a man ac-
cepts
his punishment. And the will of his lord."
Kellin
stood there a long time. Then, sum-
moning
what little pride remained, he bowed and
took
his leave.
Interval
He had,
since coming to the Crystal Isle, seen to
it that
much of its wildness was tamed, at least
so much
that a man might walk freely along a
track
without fearing to lose an eye to an importu-
nate
branch. And yet not so much wildness was
vanquished
that a man, a Cheysuli, might feel his
spirit
threatened by too much change.
It was
incongruity: to make the wildness useful
without
diluting its strength. And to offer change
within
a culture whose very strength was wildness.
He wore
leathers, as always, snug against flesh
that
did not as yet begin to wither with age, and
/ir-gold
on bare arms that did not surrender mus-
cle. He
was fit, if but a few years beyond his
prime;
a young man of twenty would call him
old—perhaps,
more kindly, older—but to another
man he
represented all that was remarkable about
a
Cheysuli.
He
paused at the border between woodlands
and
beach. Sunlight glinted off water, scouring
white
sands paler yet, so that he was forced to lift
his
hand against the blinding glare.
Blobs
swam before his eyes, robbed of dis-
tinctness
by the brilliance of the sun. They coa-
lesced
along the horizon, where the sea lapped in.
He saw
the blobs take shape, forming legs, tails,
heads.
He whistled. The blobs paused, then came
344
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 345
flying,
transmuting sundazzled formlessness into
spray-dampened
bodies recognizable as canine.
Tongues
lolled. Tails whipped- They lashed their
own
bodies in a frenzy to reach him, to display a
devotion
so complete as to render words obsolete.
They
were his now. The big male had died
nearly
twenty years before—of grief, he believed—
but the
others had survived despite the death of the
woman
who had caused them to be born. Most of
those
were dead, now, also—giant dogs died
sooner—but
they had bred as well, so that the is-
land
never lacked for companionship of a sort no
Cheysuli
had known before; they did not keep pets.
Nor
were these pets; they were, by their exis-
tence,
in the beating of great hearts, living memo-
rials
to Shona.
To him,
they were sanity.
He
paused as they joined him. The exuberance of
their
greeting endangered those parts most revered
by a
man; grinning, he turned a hip each time a
tail
threatened, then grabbed two or three until the
dogs,
all astonished, spun to whip tails free. Then it
began
again, until he told them with false sternness
that
the game was over; that they were to be still.
He sat
down there in the sand, warding off in-
quisitive
noses, until the dogs, too, settled with
grunts
and great rumbling sighs. Wise eyes
watched
him, waiting for the sign that he meant
to rise
and find a stick to toss for their pleasure;
but he
did not. and after a time they slept, or
lay
quietly: an ocean of storm-hued wolfhounds
sprawled
upon the beach of an island, in its beget-
ting,
very alien to their souls. They were Erinnish,
though
none of these had been there.
They
were all he had of her. The son she had
borne
in the midst of her dying, in the flames of
a
burning keep, was not and never had been his
to
tend. Another man might have grieved, then
346 Jennifer Roberson
done
what he could to raise up the living soul
whose
heart was partly hers, but he was denied
that
comfort. All he had of her, in the days and
the
darkness, were memories and dogs.
He
honored the gods with his service. He did
not
question its needs, or the path he had taken;
it was
his tahlmorra. A great security resided in
the
knowledge that what he did served a greater
purpose;
that sacrifices made in the name of that
greater
purpose, no matter how difficult, would in
the end
bear out his seeming madness. Let them
attach
scorn to his name now, but one day, long
after
his bones had rotted, they would call him
something
else.
"But
my spark is nothing compared to the flame
of
his." Aidan smiled. "My name is a spark, and
Kellin's
a bonfire—but Cynric's will blaze with all
the
terrible splendor of a wildfire as it devours the
land
around it."
He knew
they would curse him. Men were often
blind
when it came to needed change. When they
acknowledged
what had happened—and what still
would
come—they would claim him an emmissary of
a demon
not to their liking, when all he did was serve
the gods
who had decided to mend what had broken.
"Revolution,"
he said; the dogs twitched ears.
"If
they knew what was to come, they would none
of them
agree; they would all become a'saii."
But he
would not permit it. That was his pur-
pose,
to guide his people closer to a true under-
standing
that out of devouring names would rise
a new
world.
It
would be difficult. But the gods would see to
it he
had a means to persevere. If it required a
weapon,
a weapon would be given.
Aidan
was content. He knew his path very well.
All he
had to do was wait for the weapon, then set
it on
its path.
One
The
chapel was built of standing stones set into a
tight
circle. Most of them still leaned a little, like
teeth
settling badly in a diseased jaw, but some-
one had
taken the time—probably years—to see
that
many of the stones had been pushed back into
proper
alignment. The circle was whole again,
with a
carved lintel stone set over the darkened
entrance,
and a heel stone put up in front. Kellin
went
slowly to it, drawn by its singular splendor.
The
side facing him was unnaturally flat,
chipped
and rubbed smooth. Across the dark gray
face
ran runic symbols he had seen but once be-
fore,
in his Ceremony of Honors. He recognized
most of
them, but he was not perhaps as conver-
sant in
the Old Tongue as he should be. / have
lived
too long among Homanans.
Kellin
was transfixed by the shapes carved into
the
stone. The runes were incised deeply; he
thought
the carvings no more than fifteen or
twenty
years old. The heel stone was older yet, but
not so
ancient as the circle itself. An infant stand-
ing
within the shade of his fathers.
Standing,
the heel stone reached Kellin's chest-
As he
loielt, the runes became clearer. He put a
finger
upon their shapes to trace them out. "One
day - .
. blood . . . magic."
"One
day a man of all blood shall umte, in peace,
349
350
Jennifer Roberson
four
warring realms and two magical races," said
the
voice. "And if those few words you mouthed
are all
you know of the Old Tongue, it is well you
come to
me for instruction."
Kellin
did not move. His fingers remained ex-
tended
to touch the runes. Only the tips trembled.
Not
what I expected a Jehan to say to his son as
he sees
him for the first time. It served to fuel his
anger.
Aidan
stood in the chapel doorway. The sunlight
was
full on his face, glinting off the gold freighting
arms
and ear. It struck Kellin as incongruity;
oddly,
he had expected a simple man, not a war-
rior. But
Aidan was that, and more; best Kellin
remember
it.
He
wanted very badly to say all manner of
things,
but he desired more to find just the right
challenge.
Let Aidan lead him, then; he would
await
the proper moment.
"Get
up from there," Aidan said. "I am not the
sort of
man to require homage."
He does
not know me. It shook him; he had ex-
pected
Aidan to know. It altered his intent. "You
gave
that up," Kellin said, forgoing patience.
"Homage."
Aidan
smiled. "That, as well as other unneces-
sary
things." He hesitated- "Well, will you rise?
Or have
you come with broken legs to have them
made
whole again?"
Kellin
wanted to laugh but suppressed the
sound.
He was not certain he could control it.
"No,"
he said only-
"Good.
I am not a god; I do not perform
miracles."
Delicate
contempt- "Surely you can heal. You
are
Cheysuli."
"Oh,
aye—I have recourse to the earth magic.
A
TAPESTRY OF LSONS 351
But you
are too healthy to require it." Aidan ges-
tured.
"Rise."
Kellin
rose. He found no words in his mouth,
only an
awkward, wary patience inhabiting his
spirit.
Aidan's
ruddy brows arched. "Taller than I be-
lieved
. .. are you certain the clan desires to lose
you?"
It was
perplexing. "Why should you believe the
clan
might lose me?"
"Have
you not come for the teaching?" It was
Aidan's
turn to frown. "The clans send to me those
men—and
women—who wish to leam what it is a
shar
tahl must do. I serve the gods by interpreting
and
teaching divine intentions . . ." He shrugged.
"/
make no differentiation between a man who is
physically
more suited to war than to study, but
the
clans often do. I am persuaded they would
labor
most assiduously to talk you out of coming
here."
The glint in his eyes was fleeting. "Surely
the
women would."
It was
disarming, but Kellin would not permit
it to
vanquish his irritation^ He used the reminder
that
his appearance was considered by most, espe-
cially
women, as pleasing to look for himself in
Aidan.
He saw little. Aidan's hair was a rich, deep
auburn,
almost black in dim light, save for the
vivid
white wing over his left ear. His eyes were
what a
Cheysuli would describe as ordinary,
though
their uncompromising yellowness Homa-
nans
yet found unsettling. His flesh was not so
dark as
a clan-bred warrior, but then neither was
Kellin's.
There
we match; in the color of our flesh. But not,
I am
moved to say, in the color of our hearts.
Aidan's
tone was polite- "Have you come to
leam?"
It
nearly moved him to a wild, keening laughter;
352
Jennifer Roberson
what he
wanted to learn had nothing to do with
gods.
In subtle derision, he said, "If you can teach
me."
Aidan
smiled. "I will do what I can, certainly.
It is
up to the gods to make you a shar tahl."
"Is
that—?" Kellin blurted a sharp sound of dis-
belief.
"Is that what you think I want?"
"What
else? It is what I do here: prepare those
who
desire to serve the gods more closely than
others
do."
Kellin
moved around the heel stone. He marked
that
the sun had been in Aidan's eyes; that what
his
father saw of him was little but silhouette, or
the
pale shadow of three dimensions.
He sees
a warrior, somewhat taller than expected,
but
nonetheless kneeling in communion with the
gods.
Well, I will have to see to it he knows me for
what I
am, not what he presupposes. He moved to
the
front of the stone, permitting Aidan to see him
clearly.
Now what do you say?
Aidan's
skin turned a peculiar grayish-white.
His
flesh was a chalk cliff in the sun, showing the
damage
done by rain and damp and age. Even the
lips,
carved of granite, were pale as alabaster.
"Echoes—"
Aidan blurted, "—but Shona. The
kivama—"
He was trembling visibly.
Kellin
had not believed he much resembled his
dead
mother; they said she was fair, and her eyes
brown.
But obviously there was something; Aidan
had
seen it too quickly. Or perhaps only feels it
because
of his kivama.
Contempt
welled up. He wanted badly to hurt
the
man. "She did bear me," he said. "There
should
be something of her in me."
Aidan's
face was peeled to the bone so the shape
of his
skull was visible. The eyes. so calm before,
had
acquired a brittle intensity that mocked his
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS 353
former
self-possession. His mouth was unmoving,
as if
something had sealed it closed.
Is this
what I wanted, all those years? Or do I
want
more yet?
Aidan
drew in a breath, then released it slowly.
He
smiled a sad, weary smile. The chalk cliff of
his face
had lost another layer to the onslaught of
exposure;
in this case, to knowledge. "I knew you
would
hate me. But it was a risk I had to take."
Kellin
wanted to shout. "Was it?" he managed
tightly.
"And was it worth it?" He paused, then
framed
the single word upon years of bitterness.
"Jehan."
In
Aidan's eyes was reflected as many years of
conviction.
"Come inside," he said. "What I have
to say
is best said there."
He did
not want to—he felt to do as asked would
weaken
his position—but Kellin followed. The
chapel
was not large inside, nor did it boast sub-
stantial
illumination; a tight latticework roof
closed
out the sun, Kellin allowed his eyes to ad-
just,
then glanced briefly around the interior. A
rune-carved
alter stood in the center. Set against
the
tilted walls were stone benches. Torch brack-
ets
pegged into seams in the stonework were
empty.
"Where
is your lir7" Aidan asked.
"She
led me here, then disappeared."
"Ah."
Aidan nodded. "Tee! disappeared this
morning
as well, so that all I had were the dogs;
it was
a conspiracy, then, that we should meet
without
benefit of lir."
Kellin
did not care overmuch about what the
lir
conspired to do. He was wholly fixed on the
acknowledgment
that the man who stood before
him had
planted the seed which had grown in
Shona's
belly, only to be torn free on a night filled
394
JeoaSSer Roberson
with
flames. He loved her, they say. Could he not
have
loved her son as well?
Aidan
sat down on one of the benches. Kellin,
pointedly,
remained standing. Bitterly he said,
"Surely
with your kivama—aye, I know about it—
you
must have known I was coming."
Color
had returned to Aidan's face. It was no
longer
stretched so taut, no longer empty of a
tranquillity
that annoyed one who lacked it. "I do
not
question your right to bitterness and hatred,
but
this is not the place for it."
Kellin
barked a harsh laugh. "Is that why you
brought
me in here? To tame my tongue and ren-
der me
less than a man?" He wanted to jeer. "You
forget,
jehan—I have none of your reverence, nor
your
humility. If I choose to honor the gods, I do
it in
my own fashion. And, I might add, with less
elaboration,"
He cast a scornful glance over the
chapel.
"I did not know a man would exchange
the
flesh of his own son for the confines of stone."
Aidan
waited him out. "I would not expect you
to
offer reverence or humility. You are not the
man for
it."
It was
veiled insult, if Kellin chose to take it so.
Another
might acknowledge it as simple statement
of
fact. "Do you believe me too weak to be as you
are?
No, jehan: too strong. I am not a coward. I
do not
turn my face from its proper place to hide
upon an
island with a mouth full of prophecies."
"Indeed,
you are not weak. Nor are you a cow-
ard."
Aidan shrugged. "Nor am I, but I give you
the
freedom to believe as you will—just now, there
is
more. What you are is a confused, angry young
man who
only now confronts his heritage—and
knows
his ultimate fate lies in other hands." He
overrode
the beginnings of Kellin's protest. "You
mentioned
my kivama first—shall we let the gift
guide
me in the examination of your soul?" He
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 355
smiled
without intending offense, reminding qui-
etly
that what he could do was what few others
could.
"You will do as I did when the time has
come:
acknowledge and fully accept what the gods
have
designed for you in the ordering of your life."
"If
you know it, then tell me!" Kellin cried-
"You
claim communion with the gods. Tell me
now and
save me time wasted in discovering it for
myself!"
"And
deny you the chance to grow into the man
the
gods intend you to be?" Aidan smiled. "A war-
rior
cannot circumvent a tahlmorra so easily ...
he is
charged to become what he is meant to be-
come in
the husbandry of his soul. Were I to tell
you
what becomes of you, I might well alter what
is
meant to happen."
"Obscurity,"
Kellin charged. "That is what you
teach
here: how to speak in riddles so no man can
understand."
"A
man learns," Aidan countered, "and then he
understands."
Kellin
laughed. "Tell me," he challenged. "If in-
deed
you can. Prophesy for me. For your only
son."
Aidan
did not move upon the bench. His hands
lay in
his lap. "Do you forget who I am?"
"Who
you are? How could I? You are the man
I have
sought all my life—even when I denied it—
and now
that I have found you I am at last able
to tell
you precisely what I think of you and your
foolish
claims!"
"I
am the mouthpiece of the gods."
Kellin
laughed at him.
And
then his laughter died, for Aidan began to
speak.
"The Lion shall lie with the witch. Out of
darkness
shall come light; out of death: life; out
of the
old: the new."
"Words,"
Kellin began, meaning to defame the
3S6
Jennifer Robersm
man who
said them, to leech them of their power,
but his
challenge died away.
"The
Lion shall lie with the witch, and the wit-
ch-child
born of it shall join with the Lion to swal-
low the
House of Homana and all of her children."
"Jehan!"
Yellow
eyes had turned black. Aidan stared
fixedly
at Kellin, one hand raised to indicate his
son.
"The Lion," he said, "shall devour the House
of
Homana."
"Stop—"
His
voice rose. "Do you think to escape the
Lion?
Do you think to escape your fate?" Lips
peeled
back. "Small, foolish boy—you are nothing
to the
gods. It is the Lion's cub they desire, not
the
Lion himself ... you are the means to an end.
The
Lion shall lie down with the witch."
Kellin
was instantly taken out of himself, swept
back
ten years. To the time of Summerfair, when
he had
put on his second-best tunic to go among
the
crowds and see what he would see, to taste
suhoqla
again and challenge a Steppes warior. To
enter
the tent filled with a sickly, sweetish odor;
to see
again the old man who sat upon his cushion
and
told who he was, and what would be his fate.
"Lion—"
Kellin whispered, staring at his father.
"There
is a lion—after all—"
Aidan
smiled an odd, inhumane smile. "Kellin,"
he said
plainly, "you are the Lion."
Two
"I
am sorry." Aidan's tone was quiet, lacking its
former
power. "But I warned you. It is never a
simple
thing—and rarely pleasant—to learn your
tahlmorra."
Kellin
clung to the heel stone for support. He
did not
precisely recall how he had reached it.
He
remembered, if dimly, stumbling out of the
shadow-clad
chapel into clean sunlight—and then
he had
fallen to his knees, keeping himself upright
only by
virtue of clinging to the heel stone as a
child
to its mother's neck.
He
continued to clutch it. He twisted his head
to ask
over a shoulder. "Do you know what you
said?"
Aidan,
squinting against sunlight, sighed and
nodded.
"Most of it. I can never recall clearly what
I say
when I prophesy, but the intent remains in
my
mind," His eyes were steady, if darkened by
the
acknowledgment of what had occurred. "De-
spite
what you led me to believe with regard to
your
ignorance of your tahlmorra, it is not the first
time
you have heard such words."
"I
was ten." Kellin stood up and relinquished
his
grip on the stone, aware of a cold clamminess
in his
palms. "But I did not know—"
"No,"
Aidan agreed, "a child could not. Nor
many
men. You were not ready. Even now you are
not."
357
358
Jennifer Roherson
Resentment
congealed. "So you did it to prove
something."
Mildly,
Aidan said, "You did ask. In plain and
impolite
words."
Another
time he would have fought back. Just
now
something else struck him as more impor-
tant.
"You said—" He looked warily at the chapel,
as if
it were responsible for putting the thoughts
inside
his head. "You said / am the Lion."
"You
are."
"But
how? I am a man. Not even in lir-sbape
am I a
lion!"
Aidan
nodded. "Where words will not serve,
symbols
often do." He traced the runes inscribed
in the
heel stone. "These are symbols. And so is
the
Lion."
"The
Lion is a throne."
"That,
too, is a symbol." Aidan smiled. "You are
a man
in all the ways in which a man is measured;
fear
nothing there. But you are also the next link
in the
prophecy of the Firstborn. It may somewhat
devalue
my dedication to say this so baldly, but
prophecies
are sometimes little more than colorful
pictures,
like the Ur we paint on pavilions."
It gave
Kellin something, a tiny bit of strength
with
which to reassert his challenge. "Then there
is no
truth to it."
"Of
course there is truth to it. Does the painted
animal
shape mean there is no living Ur?" Aidan
shook
his head. "A prophecy does not lie. At times
circumstances
change, and the fate itself is
changed;
they gave us free will, the gods. The ulti-
mate
result may be altered, but what served as
catalyst
was never a falsehood. It is not graven in
stone."
He tapped fingertips against the heel
stone.
"This will remain here forever—for as long
as the
world has—to speak of the prophecy and
all it
entails. Eighteen words." His smile was not
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 359
condescending,
but unadorned serenity; he was
certain
of his place within the prophecy. "Eigh-
teen
simple words that have ruled our lives since
before
we were even conceived."
Kellin
looked at the runes. " 'One day—' " But
he
broke off reflexive quoting. There was another
matter
he considered more important. "How can
I be
the Lion?"
"You
are. No more than that. You are the Lion
.. .
just as I was the broken link."
Kellin
wanted to deny it all, to accuse the shar
tahl
who was also his father that purposeful obscu-
rity
offered no one an answer. But what came out
of his
mouth was a simple truth: "I do not
understand."
"That
is one of my purposes here: to explain
things
more fully."
Bitterness
reasserted itself. "To other men
whose
lives have been twisted by their
tahlmorras?"
"Come
with me."
It provoked.
"Where? To that palace? I have
seen
it. You do not live there."
"To
my pavilion." The smile, now lacking the
unearthly
quality of prophecy, was freely offered
again
with nothing more in its shaping than hospi-
tality.
"I am Cheysuli, Kellin. Never forget that."
Aidan's
pavilion clustered with others in a
smaller
version of Clankeep. It was pale green
with
ravens adorning its sides; on the ridgepole
sat the
model.
Sima,
sprawled on a rug before the doorflap,
blinked
sleepily in the sun. You found him.
Kellin
scowled. As you meant me to. That is why
you
left me.
She was
unrepentent. Teel and I thought it best.
I do
not appreciate such secrecy in my own lir.
360
Jennifer Roberson
Nor
does your jehan. She twitched her tail. Even
now he
chastises Ted.
He
deserves it. So do you. He did not stoop to pat
the cat
but went on by her and into the pavilion as
his
father pulled back the flap.
Aidan
seated himself on a brown bear pelt and
gestured
for Kellin to make himself comfortable.
"We
built the Keep here because I saw no sense
in
inhabiting a palace. We are Cheysuli. We are
here to
rebuild what we can of the old religion,
while
imbuing it with new." He smiled. "I am
somewhat
controversial with regard to my beliefs;
some
elders name me a fool."
Kellin
said nothing. He had come for none of
this.
"This
is a place of history and magic," Aidan
continued,
"and we treat it as such. Palaces have
no
place here."
He
disputed at once. "I thought the Cheysuli
built
it. There are runes in the pillars. Old Tongue
runes,
like those on the heel stone." It was proof;
it was
enough; it trapped his traitorous father.
"Runes
can be carved later, as those on the heel
stone
were."
Kellin
exhaled patience. He was wrung dry of
it.
"So, it is a Homanan palace after all. Should
that
matter? The Homanans are our people, too."
Aidan
smiled. "If that was a test, then assuredly
you
have passed it."
In
succinct Homanan, Kellin swore. "I did not
come
for this!"
"No."
Aidan rested his hands on his knees. "Ask
what
you will, Kellin."
Kellin
did not hesitate. The question had been
formed
nearly twenty years before. He had
mouthed
it every night, practicing in his bed, se-
cure in
his draperies as a child in its mother's
womb.
Now he could ask it in the open, in the
A
TAPESTRY OF LtWS 361
light,
of the man who knew the answer- "Why did
you
give me up?"
Aidan
did not hesitate. "It was an infinitely
Cheysuli
reason, and one you will undoubtedly
contest,
though you should know better; you, too,
are
Cheysuli."
Kellin
inhaled angrily on a hissing breath.
"Tahlmorra.
That is your answer."
"The
gods required me to renounce my title,
rank,
and inheritance. I was the broken link. The
chain
could only be mended—and therefore made
much
stronger—if I gave precedence to the next
link.
Its name was Kellin." Aidan's eyes did not
waver.
His tone did not break. His demeanor was
relaxed.
All of his self-possession was very much
in
opposition to the words he spoke. "It was the
hardest
thing I have ever done."
Through
his teeth, Kellin said, "Yet you did it
easily
enough."
The
first crack in Aidan's facade appeared. "Not
without
regret. Not without pain. When I set you
into my
jehana's arms—" Aidan broke it off, as if
afraid
to give up too much of himself after all. His
tone
was husky. "You were Shona's child. You
were
all I had of her. But I was, in that moment,
a child
of the gods—"
"It
is a simple thing to blame gods."
Aidan's
lips parted. "It was done for Homana."
"Homana!
Homana, no doubt, would have been
better
off with a contented prince instead of one
who
lacked a Jehan. Do you know what my life has
been?"
"Now,
aye—the kivama has told me."
"And
what does it mean? Nothing? That I spent
my
childhood believing myself unworthy, and my
adulthood
cognizant that / mean nothing at all,
save I
can sire a son?" Kellin's fists trembled
against
his thighs. "Use your famous kivama and
362
Jennifer Robersw
see
what you did by renouncing a son in favor of
the
gods."
"Kellin."
The chalk cliff sloughed another layer;
soon it
would be bare, and the true man uncov-
ered.
"I never intended for you to suffer so. I knew
it
would be hard, but it had to be done . . - and
you are
not, above all things, a malleable man.
You
choose your own path—have always chosen
your
path—no matter the odds."
"I
was a child—"
"So
was I!" Aidan cried. "I had dreams, Kellin—
nightmares.
To me, the Lion was a vastly frighten-
ing
thing." With effort, he let it go. He smiled
sadly,
no longer hiding his truths. "Do you know
what it
is like for a Jehan to at last acknowledge
that
the thing which frightens him most is his own
son?"
Kellin
was nearly incoherent with outrage. "Is
this
your excuse for giving me up? That you are
afraid—"
"It
was necessary. There was a purpose in it for
me—and
one, I believe, for you."
Kellin
jeered. "Facile words, jehan."
"True
words, Kellin."
"Why
would you be afraid of me? I am your
son."
"You
are the Lion. You are meant to lie down
with
the witch. You are meant to sire the First-
born."
Aidan's eyes did not waver. "It is one thing
to
serve the gods, Kellin, knowing what you work
toward—it
is entirely another to realize that what
you do
matters in the ordering of the world." His
smile
was without humor. "Men who honor no
gods,
who fail to serve the gods, cannot under-
stand
the enormity of the truth: that the seed of a
single
man's loins can alter forever the shape of a
world."
Kellin
was furious. "You will not blame me for
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 363
this!
You will not for one moment lay this at my
door-flap!
Do you think I am a fool? Do you think
me so
ignorant as to be led by facile words? By
the
gods, jehan—by any fool's gods—I will not be
turned
aside by your faith, by your admirable de-
votion,
by the mouthings of a madman when I
want to
know the answer to a single, simple
question!"
"And
I have told you why!" Kellin had at last
shattered
Aidan's composure. It loosed the final
layer
of cliff and laid bare the underside of the
man,
not the shar tahl; the once-born Prince of
Homana
who had bequeathed it all to his infant
son.
"My tahlmorra. You should understand a little
of
that, now that you know what yours is."
"Jehan—"
"Would
you have me hold you by the hand and
lead
you through it? Are you so blind—or so
selfish—that
you cannot permit yourself to see an-
other
man's pain?"
Kellin
expelled a curse framed upon the Old
Tongue.
"What manner of pain could lead a man
to
renounce his son?"
"The
pain in knowing that if he did not, an en-
tire
race might be destroyed."
"Jehan—"
"The
throne was never meant for me. Here is
where I
was bound. The link—my link—was shat-
tered
in Valgaard; do you understand what I
mean? I
was broken, Kellin ... / was .. . my link—
a
symbol—was destroyed. Yours was left whole.
Whole,
Kellin—to be joined with the rest of the
chain
when Brennan is dead, and a new king as-
cends.
Do you see? I was in the way. I was unnec-
essary,
The gods required a prophet, not another
rump
upon the throne ... someone to proclaim
the
coming of the Firstborn. Someone to prepare
the
way."
364
Jennifer Roberson
"Jehan—"
"You
are the Lion. You are meant to devour the
House
of Homana."
Kellin's
face spasmed. "You say first I am the
Lion,
and then I am a link in a chain . -." He
shook
his head in emphatic denial. "I understand t
none of
it!"
Aidan's
voice was hoarse. "We are all but links.
Mine
was shattered. Its destruction sundered the
chain.
Even now it lies in Valgaard, in Lochiel's i
keeping."
1,
"A
real chain?"
"A
real chain."
"Broken."
"I
broke it. I broke me to strengthen you."
Kellin
bared his teeth. "What good does it do, .'
then,
if Lochiel holds it?" ij»
"Someone
must get it back."
H
"From
Lochiel?" H
"Someone
must take the two halves and make
^
them
one again." J
Kellin
understood. He sprang to his feet. "By ^
the
eods—not /! I will not be used in a personal f,
* i n SB
revenge
that concerns only you.
j|
Aidan's
eyes were infinitely yellow. "Lochiel ^
killed
your jehana." ^
Kellin
recognized the battle and struck back at
once,
using all his weapons, "I never knew her.
What
does it matter?"
"He
cut you from her body as he burned down all <
ofClankeep."
It hurt
desperately. He had blamed himself so
long
for his mother's death. "No—"
"He
wanted the seed," Aidan said. "He wanted
to
raise you as his own, to turn you against your
House
... to defang the Lion utterly before it
reached
maturity."
Kellin
fastened on a thing, a small, cruel thing,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 365
because
he needed to, to salvage his anger, to
shore
up his bitterness. They were things he knew.
"Where
were you," he asked viciously, "while Lo-
chiel
the Ihlini cut open my mother's belly?"
Aidan's
eyes mirrored Kellin's desperation.
"Where
do you think I got this?" A trembling hand
touched
the white wing in his hair. "A sword. It
broke
open my skull and spilled out all the wits,
all the
words, all the things that make a man ...
and
turned me into someone no one, not even I,
can
truly understand." His face was wasted. "Do
you
think, in all your hatred, when you lie awake
at
night cursing the man who left you, that any
man,
any father, would ask the gods to give him
such a
fate?"
Kellin
was shaking. He could not stop himself.
"I
want—I want ..." He wet dry lips. "I want to
be free
of the beast."
"Then
kill it," Aidan said,
"How?"
"Go
to Valgaard. Rejoin two halves of a whole."
"And
that will make me whole?" Kellin's wild
laugh
tore his throat. "Expiation for your weak-
ness
does nothing to destroy my own!"
"Go
to Valgaard."
Kellin
bared his teeth. "You have not seen what
I have
become!"
"Nor
has Lochiel." Aidan rose and opened the
doorflap.
"Perhaps the beast in you is a weapon
for us
all."
"/
killed a friend'" Kellin cried. "Do you say it
was
necessary, that the gods required this to fash-
ion a
weapon?"
The
chalk cliff shapechanged itself to granite.
"The
gods required me to give up my son- Now
that
son provides a way for us to destroy an Ihlini
who
would, given the chance, bring down all of
us. He
would smash the Lion to bits, then feed it
3W
Jennifer Roberson
chip by
chip into the Gate of Asar-Suti." Aldan's
tone
was unflinching. His eyes condemned the
weakness
that would permit a man to refuse.
"Make
the sacrifice worth it. Make the death of
your
friend count for something—as Shona's death
did."
Kellin's
throat hurt. "This is not what I came
for."
"It
is," Aidan said. "Have I not said I am the
mouthpiece
of the gods?"
Kellin
gestured helplessness. "All I ever
wanted—all
I ever wanted—was some word, some
indication
you cared, that you knew I existed . ..
but you
gave me nothing. Nothing at all."
Silence
lay heavy between them. Then the faint-
est of
sounds, so subtle that in another time, in
another
moment, no one would have marked it. It
was the
soft sibilance of a man's hand crumpling
fabric.
Tears
stood in Aidan's eyes as he clung to the
doorflap.
"What I gave you—what I gave you was
what I
believed you had to have." His mouth
worked
briefly, "Do you think I did not know what
it
would cost you?"
"But
you never came."
Aidan's
laugh was a travesty. "Had I come, I
would
have taken you back. Had I sent word, I
would
have told you to come. For the sake of your
son,
Kellin, I had to give up my own."
"For
my son!"
"Cynric,"
Aidan whispered, and the blackness in
his
eyes ate away the yellow. "The sword and the
bow and
the knife—"
"No!"
Kellin shouted. "What of me? What of
me? /
am your son, not he! What about me?"
Aidan's
eyes were empty of all save prophecy.
"You
are the Lion, and you shall lie down with
the
witch."
A
TAPCSTSY w LKMS 367
"Jehan—"
he said brokenly. "Is this what they
have
done, your beloved gods? Made you over into
this?"
"The
Lion shall devour the lands."
For the
first time in his life, Kellin put his hands
on his
father.
For the
second time in Aidan's life, he put arms
around
his son. "Do not be ashamed," he said.
"There
is no shame in tears."
Muffled,
Kellin said, "I am—a warrior."
"So
am I," Aidan agreed."But the gods gave us
tears
nonetheless."
Three
They
stood upon the dock, facing toward the city
of
Hondarth sprawled indistinct on the distant
shore:
the former Prince of Homana, who might
have
been Mujhar, and the present prince, his son,
who one
day would be.
The
sea-salt breeze blew into their faces, ruffling
hair,
tickling eyelashes, softly caressing mouths.
Behind
him, silent wolfhounds gathered at the
border
between wooden dock and paler sand,
waiting
for their master. Perched in a nearby tree
sat the
raven called Teel, while the lovely moun-
tain
cat, blue-black in the light of the sun, waited
mutely
beside her warrior.
Kellin
slanted a pensive, sidelong glance at his
father.
They did not, he had decided, much resem-
ble one
another. The son of Shona and Aidan ap-
peared
to be a mixture of everyone in his ancestry—
which
was, he felt, a stew of hybrid spices—save
that
the cat at his side and the gold on his flesh
marked
him as something more distinct than
merely
human.
He does
not look so old as I thought yesterday.
Kellin
stripped a wayward lock of hair from an
eye,
blinking away the sting. Yet if one looks at
the
eyes, he seems older than anyone else. "So—you
expect
me to go." He snapped his fingers. "Just
like
that."
Aidan's
smile was faint, with a hint of irony in it.
368
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
369
"It
would be folly indeed to expect quite so much
acquiescence
... surely you still have questions."
"A
multitude. This one, to begin: how can you
say I
am the Lion who is meant to lie down with
the
witch? What witch? Who is it? How can it be
done?"
Kellin gestured incomprehension. "Even
now my
grandsire discusses a marriage between
me and
Dulcie—and I sincerely doubt Dulcie is
this
witch."
Aidan's
smile was unabated, as was the irony.
"Marriages,
no matter how well planned, do not
always
occur."
It
provoked Kellin to retort sharply. "As one
nearly
did not occur between Aileen of Erinn and
the
Prince of Homana?"
Aidan
laughed, unoffended. "Old history. They
are
well content, now; and that marriage did
occur."
"What
of mine?"
"Oh,
I believe you will indeed be married."
Aidan
nodded. "One day.",
It
seemed important to know. "To this witch?"
Aidan's
tone was deliberate, akin to Rogan's
when
the tutor labored to instruct an easily dis-
tracted
student. "What precisely have I said, when
I
prophesy?"
"That
the Lion will lie with the witch." Kellin
sighed.
"I have heard it more than once."
"Lying
down with a 'witch' does not necessarily
mean
you will marry her."
"Ah."
Black brows sprang upward. "Then you
advocate
infidelity."
Aidan
showed his teeth in a challenging grin
that
Kellin saw, in surprise, was very like his own.
"I
advocate merely that you do what must be
done.
How it is done is up to you."
"To
sleep with an Ihlini . . ." Kellin hitched his
shoulders
because the flesh between them prick-
Jennifer
Roberaon
370
led;
the idea was unattractive. "That is what she
is,
this witch, is she not? An Ihlini?"
"It
has been done before."
"Oh,
aye—grandsire did. lan did. I know the
stories."
"Do
you?" Aidan's brows slanted upward in
subtle
query. The wing of white hair, against deep
russet,
was blinding in the sunlight. "Do you also
know
that / slept with one?"
"You!"
It was entirely unexpected from a man
who was
shar tahl. "They say you bedded no one
after
my jehana died."
"I
did not. I cannot. Surely they told you the
cost of
kivama, when the partner dies. It is much
like a
lirless warrior, save the body does not die.
Only
the portion of it that might, given opportu-
nity,
given the wherewithal, sire another child."
"But—I
am the only one."
"And
will ever be." Aidan looked at him. "In
Atvia,
before I married Shona, I bedded an Ihlini
woman.
And the second time, I knew it."
"Willingly?"
"With
Lillith?" Aidan sighed. "To excuse myself,
to
justify my action, I might prefer to say that
even
that first time she ensorcelled me ... but it
would
be a lie. What I did. I did because I desired
it;
because I could not, in my maleness, deny my-
self
the gratification found in a woman's body, de-
spite
whom she might be."
"Lillith
. .." Kellin tasted the name and found
it
oddly seductive. "It was she who lay with lan
and
bore him a child."
"Rhiannon,
who later lay with my fehan and
bore
him a child. Melusine is her name."
"You
know it?"
"She
is the woman who sleeps with Lochiel. She
bore
him a child ... while she herself, Melusine,
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 371
was
born of Cheysuli blood as well as Ihlini—yet
chooses
to serve Asar-Suti."
It
seemed surpassing odd, "How do you know
all
this?"
"Lochiel
sees to it I know. Lochiel and I—" Ai-
dan's
taut, angled smile was strangely shaped, "—
have
long been adversaries on more battlefields
than
the obvious ones- He sends me messages."
"Lochiel?"
Kellin found it incomprehensible.
"Why?"
"To
make certain I know." Wind ruffled the
white
wing against Aidan's temple. "Her name is
Melusine,
and she bore him a daughter. It was
that
daughter with whom you shared a cradle."
Kellin
grunted. "I know something of that."
"Do
you?" Aidan's gaze was steady. "Shall I tell
you the
whole of it, then, so you may have another
thing
for which to hate me?"
"What?
More?" It might have stung once; it
might
have been a weapon Kellin took pride in
wielding,
but no longer. Much remained between
them,
but some of the pain "was assuaged. "Then
tell
me, and I will decide if I should rekindle my
hatred."
Aidan
looked directly at him- "I bargained for
you. It
was little more, to him, than a simple
trade.
I was to choose—" He rubbed briefly at his
forehead
as if it ached, then glanced away toward
distant
Hondarth. "There were two babies, as you
know:
you, and Lochiel's daughter. I had no way
of
telling which was which. You were both of you
swaddled,
and asleep; it is somewhat difficult to tell
one
infant from another, in such circumstances."
"Aye.
How did you?"
"I
did not."
"But—you
chose me."
"I
left Valgaard with a child in my arms. I did
not
know which one it was." Aidan sighed. "Not
372
Jennifer Roberson
until I
unwrapped you and saw you were male.
Then I
knew, and only then, that my choice had
been
correct."
"But—if
you had chosen the girl ..." Kellin let
it go.
The repercussions he saw were too complex
to
consider.
"If
I had, you would have been reared as Lo-
chiel's
son."
And the
girl as a princess within the bosom of
Homana'MuJhar,
where she might have worked
against
us. The flesh rose on Kellin's bones. He
rubbed
at his arms viciously, disliking the weak-
ness
that made his fear so plain. "So." It seemed
enough.
"So."
Aidan nodded. "You know the whole of
it."
Kellin
stared fixedly across the lapping water.
He
could not look at his father. He had spent too
long
hating from a distance to give way easily, to
admit
to circumstances that might persuade a
man to
act in such a way as to ignore his son.
"You
risked a great deal."
"It
was my only choice. It was Homana's only
chance."
Kellin
frowned fiercely. "You said—the Lion
will
devour the House. Is that not the same fate
Lochiel
aspires to give us?"
"There
is a difference between swallowing the
lands,
and destroying them. Words, Kellin—sym-
bols.
Intent is divulged with words. Think of the
prophecy."
"Eighteen
words, again?"
"
'—shall unite, in peace—' " Aidan said. "Well?"
Kellin
sighed, nodding. "Then to unite the lands,
I must
swallow them. Swallowing, one might
argue,
is a form of uniting."
Aidan
smiled, "Vivid imagery. It helps a man to
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
373
remember."
He looked at the waiting boat. "We
all
make choices. You shall make yours."
Kellin
saw his father form the eloquent Cheysuli
gesture
he had detested so long. He matched it
easily
with his own hand. "Tahlmorra."
Aidan's
answering smile was serene. "You have
run
from it long enough,"
"So,
now you send me to it. To Lochiel and Val-
gaard—and
to the witch?"
"That,"
Aidan said, "is for the gods to know."
Kellin
sighed disgust. "I have not had much
congress
with gods. They are, I am convinced, ca-
pricious,
petty beings."
"They
may indeed be so, as well as other things
perhaps
not so reprehensible." Aidan was unof-
fended.
"The example for all manner of behavior
lies
before you; we all of us are their children."
"Even
the Ihlini?"
"Stubborn,
resentful children, too spoiled in
their
power. It is time they recalled who gave it
to them."
Kellin
chewed his lip. "Why am I to bring you
this
chain? What are you to do with it?"
"Tame
the Lion."
"Tame
me!" He paused- "Tame me?"
"Who
shall, in his turn, swallow the Houses—
unite
them, Kellin!—and bring peace to warring
realms."
He
clamped his teeth together. "All because of
a
chain. Which you broke. And left, like a fool, in
ValgaardV
"Aye,"
Aidan admitted. "But then I have never
suggested
I am anything else."
"
'Mouthpiece of the gods,' " Kellin muttered.
"You
claim yourself that."
"And
so I am. But the gods made all men, and
there
are foolish ones," He smiled. "Bring me back
the
chain, and the beast shall be tamed."
374
Jennifer Roberson
"A
quest," Kellin gritted.
"The
gods do appear to enjoy them. It passes
the
time."
Kellin
shook his head. There was much he
wanted
to say, but too little time in which to say
it. He
had been given his release; time he took it,
and
went.
"Shansu,"
Aidan said. "Ckeysuli i'halla shansu."
Kellin's
tone was ironic. "If there is any such
thing
in Valgaard." He paused. "You said you
would
not go to Homana-Mujhar because you
feared
you would bring me back."
"Aye."
"I
am here now. That risk is gone." He hesi-
tated.
"Will you go home now?"
The
wind teased auburn hair. "This is my
home,"
"Then—to
visit. To be hosted by the Mujhar and
his
queen." It was hard to force the words past
the
lump in his throat. "She wants nothing more,
jehan.
Nor does he. Can you give them that now?"
Aidan's
soft laugh was hoarse. "You believe me
so much
a monster as that . . -" He sighed. "There
is
still much to be done here."
"But—"
"But
one day I will return to Homana-Mujhar."
Kellin
smiled faintly. "Is that prophecy?"
"No.
That is a jehan who is also a son, and who
would
like to see his parents."
Kellin
sighed. There yet remained one more
thing.
He
looked away to the distant shore, then
turned
back and stared hard at Aidan as Sima
leapt
into the boat. "Fathers desert their chil-
dren."
He used Homanan purposely; he did not in
this
moment intend to discuss his own sire, but
those
of other children.
The
wind stripped auburn hair back from Ai-
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 375
dan's
face. It bared, beneath the skin, the architec-
ture of
bone that was ineffably Cheysuli, if housed
in
paler flesh. "Aye."
"Other
fathers . ., Homanan, Ellasian, Solin-
dish—they
must do it all over the world—" / did
it
myself. I banished three to Clankeep. "—Is there
ever a
reason?"
"Many
reasons."
It was
not the proper answer. Kellin reshaped
the
question. "Is there ever justification?"
"Only
that which resides in a man's soul,"
Aidan
answered. "To the child, bereft of a father,
bereft
of the kivama that might explain the feel-
ings
that caused the father to leave, there is noth-
ing
save an emptiness and a longing that lasts
forever."
"Even
if—" Kellin hesitated. "Even after the fa-
ther is
dead?"
"Then
it is worse. A deserted child dreams of
things
being put to rights, of all the missing pieces
being
found and rejoined. A deserted child whose
dreams
die with the father's'death knows only a
quiet
desperation, a permanent incompleteness;
that
the dream, even born in hatred, pain, and
bitterness,
can now never come true."
Kellin
swallowed with difficulty. Unevenly he
said,
"A hard truth, jehan."
"And
the only one there is."
Four
Kellin
bought a horse in Hondarth, rode it across
the
city, then traded it for another at a second
livery.
The second mount, a plain brown gelding
disinclined
to shake his entire body with violent
dedication
every four steps, proved considerably
more
comfortable. The ride commenced likewise.
It
crossed his mind once, as he and Sima neared
the
turning to Mujhara, that he could go home.
What
would the Mujhar do, send him away again?
But the
order had been for him to remain with his
father
until Aidan saw fit to send him home; Kel-
lin
could, he thought, argue that it was done.
Except
he knew better. It most decidedly was
not
done, it being the ludicrous quest to fetch out
of
Valgaard two halves of a chain his father had
broken,
then foolishly left behind.
He
might have kept it for himself and saved me
the
trouble.
Sima
flanked his horse. Aye. Then we would be
where
we were three weeks ago: banished to the is-
land.
She paused. Where there are dogs.
Kellin
laughed aloud. "Fastidious, are we? Dis-
inclined
to consort with dogs?" He grinned at his
horse's
ears; he knew the cat sensed his amuse-
^
ment
within the link. "They are good dogs, Sima,
regardless
of your tastes. They do not bark like
terriers,
snatching at ankles if you move . .. nor
376
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 377
do they
bell like hounds on the morning you most
desire
to sleep."
No, she
admitted. But I am quieter even than
those
Erinnish beasts.
"Usually,"
he said. "Your purring, beside my
ear, is
enough to shatter my skull."
You
told me once it helps you to go to sleep.
"If
I cannot sleep, aye; there is something sooth-
ing
about it. But when you sprawl down next to
me and
take up with rumbling when I am already
asleep
..." He let her fill in the rest. You are not
a
housecat, lir. You are considerably larger in many
aspects,
most markedly in your noise—and in the
kneading
of your claws.
Sima
forbore to answer.
It grew
cold as they drew closer to the Bluetooth
River.
Kellin was grateful he had thought to buy
a
heavier cloak in Hondarth; he wished now it was
fur-lined.
But it was nearly summer, and people
in the
lowlands did not think of such things when
the sun
shone so brightly.
He
shivered. If I were home in Homana-Mujhar,
or
within a woman's arms— Kellin sighed. That is
my
favorite warmth.
I
thought I was.
He
grinned. There are certain kinds of warmth not
even a
lir may provide.
Then I
must assume you would prefer a roadhouse
woman
and her bed to the cold ground tonight.
He
straightened in the saddle. Is there one?
One? Or
both?
Either.
A woman without the roadhouse would
prove
warm enough, as would a roadhouse without
a
woman. But a woman in a roadhouse would be
the
best of all.
Then
you may rest well tonight. There is one
around
the curve of the road.
Jennifer
Roberson
378
So
there was. Content, Kellin rode up to the sta-
ble and
dropped off his horse with a sigh of relief.
There
was no boy to do the work for him, so he
led the
horse inside the daub-and-wattle building,
stripped
his mount of tack, then rubbed him down
and put
him into an empty stall with hay and a
measure
of grain. He left saddle and bridle be-
neath
drying blankets, then went out into the twi-
light
to look for Sima.
She
waited beneath a tree, melding into dusk.
Kellin
dropped to one knee and butted his brow
against
hers. Tomorrow we go on.
She
butted back. Do we?
You saw
the cairn at the. turning. It is but three
leagues
to the ferry. We will cross first thing .. . by
sundown
tomorrow, we will be in Solinde.
Sima
twisted her head and slid it along his jaw,
so that
a tooth scraped briefly. And by sundown
the day
after that, Valgaard?
His
belly tightened. / would sooner avoid it—but
aye, so
we will.
Sima
butted his cheek, tickling his left eye with
the
tuft of an ear. He buried his face in the silk of
her
fur, then climbed back to his feet. Keep yourself
to the
trees.
Keep
yourself to one wine.
Kellin
grinned. But not to one woman? So much
faith
in me, lir!
No,
Sima answered. There is only one woman.
Kellin
did not care. One would be sufficient.
The
common room was small but well-lighted,
and the
rushes were clean. Prosperous place ...
Kellin
glanced around. As well it should be, so
close
to the ferry crossing and the North Road
out of
Ellas, frequently traveled by merchants. He
made
arrangements for a room, moved to a table
A
TAPESTRV OF LIONS
379
nearer
the kegs than the front door, and looked for
the
girl.
It did
not take long to find her, nor for her to
find
him. Even as he hooked out the stool from
beneath
the small table, she was at his side. Deft
hands
unpinned his cloak, then stripped it from
his
shoulders.
The
girl froze. Black eyes were avid as she saw
the
gold on his arms; a glance quickly flicked at
his
left ear assured her that her assessment was
correct.
She
smiled, black eyes shining bronze in the
light
as ft'r-gold glinted. She was young and pretty
in a
wild, black-eyed way, bold in manners and
glances.
Content with the weight of his wealth, she
eyed
the fit of his leggings.
She was
quite striking, though in time her looks
would
coarsen. For now, she would do. Better than
most.
Kellin smiled back. It was an agreement
they
reached easily without speaking a word;
when he
tossed the silver.coin down on the table
to pay
for his food and drink, she caught it before
it
bounced. Indeed, she will do—much better than
expected.
"Pleasure,
my lord?"
He
grinned briefly. It was a two-part question,
as she
well knew when she asked it. "For now,
usca.
If you have it."
"We
hae it." White teeth flashed as the coin dis-
appeared
into a pocket in her voluminous woolen
skirt.
She wore a faded crimson blouse and a yel-
low
tabard-smock over it, but both were slashed
low to
show off small, high breasts. She had
pinned
her thick black hair at the back of her neck
in a
bundled mass, but locks had come loose and
straggled
down her back. Finer strands curled
against
the pallor of her slender neck.
380
Jennifer Robersoa
Kellin
found the disarray, and the neck, infi-
nitely
appealing. "And what else?" he asked.
She
showed her teeth again. "Lamb."
"Lamb
will do." He let her see his assessment
of her;
she would mark it flattery, in the glint of
green
eyes. "What do they call you?"
"They
call me whate'er they like," she said
frankly.
"So may you. But my name be Kirsty."
"Kirsty."
He liked it. "Mine is Kellin."
She
measured him avidly. "You're a shape-
changer,
are ye no', wi' all that gold ... ?" She
nodded
before he had a chance to answer. "I ne'er
seen a
shapechanger w'out the yellow eyes."
He
found her northern speech as appealing as
her
slender neck with its weight of hair. He gave
her the
benefit of a slow, inviting smile he had
found
years before to be most effective. "Do I
frighten
you?"
Arched
black brows shot up. "You?" Kirsty
laughed.
"I've been all my life a wine-girl . ..
'tisn't
much a man hoe to frighten me!" She
paused
consideringly. "Do ye mean to, then?"
Her
hand rested against the table. He put out
his own
and gently touched the flesh that lacked
the
smooth silken feel of the court women he had
known
before turning to the Midden; he found her
hand
familiar in its toughened competence, and
therefore
all the more attractive. "No," he said
softly.
"I would never mean to hurt you."
Kirsty
promised much with eyes that bespoke
experience
without prevarication. "I'll bring your
lamb,
then, and the usca ... but I'm working,
now. I
canna gie ye my company till later."
He
turned his hand against hers so she could
see the
bloody glow of the ring on his forefinger.
It was
unlikely a north country girl would recog-
nize
the crest, but she would know its value well
enough.
A
TAPESTRY OF LlO\S 381
Black
brows rose again. "You'd nae gie me that
for a
night, nor a week of nights!"
"Not
this, perhaps—" he could not; it signified
his
rank, "—but certainly this." He touched the
torque
at his neck.
Her
eyed widened. " Tis too much'. For a wine-
girl?
Hae ye no more coin?"
"I
'hae' coin." He mimicked her accent. "But
you hae
a pretty neck."
She
assessed the torque again. "A man's, no' a
woman's
... t'would lie low—here—" She touched
her
collar bone, then drew her fingers more slowly
to the
cleft of her high breasts and smiled to see
his
eyes.
He
understood the game, "Do you not want it,
then?"
For
her, the game was ended. Dreams filled her
eyes as
the breath rushed out of her mouth. "Wi*
that I
could go to Mujhara! Am I a fool? Nae, I'd
take
it. But what d'ye want for it?"
"Your
company. Now."
"Bu'
. .." She glanced around. "Tam'd turn me
out,
did I no' tend the others."
"I
will pay Tarn, too."
A
smooth brow knitted. "Hae it been so long,
then,
that ye're that hungry?"
"Hungry,"
he answered, "for all the things that
satisfy
a man." He clasped her fingers briefly, then
released
her hand. "Food and drink first. Come
when
you can."
Her
eyes were on the torque. "Promises made
are no'
kept, sometimes. D'ye think I'm a fool,
then?"
For
answer Keilin rose and stripped the torque
from
his neck. He hooked it around her own, then
settled
its weight low, on delicate collar bones. Its
patina
glowed richly against the pallor of her skin.
Her
fingertips touched it. "Oh . .."
Jennifer
Roberson
382
Kellin
grinned. "But you will earn it, my lass,
with
me."
Kirsty
laughed aloud, then bent close to him.
"Nae,
I think not—'tis a gift\ I'd hae done you for
naught
at all."
"For
naught!"
"Aye!"
Her laugh was throaty. "I've no' seen a
man
like you in all o' my days!"
Chagrined,
he clapped a hand to her rump and
found
it firm and round. "Lamb and usca, then,
before
I die of hunger."
"Won't
be hunger you die of!" She swung and
was
gone before he could retort-
Kellin
ate lamb, drank usca, and laid a few wa-
gers on
the fall of the dice in a friendly game at
another
table. He was marked as Cheysuli, but no
one
appeared to resent it. Eyes followed the glint
of gold
when he moved in the lamplight, but the
greed
was friendly and lacking in covetous intent.
Kirsty
appeared at last and ran deft fingers
down
his arm. Then she touched the buckle of his
belt
and tugged. "I'm done," she said. "Are you?"
"That
depends," he gathered up his modest win-
nings,
"on which game you refer to. With this one,
aye;
most certainly I am done. The other is not
yet
begun—" he grinned, "—and like to last all
night."
She
laughed softly. "Then coom prove it to me."
He rose
and hooked a finger through the torque.
He
lifted it; then, using it, he pulled her closer.
very
close, so his breath warmed her face. "What
more
proof of my intent is necessary?"
Her
hand was skilled as she slid it between his
legs.
"There's proof—and there's proof."
Kellin
laughed quietly. "Shansu, meijhana—or
would
you prefer an audience?"
A TAPKSTHY
OF LHMS 383
"Those
words," she said, brows lifting. "What
are
those words?"
He said
it into her ear. "I will explain them
elsewhere."
Kirsty
laughed and hooked an arm around his
waist
as his settled across her shoulders. "This
way, my
beastie—"
"No."
He halted her instantly, humor dissipat-
ing.
"Do not refer to me so."
"
Twas just ..." Her defense died. She nodded.
Kellin
pulled her close, sorry he had broken the
mood.
"You know better where my room is."
Kirsty
took him there.
He
awakened hours later, aware of usca sour-
ness in
his mouth and a certain stiffiness in his
shoulders.
Kirsty had proven her mettle, and had
certainly
drained him of his.
The
room was dark. It took Kellin a moment to
adjust
his eyes. The stub of a candle had long since
melted
down, so that the only illumination was
from
the seam of moonRght between ill-fitted
shutters.
It lent just enough light to see the pallor
of
Kirsty s shoulder, jutting roofward. Raven hair
and
blankets obscured the rest of her.
/ like
black hair—and such white, white skin. She
was
curled against him like a cat, rump set
against
his left hip. Would she purr, like Sima?
But his
mind drifted in search of an answer to
an
unknown question. He wondered what had
wakened
him. Usually he slept the night through,
unless
he dreamed of the Lion; but it had been
weeks
since the last nightmare, and he believed Kir-
sty had
effectively banished the beast for the night.
He lay
in perfect silence, listening to her breathing.
Lir,
Sima said, has the girl stolen your senses
along
with other things? I have called for you three
times.
Jennifer
Robersoa
Ah.
Kellin sighed and rubbed at his eyes. What
is it?
If you
wish to ride to Valgaard. you had better
leave
your bed.
Why? Do
you want to leave now? It was ludi-
crous.
/ said we would go in the morning.
Your
horse is leaving. Sima sounded smug.
My
horse— He understood at once.
Kellin
sat up, swearing, and tossed the covers
aside.
Kirsty mumbled a protest and dragged the
blankets
back. His clothing lay in a tangled heap
on the
floor, and no doubt the leather was cold.
Kellin
swore again and reached for leggings.
Kirsty
turned as he buckled his belt. "Where
d'ye
go?"
"To
rescue my horse." He meant to take his
cloak,
but Kirsty had pulled it up around her
shoulders.
She
stared at him. "How d'ye know it wants
rescuing?"
"My
lir told me." He bent to pull on his boots.
"Yer
beast?"
"Not
a beast. She is a mountain cat." He
grinned
briefly, tossing her the bone. "Her fur is
as
black and lovely as your hair."
Kirsty
hunched up beneath blankets and cloak,
unsure
of the compliment. "Will ye coom back?"
Kellin
pulled open the door. "Would a man be
so
foolish as to desert you in the midst of a cold
night?"
Kirsty
laughed- "Then I'll gie ye sommat to re-
member
me by." She flung back cloak and cover-
let,
displaying cold-tautened breasts, and it was
only
with great effort that Kellin departed the
room.
Upon exiting
the roadhouse, Kellin was sorry he
had
left the cloak behind. The night was clear and
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
385
cold,
belying the season. Bare arms protested with
pimpled
flesh; he rubbed them vigorously, sliding
fingertips
across cooling /ir-gold, and strode on
toward
the stable intending to settle the business
at
once, then hasten back to bed.
The
building was a black, square-angled blob in
the
moonlight, blocky and slump-roofed. He ap-
proached
quietly, accustomed to making no sound
in the
litheness of his movements, and touched the
knife
hilt briefly.
Sima's
tone was clear. They are taking the saddle,
too.
Kellin
swore beneath his breath. Just as he
reached
the stable two men appeared, and a horse.
His
horse. The gelding was bridled and saddled,
as if
they intended to ride immediately.
He
recognized them from the common room.
Greedier
than I thought— Kellin moved out of
shadow
into moonlight. "I doubt you could pay
my
price. You lost in the game tonight."
They froze-
One man clung to the horse, while
his
companion stiffened beside him. Then the first
put up
his chin. "Go back to Kirsty," he said, "and
we'll
let ye be. 'Twill be a gey cold night, the
other."
The
dialect was thick. Kellin deciphered it, then
added
his own comment. " 'Twill be a gey cold
night,
withal—for one of us... ." He slipped into
the
lilt he had learned from his grandmother-
Erinnish
was similar- "But I'll be keeping yon
horse
for myself as well as the bonny lass."
Both
men showed their knives. Kellin showed
his-
The display resulted in a muttered conversa-
tion
between the two Homanans, as Kellin waited.
Eventually
his patience waned. "We each of us
has a
knife. In that, we are well-matched. But are
you
forgetting I am Cheysuli? If a knife will not
do to
persuade you who is better, Hr-shape will."
386
Jennifer Roberwa
It
sufficed. The man holding the reins released
the
gelding at once as the other stepped away. The
horse
wandered back toward the warm stable.
Kellin
sighed. "Go on your way. That way." He
gestured.
"You'll be bedding down elsewhere, my
boyos."
The men
goggled at him. "We have a room!"
"Not
any more."
"Ye
canna do this!"
"
'Tis done." He grinned at them. "You tried to
steal
my horse, but that's done for the night. Now
I've
stolen your bed." He gestured. "On your
way."
They
muttered something to one another, then
turned
toward the road.
Kellin
raised his voice. "Ckeysuli i'haSa. shansu!"
They
did not, either of them, offer an answer he
understood.
"No,
I thought not." Kellin went after the horse,
caught
and gathered dragging reins, then led the
gelding
into the stable. "Disturbed your sleep, did
they?"
He reached for the knotted girth. "Then we
are a
proper pair—though I dare say I miss the
woman
more than—" He turned. The noise was
slight,
but his hearing better than most.
It was
too late. Weight descended upon him.
Kellin
went down with only a blurted protest.
Five
It was
the cold that finally woke him. The earthen
floor
was packed hard as stone, and was twice as
cold.
The scattered straw offered no protection.
Kellin's
flesh, as he roused, rose up on his bones
all at
once and he shivered violently in a sus-
tained,
convulsive shudder that jarred loose the
fog
from his head.
"Gods—"
His teeth clicked together and stayed
there,
clamped against the chattering he would
not
acknowledge.
Awake
again?
He
started to hitch himself up on one elbow,
thought
better of it almost at once, and stayed
where
he was. He rolled his head to one side and
felt at
the back of his skull, marking the lump.
Something
crusted in his fingers: dried blood, he
guessed;
at least it wasn't still flowing.
"Lir?
Where are—uh." He scowled as he found
her
seated very close to his side. Aggrievedly, he
said,
"You might have at least lay down next to
me!
Some warmth is better than none!"
The
last time we spoke of warmth, you claimed a
woman's
better than mine.
"That
was in bed. Am I in bed now? No! I am
lying
sprawled on an icy stable floor with not even
a
saddle blanket for my—" He broke it off in as-
tonishment.
"—nor any clothing, either! My leath-
ers—"
387
388
Jennifer Roberson
Sima
slitted gold eyes against a stream of invec-
tive.
When he at last ran out of oaths he stopped>
caught
his breath, and shut his eyes against the
pain in
his battered head.
He felt
empty, somehow—and then Kellin
clutched
a naked earlobe. "My ;i'r-gold!" He sat
upright,
unmindful of his headache. "Gods—they
took my
gold\"
Sima
twitched her tail. Gold is gold. Blessed or
no, its
value to a man remains the same.
"But—it
took me so long to get it—"
You
were in no hurry, she reminded him primly.
You
denied it—and me—for a very long time.
Kellin
gingerly rubbed the back of his tender
skull,
then felt the stiffness of abused neck tendons
and
attempted to massage the pain away. "Gloat-
ing
does not become you."
Everything
becomes a lir.
"And
Blais' knife, too." Acknowledgment of a
further
atrocity sent a shudder through his body.
"Oh,
gods—oh, gods ... my ring. My signet ring.
Gods,
lir—that ring signifies my rank and title!"
He
clutched the naked finger. "It has adorned the
hand of
every Prince of Homana since, since—"
He gave
it up. "Lir—" And then a burst of ironic
laughter
crowded out his panic. "Fitting, is it not?
For ten
years I rebel against the constraints of my
rank—and
now thieves steal its symbol from me!
Surely
the gods had a hand in this."
Or a
foolish warrior.
Levity
vanished. "You are not in the least
surprised."
/
warned you. She licked a paw.
"Does
it mean nothing to you that what they
have
done is heretical? To rob a Cheysuli warrior
of his
/ir-gold, and the Prince of Homana of his
signet—"
—is
brave, if nothing else; I admire them for their
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 389
gall.
Sima blinked, then slitted eyes. You can fetch
it
back.
"In
a saddle blanket? They have taken every-
thing
else!"
Surely
the girl can bring you clothing.
"The
girl likely was part of this." Realization
stabbed
him. "What coin I have left is in my
room—"
he reconsidered it, "—or was."
Then
you will have to tend it yourself.
Kellin
swore again. Then, with excessive care,
he got
off the cold ground at last, found the near-
est
saddle blanket, and wrapped it around his
loins.
He was just tucking in the end when the
stable
door creaked open.
Kirsty
stood silhouetted in moonlight, swathed
in his
cloak. He saw the tabard and woolen skirt,
and
leather shoes. Unbound hair, tangled from the
evening's
sport, hung below her hips.
Sima
blinked again. A conclusion perhaps best
not
jumped to.
"Thieves,"
Kellin declared-in answer to Kirsty's
expression.
"Did you know nothing of it?"
She put
up her chin. "If I knew aught, I'd be
other
than here, ye muddle-headed whelp! D'ye
think
me so foolish as to coom to ye if I knew?"
"A
clever woman would, merely to mislead me."
He was
curt in his headache and humiliation.
"Have
you clothing I can put on?"
Kirsty
tossed back her untamed mane. "Ye'd
look
gey foolish in my clothing, ye ken."
Kellin
sighed. "Aye, so I would. Have you men's
I might
put on?"
"Tam'll
hae some. T'will cost, and nae doot'll
be no'
to your liking, but better than ye wear
now."
Her grin was abruptly sly. "Not that I'm
minding,
ye ken."
"I
ken," he said dryly. "And I will pay Tarn.
390
Jennifer Roberson
Though
the gods know that torque alone would
buy me
a trunkful."
She
clutched at it. " 'Tis mine! Ye said so!"
"
'Tis yours. I said so. Keep it, Kirsty—run and
fetch
the clothing." Silently he said, If I can trust
you to
come back.
Kirsty
swung on her heels and hastened away
while
Kellin sat down on a haphazard pile of grain
sacks
and tried to ignore the cold and the thumping
in his
head.
She was
back after all in but a handful of mo-
ments,
and had the right of it; the clothing was
not at
all to his liking. But he put on the grimy
smock
and woolen baggy trews without com-
plaint,
then stuffed straw into the toes of Tarn's
oversized,
decaying boots so they at least re-
mained
on his feet. The soles were worn through,
the
poor heels all run down, but even tattered
leather
was better than bare feet.
His
earlobe hurt. The thieves had paid scant at-
tention
to the wire and how it hooked; they had
wrenched
it out of the hole with little regard to
his
flesh. But the lobe, if sore, was whole; he re-
called
very clearly that his grandsire lacked all of
his.
Kirsty
touched his arms. "No' the same wi' nae
gold."
Anger
got the best of him. "Is that what you
wanted
all along?"
She
drew back, warding the torque against his
eyes.
"Nae! And I only meant ye dinna look the
same
wi'oot it, not that I wanted it! Now ye look
like a
Homanan, and a poor one at that!"
He
laughed with little amusement. "So I do; one
might
mistake me altogether as a common low-
born
roadhouse-keeper." He regretted the words
at
once; what had she done to deserve them? "I
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 391
am
sorry—I am poor company. My thanks for the
clothing.
Now—which way did they go?"
"They?"
"The
thieves. You know them, do you not?"
Kirsty
said nothing.
"I
saw them earlier, in the common room. They
knew
you, Kirsty, and you knew them." He paused.
"I
do not intend to kill them, merely fetch back
my
things. What they took is—sacred." He left it
at
that.
Kirsty
chewed on a lock of hair. "North," she
said
finally, "across the river."
It was
very near dawn. Already the sky behind
her
began to lighten. "Into Solinde."
She
shrugged. "They're Solindish. They coom
onc't a
four-week."
"To
steal."
"To
work."
"One
and the same, perhaps?" Kellin sighed.
"Which
way across the river?"
"Westward."
She jerked her head- "They might
ha'
hurt ye worse."
"I
said I will not kill them." He glanced at the
stalls.
"I have need of a horse."
Sima
questioned that. What of lir-shape?
Within
the link, he refused. Too dangerous. No
balance,
yet—and now no time to team it. Kellin
shivered.
For now, I will ride a horse.
Kirsty
stared. "Now ye want a horse? Ye hae no
such
coin in your purse, ye ken. I looked—here
'tis—I
dinna want it!" She slapped it into his
hand.
"I only meant, how will ye buy the horse?"
"On
promises," he said.
"Promises
o' what? You've naught left; you've
said
so."
He
turned from her and moved to the nearest
stall.
"This one will do- Where is the bridle?—ah."
392
Jennifer Robersoa
He took
it down from its peg, slipped the posts
that
fenced in the horse, and slipped inside.
"You'll
no' turn thief," she said. "That be Tarn's
horse."
"Not
yours."
"Nae.
I own nothing but what I wear—and
this."
She clutched the torque. Her black eyes
were
very bright, but it was not from good humor;
Kellin
thought perhaps tears. "Unless you mean
to take
it back."
"No,
I will do no such thing. Here, have back
the
coin—it will pay for the clothing. But I also
need a
horse. If you would have Tarn repaid for
that,
there is a thing you can do." He bridled the
piebald
horse, then led it from the stall. He would
not
take saddle also; he took too much already. "If
you
would pay back Tarn—and put coin in your
pockets,
as well—you need only go to Mujhara,
and
then to Homana-Mujhar."
"Homana-Mujhar!"
She gaped. "To the palace?"
"They'll
give you coin for the torque." He swung
up
bareback onto the piebald back and winced;
the
spine was well delineated. "That way it will
stay
with like pieces instead of winding up with
a
money-lender ... tell them I used it to pay a
debt."
"Tell
who?" She tossed back her head. "The
Mujhar
himself?"
He
grinned. "They do know me there."
She was
instantly suspicious. "I'm to tell them
Kellin
sent me to trade this for coin? Och, aye—
they'll
toss me oot i' the street!"
"Not
immediately. After a meal, perhaps." He
glanced
at Sima. Coming?
She
stood up from the shadows and shook her
coat
free of straw, then slid out of darkness into
the
dawn of a new day. Kirsty let out a startled
shriek
and leapt back three paces.
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOfVS 393
"My
lir," he said briefly. "Do you see what I
mean
about her fur and your hair? Both such a
lovely,
glossy black."
The
girl clutched at the shining torque. "In the
eyes,"
she mumbled, staring at him. "E'en wi'oor
the
gold!"
"I
thank you," Kellin said. "It is a compliment."
As he
rode away from the stable, Kirsty called
a final
farewell. "Homana-Mujhar, indeed! I'll be
keeping
this for myself."
Kellin
sighed as he settled himself carefully
athwart
the treacherous spine. "Worth a trunkful
of
clothing and an entire herd of horses."
But
less than your missing fir-gold, your ring—
and
your kinsman's knife.
Kellin
offered no answer. Sima, as always, was
right.
By the
time they reached the ferry, Kellin's dis-
comfort
in his nether regions matched the thumping
in his
head. He was altogether miserable, wishing
for his
horse hack, and alt his gold back, and the
knife,
and most particularly the saddle that would
have made
things, even on this horse, much easier
to
bear.
He
thought his head might burst. A closer in-
spection
with fingers had not divulged anything
he did
not already know—the swelling was soft
and
tender, the cut dried. He wondered what they
had struck
him with—the roadhouse, perhaps?
He
began a complaint to Sima. They might have
been—
Halfway through the comment he cut off
the
communication through the link. It made his
head
hurt worse. He waved a gesture at the cat
that
dismissed conversation; she flicked tufted
ears
and held her silence accordingly, but he
thought
she looked amused.
The
ferry was docked this side of the river. Re-
394
Jennifer Robersoa
lieved,
Kellin halted the piebald and slid off care-
fully,
so as not to jar his head. A man was slumped
against
a cluster of posts roped together, the stub
of a
pipe clenched in his teeth. His eyes were
closed,
but he was not asleep.
Kellin
led the horse up. "Did you give passage to
two men
early this morning? Just before dawn?"
One eye
opened. Graying brown hair straggled
around
his face beneath a threadbare cap. " 'Twould
be hard
for a body to walk across, would ye no'
say?"
Kellin
suppressed a retort. "Then you did."
"Dinna
see bodies in the river, do ye?—though
they be
carried awa' by now." The other eye
opened.
"She's angry in the spring."
Kellin
looked beyond the man he took to be the
ferry-master
to the river beyond. It was spring,
and the
river did seem angry; the thaw had thick-
ened
the Bluetooth so that it ran nearly out of its
banks,
with a high, fast current that would suck a
man
down all too easily.
"They
robbed me," Kellin said. "I am angry,
also."
The
ferry-master squinted. "Doesna look like ye
had so
much to steal."
"Now,
no. Before, I did. This is the best I could
do,"
he paused. "Did you give two Solindishmen
passage
across the river?"
"If
I said aye, would ye be after passage, too?"
"The
woman said it was where they were l?ound."
"Kirsty?"
The man brightened. He was, Kellin
judged,
nearly as old as the Mujhar- "Did she send
ye,
then?"
"She
sent me."
He
raked Kellin with a glance from brown eyes
set
deeply in shadowed sockets. "Then ye must ha'
pleased
her. She's no needing to be sending a
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 395
robbed
man after those who coom to see her onc't
a
four-week."
Kellin
hung onto his patience with effort. The
thudding
in his head made it increasingly difficult.
"We
pleased each other well enough. Did the men
cross
here?"
"Dinna
walk, did they?" He heaved himself
from
the planking and jabbed the pipe in Sima's
direction.
"She tame, yon cat?"
Kellin
opened his mouth to vigorously deny that
a Ur
could be tamed; he shut it once he recalled
what
Kirsty had said: that he could, in Tarn's
clothing,
pass as a Homanan. This close to So-
linde,
this close to Valgaard, it might be better to
keep
his moufh shut with regard to Ur. "Aye," he
said.
"Tame enough."
"Then
you'd best go no farther north," the ferry-
master
warned. "There's a man o'er the Pass who
pays
gold and jewels for cats like her."
He was
indignant. "Who does?"
The
ferry-master made a sign against evil. "A
man,"
he said only. "He'cfhae her faster than the
river
would eat a man." His truculence now was
vanished.
"Aye, they crossed. Will ye?"
"I
will. At once."
The man
unwound the coil of rope tying up the
ferry.
"Hae ye coin for it?"
"I
have—" No. He did not. "—this horse."
"That
horse! That one? What would I be doing
wi'
Tarn's old nag?"
"Mine
was stolen," Kellin said tightly through
his
teeth. "I bought this one to track the thieves,
so I
might get back my own mount—which is, I
might
add, considerably better than 'Tarn's old
nag.'
"
"Aye,
it would be, ye ken? Not many worse than
Tarn's
old nag." He jerked his head toward the
ferry.
"Coom aboard, then, you and yon cat ... if
396
Jennifer Robersoa
Kirsty
sent ye after them, there's a reason for't.
I'll
no' take the nag." He grinned briefly. "Kirsty'11
make it
right."
Knowing
how she spent her nights, Kellin judged
she
would. Nonetheless, he was grateful.
Almost
as soon as he was aboard, Kellin was
sorry.
The Bluetooth fought the ferry every inch
of the
way, spuming over the sides of the flat, thick
platform
until the boards ran white with foam.
The old
piebald spread his legs and dropped his
head
even as Kellin grabbed hold of a rope; Sima
dug
claws into aged wood and lashed her tail an-
grily
in counterpoint to the heaves the ferry-
master
put to the ropes.
By the
time they reached the other side, Kellin's
tattered
clothing was soaked. Sima bared her
teeth
and shook droplets free of her coat. As soon
as the
ferry thumped the bank she sprang for land;
Kellin
led the piebald off and thanks the gods for
putting
firm land beneath his feet.
"Aye,"
the ferry-master said, "she's a gey wicked
bitch
in the spring. Summer's better," He jerked
his
head westward. "That way, they went. They
won't
be expecting ye, so they willna be in a
hurry.
Ye'll hae them by sundoon."
Kellin
nodded thanks. "Is this because of Kirsty?"
"Och,
she's a right'un, that lass .. . but ye've a
pinched
look in the eyes that says they hit ye a
mite
too hard." He grinned around the pipe. "And
ye
speak too well for a man born to wear Tarn's
clothes."
He jerked his head again. "Gi* on wi' ye,
then.
Ye'll be back by tomorrow, and ye can pay
for
your ride."
Kellin
smiled. "Cheysuli i'halla—" He broke it
off
instantly, cursing the headache that mangled
his
wits so.
The
ferry-master's eyebrows shot up beneath the
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 397
lock of
greasy hair. "Ah. Well, then. Not tame after
all, is
she?" He coughed. "Yon cat."
"No."
Kellin swung up onto the piebald and
wished
immediately his pride had permitted him
to find
a log and mount, like a woman. "There are
times I
wish she were."
The
brown eyes were sharp. "Then 'tisn't the
horse
you're wanting, or the coin . . . more like
cat-shaped
gold, is't?"
"More
like," Kellin said. He kicked the horse
into
motion.
"Aye,
well . .. I've no' known them to be so fool-
ish
before." He briefly showed a gap-toothed grin
that
gave way to the pipestem. "Be wary of So-
linde.
Up here so close to Valgaard—well . .." He
let it
go. "They'd be wanting more than yon cat."
This
time he did not hesitate. "Leijhana tu'sai.
Cheysuli
i'halla shansu."
Six
The
westward road was not so well-traveled as
the one
cutting down from the Bluetooth into the
center
of Homana. It was narrow and twisty,
winding
its way through silted huddles of downed
trees
and acres of water-smoothed boulders car-
ried
this way and that by a temperamental river
gone
over its banks to suck back again, leaving
detritus
in its wake. Tarn's old nag was not a par-
ticularly
coordinated horse, and Kellin spent much
of his
time trying to keep his head very still upon
his
neck as the horse stumbled its way along.
"By
sundown," Kellin muttered in reference to
the
ferry-master's prediction as the piebald tripped
again.
"By then, I may well be lacking a head en-
tirety.
It will have fallen off and rolled to a halt
amidst
that pile of boulders, there, and when the
crows
have picked it clean no one will know the
difference
between it and that rock, there."
Sima
chanced the lir-iink. I will go on ahead. Let
me find
them—/ will come back and fetch you.
It
pulsed within his skull. Kellin hissed in pain
and
shut his eyes against it, then waved her on.
"Go,
I am little threat to them if I find them in
this
state. They will laugh, and be on about their
business
with no fear of me."
The cat
whipped her tail, then left at a springy
lope.
The
horse stumbled on. After a while Kellin bal-
398
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 399
anced
himself, shut his eyes, and gave himself over
to a
state very akin to sleep, in hopes that when
he
awoke the pain would be dispersed.
He
roused to a quiet voice pitched over a rush
of
water. "I had expected to eat alone, but your
horse
has other ideas." A pause. "I am glad of the
company;
will you share my meal?"
Kellin
opened his eyes. He slumped atop the pie-
bald,
which had in turn wandered off the road to
a
cluster of tumbled boulders very near the river's
edge.
He smelled smoke and fish. It made his belly
rumble.
The
stranger laughed. "I will take that as
acceptance."
"Where
am I?" Kellin glanced around. The road
was not
so far; he could see it winding Westward.
"Here,"
the man said, amused. "At my camp-
site,
such as it is; but I have had good fortune in
my
fishing, and there is enough for us both." His
hazel
eyes were friendly- The piebald snorted
against
the hand that held his bridle; the stranger
grinned
and pushed the muzzle away. "You have
been
hard used; I have wine for the ache."
He was
a young, fine-featured man, perhaps Kel-
lin's
age or a year or two older. His hair was dark,
nearly
black, and fell smoothly to his shoulders.
His
clothing was spun of good wool of uniform
yam.
Kellin marked him a well-to-do man: linen
tunic
died blue, with black embroidery at the col-
lar;
black-dyed breeches; good boots, and a brilliant
crimson
cloak thrown on loosely over shoulders.
Kellin
considered refusing. There were the thieves
to
think about. But his head did ache, his belly
did
rumble—and Sima was on their trail. He need
only
wait for her, and by the time she returned,
his
condition would be improved.
400
Jennifer Robecson
"My
thanks," he said. Then recalled what he
looked
like. "But I have nothing—"
The
stranger waved a hand. "Your company is
enough.
I am not so far from my destination; I
can be
generous." He smiled again. "You might do
better
to walk, then to go another step atop this
horse."
"Aye."
Kellin smiled crookedly and slid off, grit-
ting
his teeth against the pounding in his head. It
was
worse, not better; but the road was hard and
the
horse clumsy. He was lucky his head remained
on his
neck.
"My
name is Devin," the stranger said as Kellin
pulled
the reins over the piebald's neck. "The wine
I have
is Solindish white; will it do?"
Kellin
followed. "Any wine will do. I am not fit
to
judge its taste." A glance from Devin told Kellin
he had
perhaps misphrased his answer; he had
meant
because of his head, but Devin's quick as-
sessment
indicated the stranger believed he meant
his
station. He thinks me a poor man; well, for the
moment,
I am. He led the piebald to the water-
wracked,
uprooted tree at the riverbank and tied
him to
a branch next to Devin's mount, a fine
glossy
bay very like Kellin's stolen horse.
A fire
was built between a tumble of clustered
boulders
and the water's edge, hosting two speck-
led
fish speared and hung belly-up along two
stripped
branches resting in crotched braces. The
lap of
the river was but paces away, so the sound
was
loud. Devin squatted near the fire, digging
through
packs. "Here." He tossed the wineskin. "I
have
another; drink as you will. I will tend the
fish."
Kellin
caught the skin as he turned from the
piebald
and swallowed, glad of the liquor's bite.
If he
drank enough, it would dull the pounding in
his
head, but that would be poor manners. He
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
m
owed
Devin sober companionship, not the rude-
ness of
a man undone by misfortune.
Devin
made conversation as he inspected the
sizzling
fish. "I misjudged the distance," he said,
"or
I would have stayed the night in the last road-
house I
passed- The ground is a hard bed when
one is
used to better." He lifted one of the speared
fish.
"Here. Trout. I daresay it will complement
the
wine."
Kellin
accepted the proffered fish-laden stick
with
thanks and sat down against the closest boul-
der. He
thought Devin was indeed accustomed to
better;
a sapphire gleamed on one hand, while a
band of
twisted gold glinted on the other,
Devin
took the other fish for himself and sat
back
against his packs, blowing to cool the meat.
"Have
you a wife?" he asked.
Kellin
shook his head. His mouth was full of
fish.
"Ah.
Well, neither do I—for but a four-week
more!"
He grinned. "I am-bound for my wedding.
Wish me
good fortune, my friend, and that the girl
is
comely ... I have no wish to share my bed with
a plain
woman!"
Kellin
swallowed. "You have never seen her?"
"No.
A dynastic thing, this marriage. To bind
the
bloodlines closer." Devin chewed thoughtfully.
"A
man like you weds for love, or lust—or because
the
woman has conceived, and her father insists!—
but a
man like me, well ..." He sighed. "No
choice
for either of us. The match was suggested
by her father,
and mine accepted eagerly; one can-
not
help but to rise in service to a powerful lord."
Kellin's
smile was crooked. "No."
"I
envy you. You need not wed at all, if that is
your
desire—well, I should not complain; my lot
is
better than yours." Devin's attitude was friendly
402
Jennifer Xo6erMm
enough,
but all too obviously he believed Kellin
lowborn.
"What is your trade?"
i
Kellin
wanted to laugh. If he told Devin the
truth—
He grinned, thinking of the thieves. "What
other
trade is there but to aspire to higher in life—
and the
coin to make it possible?"
Devin's
eyes narrowed consideringly as he washed
down
trout with wine. "You are a passing fair
mimic."
"A
mimic?"
"Aye.
Put on finer clothing, wash the grime from
your
face, you could pass for a highborn man."
He
stoppered the wineskin. "You might make a
mummer."
Kellin
laughed, thinking of his grandparents.
"There
are those who have accused me of that
very
thing. I did but playact the role, they said—
then
admonished me to learn my part better." He
jerked
his head westward- "When you came down
the
road, did you pass two men with a bay very
like
your own?"
Devin
shrugged. "I passed many people. I do not
recall
the horse." His eyes brightened over the
fish.
"Why?"
"The
horse they have is mine. It was stolen from
me
..." He ran a hand through tousled hair. "You
see, I
am not precisely the man I appear to be."
Kellin
plucked at Tarn's grimy tunic. "They took
more
than my horse."
"And
left you with that piebald horse and anoth-
er's
clothing?" Devin shouted a laugh. "Aye, it
makes
sense—you have not the manner of a low-
born
man, either."
Kellin
thought of the Midden and his visits.
"Some
might argue with that."
"Well.
at least they left you your life. Did they
knock
you on the head?" He grinned as Kellin gri-
maced
an answer. "I thought so. The dullness in
A
rAPEsrHyoFZ.KWs 403
your
eyes ... aye, well, drink more wine." He fin-
ished
his fish. "If I were not expected, I would
help
you catch the thieves. I have certain gifts that
would
improve the sport."
"Gifts?"
Devin
grinned. "Arts." He reached for the wine-
skin,
then turned as movement on the road caught
his
eyes. Almost at once he froze. "Be still!" He
put out
a hand- "Do not move—gods, but what a
beauty
. . . and a fitting gift for the girl's father.
He
covets them. I shall have to see if I can take
her."
Kellin
turned, asking, "Covets what—?" And
broke
off immediately. Suspicion blossomed.
He
dropped the fish, set down the wineskin qui-
etly,
and wished he had his knife. He stared hard
at the
friendly stranger.
"She
is lovely'." Devin breathed.
Kellin
did not answer. He reached out very care-
fully
and closed his hand around the hilt of De-
vin's
knife.
Devin
twisted at once, slapping down at Kellin's
grasping
hand. "What are you—wait—" He rolled
and
scrambled up, poised for attack. The light in
his
eyes was gone, replaced by a cold, piercing
stillness.
Quietly, he said "Only a fool steals from
an
Ihlini."
The
cold knot solidified in Kellin's belly. He
knelt
on one knee with the other booted foot
planted,
grasping a stolen knife. "And only a fool
thinks
he can capture a lir."
Realization
kindled in Devin's eyes, then damped
to
coals. He shook his head- "You have no power
before
me."
"Nor
you before me."
Devin
raised his hands. "I have these."
"And
I have your knife."
Devin's
eyes narrowed- His young face was
404
Jennifer Roberaoa
stretched
taut across prominent cheekbones. His
lips
were bloodless. He studied Kellin carefully,
then
murmured something beneath his breath.
"They
say—" He shut his mouth, then began
again.
"They say we are very alike. Ihlini and
Cheysuli.
That we are bloodkin." He remained half
crouched,
prepared to receive an onrush. "Do you
believe
it?"
"Does
it matter?"
"It
does. If there is truth to it. If we are to kill
one
another."
"Are
we?"
Devin
shrugged. "To serve Asar-Suti, I will kill
whomever
I must—" In one smooth motion he
ripped
his cloak from his shoulders and swirled it
at
Kellin, snapping weighted comers.
The
blaze of crimson came at his face, aimed for
his
eyes. Kellin ducked the cloak easily enough,
but it
served merely as distraction; Devin scooped
up and
hurled a river rock that nearly struck Kel-
lin's
head.
Ku'resh—
As Keliin dodged it, the Ihlini hurled
himself
forward.
They
went down together hard, smashing into
rocks
spewed up by the Bluetooth River. Devin's
fingers
dug into Kellin's throat. He squirmed be-
neath
the Ihlini, thrashing legs to gain leverage,
and
managed to thrust a knee upward that imper-
iled
Devin's balance. The Ihlini tensed, shifted,
and
Kellin bucked him off. The knife was lost
somehow,
but he scrambled to his feet even as
Devin
came up clawing.
It was
an obscene dance, an intercourse of
grasping
hands reaching to crush a throat. Kellin
was
aware of Sima's nearness by the sound of her
growls
and snarls, but the link was completely
empty.
In its place was an odd disorientation, a
buzzing
interference that told him all too clearly
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 405
what he
should have known before; what he would
have
known before had his wits not been so
muddled.
They
were too near the river. Sand shifted.
Rocks
rolled. Kellin's feet slid inside oversized,
straw-stuffed
boots. No foothold— He slipped even
as
Devin changed grasp, and Kellin stumbled. He
brought
the heel of his right hand up against the
underside
of Devin's jaw, meaning to snap the
neck,
but the Ihlini twisted his head sharply aside.
This,
then— Kelin hooked a foot and caught De-
vin's
ankle. He dropped the Ihlini, then turned and
lunged
for the knife but a pace away.
Devin's
feet scissored out. Kellin, caught, fell
hard,
trying to twist, but Devin's hands were on
him.
—knife—
The
Ihlini had it. Kellin saw the brief glint, saw
the tip
meet Tarn's grimy fabric, then plunge
through.
Gods—Sima—
He squirmed, sucking in his belly.
Devin
gasped a triumphant laugh. Steel dug
through
flesh and slid between ribs. The Ihlini's
mouth
was a rictus of victory and exertion. "Who
wins
this one?"
Kellin
jerked himself off the blade, willing him-
self
not to think of the pain, the damage, the risk.
He saw
the blood smearing steel, saw the crimson
droplets
staining damp sand, but refused to ac-
knowledge
it.
He
twisted his torso and brought up a booted
foot.
One thrashing thrust jarred against Devin's
thigh,
then glanced off. It was enough. Kellin lev-
ered
himself up, grasping hair and tunic, and
threw
Devin over. He let his weight fall and
pinned
the Ihlini, then grabbed handfuls of dark
hair
and began to smash the skull against the
sand.
The
wound was bad. If he did not kill Devin
406
Jennifer Roberson
soon,
he would soon bleed to death. What a sweet
irony
if they killed one another.
Devin
bucked. An upthrust knee missed Kellin's
groin
but not his belly. Pain blossomed anew, and
bleeding.
His tunic was sodden with it.
"—wait—"
Devin gritted. "—only need to wait—"
But he
did not. He bucked again, broke Kellin's
grasp,
and scrambled away from him. "Now—"
Kellin
staggered upright, sealing the wound
closed
with his left arm pressed hard against his
ribs.
He fell back two steps, stumbled over a rock,
tried
to steady his footing. Strength was fading
fast.
Devin
laughed. His face was scratched and red-
dened
in patches; it would bruise badly if he lived
long
enough. "Cheysuli blood—" he gasped, "—is
red as
Ihlini—red as my own . .. are we kinsmen,
then?"
He smeared an arm across his face. "I have
only to
wait—you will do me the favor of dying
even if
I never touch you again."
"My
lir—will touch—you—" It was all Kellin
could
manage as he labored to keep his breath.
"Your
lir'? I think not. The lir are proscribed
against
harming Ihlini, Have you ever wondered
why?"
Devin's breath was returning.
Kellin
backed up. He heard the rush of the river,
the
promise of its song. What he needed was time
to
recover himself, but time he did not have. Devin
had
time.
He
could not hold the blood in. It crept through
his
fingers, then dripped to the sand. A rock was
red
with it, turning slowly black. Behind Kellin
the
river roared louder.
"Enough,"
Devin said, bending to grab the
knife.
"I am expected in Valgaard. This foolish
dance
delays me."
Kellin
bent and scooped up a round stone. He
let
fly, then scooped another and threw again.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 407
Devin
ducked, but did not let go of the knife. He
knew
better; why loose the only weapon and
chance
the enemy's retrieval?"
The
Ihlini advanced. "One more throw, and
your
heart will burst. Do you think I cannot tell?"
Kellin
retreated, clutching bloodied wool against
his
chest. The world around him blurred. Not like
this—not
what I could ask for in the manner of my
death—
Sima
screamed. Devin lunged.
Kellin
twisted from the knife as the blade was
thrust
toward him. He caught the outstretched
arm in
both hands and wrenched, snapping it
over,
trying with grim determination to break the
limb
entirely.
Devin
shouted. The knife fell free, then the Ihlini
stumbled
forward and threw his weight against
Kellin.
A
curious warmth flowed throughout his chest.
Kellin
saw the Ihlini's mouth moving, but heard
no
words. He sagged, thrust out a braced foot to
hold
himself up, and clung to Devin.
The
bank behind them broke. Both flailing bod-
ies
tumbled into the river.
Kellin
loosed his grasp on Devin as the waters
closed
over his head. He thrust himself upward,
thrashing;
ill-fitting boots filled with water and
dragged
him down again.
Sima—
He
clawed, sealing his mouth shut, trying to
make
his way upward where he could breathe
again.
The boots were pulled off his feet.
Sima—
The
river rolled. He broke the surface briefly
and
sucked air. Then the beast caught him again,
threw
him over, hurled him downward. He tum-
bled
helplessly, clawing at current, holding his
breath
in lungs that refused to serve him.
408
Jennifer Robersm
He was
briefly embraced within the treacherous
arms of
a buried tree, deep in the water- Then the
tunic
tore loose and he was free of it, of snag and
tunic;
he thrashed again but could no longer tell
which
was surface and which was bottom.
He
breathed water. He was hurled against a
rocky
protuberance, then scraped off again and
tumbled,
limbs flailing uselessly. His right leg
caught,
wedged into a cleft between the rocks.
Kellin
twisted in the current, was tumbled help-
lessly,
and felt the dull snap.
No
pain. His leg was numb. Both legs were
numb.
His entire body was nothing but a blob of
useless
flesh, too vulnerable, too fragile, to with-
stand
the beast in full spate.
The
river dragged him free, then threw him
heedlessly
against another promontory. He sur-
faced
briefly, coughed a garbled plea for air, for
aid,
then the river reclaimed him.
This
time she was cruel. She hurled him into
her
depths and kept him there, like a cork caught
in a
millrace, and when she threw him out again,
into
the lesser current, she did not notice if the
broken
body breathed or not.
Interval
The
master of Valgaard was found deep in the un-
dercroft
of the fortress, feeding his cats. They did
not
cluster at his feet as housecats do, courting
morsels,
demanding affection, because they were
not
pets, but mountain cats. tawny, russet, and
black,
who prowled the confines of their cages bar-
ing
great teeth, snarling as he dangled promised
offal
before them, and red, bloodied meat.
He was
a handsome man, and knew it; it
pleased
him to know it, though breeding almost
assured
it. And young, less than thirty, clearly in
his
prime—though that was won from the Seker
and was
not a natural thing. He kept his dark,
springy
hair closely cropped against a well-shaped
head
balanced on an elegant neck, and adorned
supple
fingers with a clutch of rings. They glinted
bloody
and bronze in the torchlight.
A man
arrived. He stood in the archway and did
not
step into the chamber. His voice was pitched
very
quietly, so as not to disturb the cats; more
importantly,
so as not to disturb the master. "My
lord."
Lochiel
did not look away from his cats; he en-
joyed
their ferocity. "Have you news of Devin?"
The man
folded his hands before him, eyes fixed
on the
floor so as not to offer offense. "We are not
certain,
my lord. We believe so."
Lochiel
turned. His eyes were a clear ale-brown
409
410
Jennifer Roberson
set
beneath winged brows that on another man
might
suggest femininity; on him, they did not.
No one
alive would suggest he was less than a
man.
The structure of his face was of peculiar clar-
ity, as
if the gods had labored long to make him
perfect.
"Why are you uncertain?"
"We
found a horse, and packs containing certain
articles
belonging to Devin—included among them
was the
ring your daughter sent him—but Devin
was not
with the horse. There were signs of vio-
lence,
my lord—bloodied sand, and a fallen knife
... but
no body. At least, not there." The servant
did not
look up from the floor. "We found a man
downriver
not far from fhe horse, thrown up in
the
bank like driftwood."
"Dead?"
"He
was not when we found him. He might be
now. He
is sore hurt."
Lochiel
threw meat to the cats, one by one, and
smiled
to see unsheathed claws trying to fish meat
bestowed
from one cage into another. "Where is
my
daughter?"
"With
him, my lord. She was hawking out of
the
defile, in the canyon—she saw us bring him
up."
Lochiel
sighed. "Not the most impressive way
to meet
your bridegroom." He glanced at bloodied
hands
and wished them clean; they were. "It will
be an
annoyance if Devin dies. I researched his
pedigree
most carefully."
"Aye,
my lord."
Lochiel
observed the cats. His day was now dis-
turbed.
"They will have to wait. I will have them
eat no
meat save it comes from my hands."
"Aye,
my lord. My lord?"
Lochiel
arched an inquisitive brow.
"We
saw a cat, my lord. As we came over the
A
TAPESTRY OF LlO\S
411
Pass. A
sleek, black female, young but promising
well.
She hid herself almost at once."
"Had
she a mate?"
"None
we saw. We were thinking of the man,
and
came straight on to the fortress."
"Very
well. I will send you out tomorrow to
leam
the truth of her." He glanced at the black
male
who eyed him hungrily. "Perhaps if you are
good, I
shall give you a mate." He frowned pen-
sively.
"It would be a pity if my daughter lost
hers. I
need children of them." He touched one of
his
rings. If Cynric is born— His mouth com-
pressed,
robbing the line of its purity.
If
Cynric were born after all, there was only one
sure
way, one certain course to defeat him; but
such
insurance was costly and required a sacrifice.
Yet he
he had failed in all his attempts. Asar-Suti
did not
countenance failure.
The
Ihlini studied his rings, considering, know-
ing the
answer already. If Kellin lived to sire the
child,
that sure way, that exacting, definitive
course
would have to be taken.
Lochiel
sighed- If we are to block the Firstborn, I
shall
have to make a child for the Seker to inhabit.
PART IV
One
"You
should not be here," my mother declared.
I heard
the rustle of her skirts as they dragged
across
the threshold. She wears them long and
mil,
using up bolts of costly cloth that might bet-
ter be
distributed among several women instead
of only
one. But that was my mother; she lived
solely
for her position as Lochiel's wife, as if it
might
mislead a stranger into forgetting what she
herself
detested: that the taint of Cheysuli blood
also
ran in her veins.
"Undoubtedly,"
I agreed. "But I am here now;
proprieties
no longer matter." I glanced at her
then,
and saw the skirts were the deep, rich red
of the
thickest Homanan wine. She glittered with
jet.
All black and red, and white..,. Even to car-
mined
lips against the pallor of her flesh. She
bleaches
it deathly white, to hide the Cheysuli
taint.
"Who
is he?" She moved closer.
"A
man," I answered evenly, with off-handed
negligence.
Then, to prick her: "He may well be
Devin."
She
cast me a sharp, well-honed glance designed
to
discover the truth; I hid it behind the mask. I
had
learned it of my father, who said he had
learned
it to turn the witch from the door.
It was
his jest to say so. We are all of us witches.
4SS
416
Jennifer Robersoa
"Devin
or no, you had best take yourself else-
where,"
she said. "There are servants who can
tend
him, and I am better suited to intimacy than
you."
Aye, so
she would be; she encouraged it con-
stantly.
I
shrugged. "I have already seen him, I met
them in
the canyon when they brought him up;
they
wrapped him in a blanket, but that was taken
off
when they put him in the bed." I paused. "I
know
what a man looks like."
Carmined
lips compressed into a thin, retentive
seam.
She looked at the man lying so still in the
bed. He
was well-covered now, but I had seen the
naked
flesh. It was blue from the water, and slick
with
bleeding scrapes reopened by the ride. They
had
brought him to Valgaard trussed like a new-
killed
stag. The marks still dented wrists and
ankles.
"Will
he live?" she asked.
I
shrugged. "If my father desires him to."
Her
glance was sharp. "If he is Devin, be certain
your
father will indeed desire it."
I
shrugged again. Everyone in Valgaard knew I
was
meant to wed Devin of High Crags no matter
what /
wanted; men, particularly fathers, are not
often
disposed to ask women what they prefer.
My
father was less disposed to ask anything at
all of
anyone; Lochiel need never do so. What was
not
given, he took. Or made.
Well,
so did I. Given the chance.
I
looked at the man in the bed. Devin? Are you
Devin?
My
mother made a noise. She bent, studied his
scraped
and swollen face, then shook her head
slightly.
"He is damaged."
"Somewhat,"
I agreed dryly. "Whoever he is, he
survived
the Bluetooth. Worth respect, for that . ..
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 417
would
you expect a man who goes in handsome
to come
out better for it?"
He was,
at present, decidedly unhandsome; the
river
robs a body of the blood that lends flesh
color,
the heart that maintains life, and the spirit
to
drive the heart. He was a slab of flesh made
into
the form of a man, with two arms, a head,
and two
legs, though one of the legs was broken. I
had
seen the end of the bone pressing hard against
bruised
flesh below the knee, turning it white and
shiny,
but it had not broken through.
"His
ear is torn," she said, "and his lip badly
split."
"Aye,"
I agreed. There was much more than
that.
The entire left side of his face was mottled
black
with bruising, and bled colorless fluid from
abrasions.
"Turn back the covers, lady mother.
There
is worse yet to see."
She
did; I expected it. But she looked first at
something
that was not, so far as we knew, injured
by the
river. He was a man, and whole.
I shut
my teeth very tightly. There is in my
mother
a quality of need, as if she requires a man
to note
her beauty, to remark upon it, and to pro-
fess
his ardent interest. She is indeed beautiful,
but no
man in Valgaard is foolish enough to give
her
more than covert glances. She is Lochiel's
wife.
It had
never been so bad as the past two years.
I knew
its cause now, though realization was slow,
and
comprehension more sluggish yet. No daugh-
ter
desires to see her mother made jealous by her
daughter's
ascension to adulthood. But she was. It
had
been a hard truth, but I understood it at last.
Lochiel's
wife was jealous of Lochiel's daughter.
You
bore me, I said inwardly. How can you envy
the
child you yourself bore?
But her
power was negligible. She was Lochiel's
418
wife,
while I was his daughter. Her value therefore
was
finished; she had borne him a single girl-child
and
could bear him no more. Now the value
passed
to the daughter who would, if married
wisely,
insure the downfall of the Cheysuh.
It was
what she lived for. Despite that she was
the
bastard daughter of the Cheysuli warrior who
sat
upon the Lion in the Great Hall of Homana-
Mujhar.
"What
is this?" She touched his chest. "A knife
wound,
and deep."
I could
not see his body because of the way she
held
the blankets, but I did not need to look. I
knew
what was there. The Bluetooth is cruel. "He
should
have bled to death, but the river sealed it.
When he
warms, it will bleed anew. We shall have
to be
ready."
She
studied him avidly, marking the- shape of
his
battered nose, the muddying of his jawline by
swollen
bruises, the mutiliated left ear. Even his
mouth,
as if she measured its shape against the
way she
might desire it to fit her own.
I drew
in a sharp breath. It sickened me to see
her
behave so.
She
looked on him, and smiled. Then she looked
at me.
Something dark moved in her eyes. "You
may
have him."
It
stopped the breath in my chest. That she
could
suggest such a thing was monstrous. She
would
give me my bridegroom because he was so
badly
hurt as to make him unattractive, and there-
fore
unworthy of her interest.
Revulsion
filled me. I looked at the man in the
bed, so
battered, bruised, and broken. / hope you
are
handsome. Ami I hope she chokes on it!
"Now,"
she said, "I will order the women in.
We will
do what we can do ... I must make cer-
tain my
daughter does not lose the man before the
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 419
bedding."
She said a single word, very quietly—
she is,
after all, Ihlini—and women came into the
chamber.
They
stripped him of bedclothes and began to
clean
his body, swabbing gouges and scrapes,
cleaning
the knife wound. He made no sound or
movement
until they touched his leg, and then he
roused.
The
indrawn hiss was hardly audible in the fuss
around
his bed, but I heard it. The tendons in his
neck
stood up, hard and rigid, beneath pale flesh.
My
mother put her hand on his brow, pushing
away
stiffened hair. It was black as my own, and
thick,
but lacking luster. Sand crusted the pillow.
"Fever,"
she said crisply. "Malenna root, then."
I looked
at her sharply. "It will leave him too
weak!"
"You
see how he fights the pain. I need him
weak,
and compliant, so the root may do its
work."
So you
can assert your control. But I did not say
it.
With no
word spoken, the women melted against
the
walls, faces downtumed. I knew, without look-
ing, my
father had come. " 'Sore hurt,' I was told."
He
walked through the door. "The leg must t»e
set."
"You
could heal it," I blurted, then wished I had
said
nothing; one does not suggest to my father
what he
can or cannot do.
My
father smiled. "We do not yet know who
he is.
He could well be Homanan—why waste the
Seker's
gift on a man who is unworthy?" He ges-
tured.
"I will set it by conventional means."
That
meant splints and linen. They were
brought,
and my father motioned for the women
to hold
him down. He clasped the bruised ankle,
then
pulled the bone straight.
420
Jennifer Robersoo
I
watched the man who might be Devin, and
therefore
meant for me. Eyes rolled beneath pale,
vein-threaded
lids. His head thrashed until one of
the
woman caught it between her hands and
stopped
its movement. The tendons stood up
again,
warping his neck; the battered mouth
opened.
It split the lip again so that it bled, run-
ning
down his chin to drip against his neck. It'
spilled
into the creases and stained the pillow.
;-
Brilliant
crimson against the pallor of fragile
4
flesh.
Devin's flesh?
I felt
a frisson of nervous anticipation. If he were
Devin,
he was to be, with me, a means to destroy
the
prophecy. I could not help but hope he was
indeed
Devin so that our plans could continue; we
were
close, too close, my father said, to losing the
battle.
Kellin, Prince of Homana, need only sire a
son and
the thing was done.
<
But I
smiled as I thought of it. Indeed, he need
only
sire a son upon a particular woman—but Kel-
lin had
proved all too selfish with respect to his
conduct.
For years my father had laughed to hear
of the
prince's exploits, saying that so long as Kel-
lin
behaved in such a wayward manner he actu-
ally
aided us, but I knew it could not last. He
would
have to die, so that we could be certain.
It
seemed a simple task. Kill Kellin of Ho-
mana—and
produce an Ihlini child blessed by the
Seker
so we need never concern ourselves with the
prophecy
ever again.
The
blood ran freely from the split lip. My
mother
made a sound of disgust. I wanted very
badly
to take up a clean cloth and blot away the
blood,
to press it against his lip so he would not
lose
more, but I dared not be so intimate before ,,,
my
father.
,
"There." My father placed the splints on either
side of
his leg, then bound it tightly with linen.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
421
The
mouth went slack again. His struggle had
done
more then reopen his lip; now blood flowed
sluggishly
from his swollen nose.
My
mother smiled to see it. "A most unfortunate
accident."
My
father's gaze was on her, steady and un-
flinching.
I could not discern his thoughts. "He
will
recover," he said, "provided Asar-Suti desires
him
to." He looked now at me. "I will certainly
request
it. We need this man."
1
stiffened. "Is it Devin?"
"They
have searched his baggage more closely.
A pouch
contained the ring you sent last year, a
cache
of ward-stones, and the eagle claw charm
against
lir intrusion. And—this." He held it up in
the
light. It was a gold ring set with a deep blood-
red
stone, nearly black; in its heart light stirred
as if
roused from sleep. My father smiled. "It
knows
me."
"A
lifestone!" my mother said, then looked more
closely
at the man in the bed.
I shut
my teeth together. ~It makes a difference,
does
it? You look again to see if he might present a
different
face.
"Devin
would have one, of course; he is sworn
to the
Seker." My father's pale brown eyes looked
at me
over the glinting lifestone- "Unless this man
is a
thief who stole from Devin, then fell into the
water,
I think it unlikely he is anyone else."
My
mother frowned. "It is set in a ring. Why
would
he not wear it?"
His
gaze dwelled on her face. "Solinde is not
entirely
ours, anymore. Even in High Crags, men
honor
the shapechanger who holds court in Lestra.
An
Ihlini sworn to the god cannot move so freely
now
without taking precautions. He was wise to
put it
away."
My
mother's carmined lips compressed. "That
422
Jennifer Roberson
will be
changed. We shall rule again, as in the
days of
Tynstar and Bellam."
Lochiel laughed.
"Did you know them
personally?"
Color
flared in her cheeks; she, as I, heard the
irony.
"I know as much of our history as anyone,
Lochiel.
Despite my Cheysuli blood!"
"Ah,
but my blood is theirs." He smiled. "Tyn-
star
was my grandsire."
It
silenced her at once. Even among the Ihlini,
who
understood his power, Lochiel was different.
It was
easy to forget how old he was, and how
long-lived
his ancestors.
I
smiled to myself. Tynstar, Strahan, Lochiel—
and now
Ginevra. I am their legacy. It was more
than
she claimed, and Melusine knew it.
"Shall
we see if he is Devin?" My father held
the
ring in such a way that the light sparked from
it.
"If he is an opportunist who decides, upon
awakening,
he would benefit from our care, we
can
take steps now to present him with the lie."
I
looked at the ring. Light moved within it slug-
gishly.
Indeed, it did know my father; the blood
of the
god ran in his veins, as it did in the veins
of all
those sworn to Asar-Suti. I as yet claimed
none of
it outside of my natural inheritance; I was
to
drink the cup at my wedding, to seal my service
forever
to the Seker.
"Will
it kill him?" my mother asked.
Lochiel
smiled at her, "If he is not Devin, as-
suredly."
He held the ring. "My gift to you, Melu-
sine—adjudicate
this man."
"Wait!"
I blurted, and regretted it at once as my
father
turned to me.
Carmined
lips stretched back to display my
mother's
white teeth. "No," she said venomously.
"He
gives you everything—this he gives to me!"
She
snatched the ring, bent over the unconscious
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
423
man,
grasped his left hand and pushed the ring
onto
his forefinger. "Burn," Melusine said. "If you
are not
Devin, let the godfire devour you!"
"You
want it to!" I cried. "By the god himself,
I
think—" But my accusation died as godfire flared
up from
the ring, a clean and livid purple. I fell
back a
step even as my mother did, who laughed.
"You
see?" she said. "Not Devin at all!"
But the
burst of flame died. The hand was un-
blemished.
Light glowed brilliantly deep in the
lifestone's
heart.
"Ah,"
Lochiel said. "A premature assumption."
"Then—it
is he?" I looked at the ring upon the
hand.
"This is Devin."
"It
appears so- A lifestone is linked to an Ihlini
as a Hr
is linked to a Cheysuli." For a brief mo-
ment he
frowned, looking at Devin. "It is but an-
other
parallel . .." But he let it go. "We will have
confirmation
when he awakens."
I drew
in a breath and asked it carefully. "Then
why not
heal him instead of relying on normal
means?"
Lochiel
smiled. "Because even Devin must learn
that he
is solely dependent on me for such paltry
things
as his life." He extended his hand. My
mother
took it. "Nurse him well, Ginevra. There
is no
better way to judge a man than from the
depths
of pain. It is difficult to lie when your
world
is afire."
He led
my mother from the room. They would
go to
bed, I knew. It made my face bum; I did not
understand
what need it was they answered, save
there
was one, only that they seemed to be, in all
ways
such private things are measured, particu-
larly
well suited.
One of
the women blotted away the blood on
Devin's
face. Another came forward with a cup.
Malenna
root, I knew, mixed in with water. I
424
Jennifer Robersoa
wanted
to protest it, but did not; it was true he
needed
the fever purged. If it weakened him too
much, I
would prevail upon my father to make
certain
he survived,
My
father wanted a child. An heir to Valgaard,
and the
legacy of the Ihlini. If I did not marry
Devin,
we would have to find someone else whose
blood
was proper. Why waste the time? The man
was
right here.
I sat
down on a stool and stared at him. Live, I
told
him. There is much for you to learn.
And as
much for me.
I had
seen my parents' marriage. I was not so
certain
I desired the same for myself.
I
sighed. The Seker grant me the knowledge I need
to make
my way in this. I want to serve my father—
but I
want to serve me also!
Two
The
fever broke before dawn. The malenna root
did its
work, purging his body of impurities so
that
the sweat ran upon his flesh. The worst was
done, I
thought; now could come the healing. It
would
take much time because of the severity of
his
injuries, but I believed he would survive.
The
women my mother had left to tend him slid
sidelong
glances at me as they cleaned him. They
dared
say nothing to me, though I knew they felt
it
improper for me to remain in attendance. But
he was
my bridegroom; how could they believe I
would
not be interested in whether he lived or
died?
I sat
upon a stool close to his side. He fascinated
me. I
wanted to study him covertly so he need
never
know. A man awake is too aware of his pride
and the
manner of his appearance; I wanted to
know him
without such impediments.
His
breathing sounded heavy in his chest. The
wad of
bandage pressed over the knife wound
came
away soiled with blood and fluid, but seemed
clean
enough. It did not stink of infection. It was
a
simple wound, if deep; with care he would
recover.
He
stirred and moaned, twisting his head against
the
pillow. The oozing of the scrapes on his face
had
stopped and his skin had begun to dry, puck-
ering
the flesh into a crusted film. The hollows
425
426
Jennifer Roberson
beneath
his eyes were darkened by bruising. Eye-
lids
flickered. His lashes were as long as mine, and
as
thick.
Incongruous
thought; I banished it. Then sum-
moned
it back again as I studied the fit of his
swollen
nose into the space between his eyes, be-
neath
arched black eyebrows. He was badly bruised,
aye,
but I thought my mother was blind. She
could
not see beyond the wreckage wrought by the
river
to the good bones beneath.
/ think
when you are healed, you might surprise
us all.
I drew in a breath. "Devin?"
Lids
flickered again, then opened. His eyes were
a clear
brilliant green, but glazed with weakness.
Malenna
root, I knew; it would rob him of his wits
for
longer than I preferred. I wanted them back.
I
scraped my stool closer, so he could see me.
His
lips were badly swollen and crusted with
dried
blood. He moved them, winced, then took
more
care as he shaped the words. They—it—was
malformed,
but clear enough. "Who—?"
I
smiled. "Ginevra."
I
waited. I expected him to respond at once that
he was
Devin, or to make some indication he knew
who I
was. Instead, he touched his mangled bot-
tom lip
with an exploratory tongue tip, felt its
state,
and withdrew the tongue. Lids closed a mo-
ment,
then lifted again.
"Your
name?" I persisted, desiring verbal con-
firmation
in addition to the lifestone.
A faint
frown puckered his forehead. With the
hair
swept back I could see it was unmarred; the
river
had spared him her savagery there, at least.
"My
leg ..." A hand moved atop the furred cover-
let, as
if it would pull the blanket aside.
"No."
I stopped the hand with my own- "Your
leg is
broken, but it has been set." The hand
A
TAPESTRY OF LlO!VS
427
stilled.
I removed mine. "Do you recall what
happened?"
The
forehead puckered again. "What place is
this?"
"Valgaard."
There
was no change of expression in his eyes.
What I
saw there was a puzzled blankness.
It had
to be the malenna. "Valgaard," I repeated.
He
moved his mouth carefully. His words were
imprecise.
"What is—Valgaard?"
It
astounded me. I turned sharply to one of the
women.
"How much malenna was he given?"
She
paled. "No more than usual, Lady."
"Too
much," I declared. "No more—do you
hear?"
"Aye,
Lady." She stared hard at the floor.
He
moved slightly, and I looked back at once.
"Why
am I here?" he asked.
"This
is where you are supposed to be. But you
were
hurt. There was a fight—you fell into the
river."
Or was pushed; how-better to hide a body?
"The
river?"
Indeed,
too much root. "The Bluetooth." I stud-
ied him
more closely, marking the dullness of his
eyes.
More black than green in reflection of the
root.
"Do you truly recall none of it? Not even the
man who
stabbed you?"
"I
remember—being cold—" He paused. "—
heavy."
The eyes closed, then opened. Their clar-
ity was
improved, but not their knowledge. "No
more ..
." He stirred. "—head hurts."
"The
Bluetooth," I repeated, beginning to un-
derstand.
If he had struck his head, which was
entirely
likely in the river, he would likely be con-
fused
for a day or two. Combined with the root, it
was
fortunate he was conscious at all. "It will
come
back on its own," I promised. "You will
428
Jennifer Robersoa
know
where you are, and that you are safe ..." I
paused.
"Devin."
"Is
that—I am Devin?"
I
grinned. "Tell me when you are certain."
He
looked at me more closely, "Who are you?"
Your
bride, I answered, but could not say it
aloud.
"Ginevra."
He
repeated it after me, rolling the soft, sibilant
first
syllable between his teeth an extra moment.
His
accent was odd, more Homanan than Solin-
dish,
but Devin is a High Crags man, from high
up on
the border between the two lands. I had
heard
the speech before. "How long—?"
"You
were brought yesterday. My father sent
out a
search party since you were so late." I
smiled
wryly. "You are valuable. It was of some
concern."
"Why?"
The struggle was in his eyes. "I remem-
ber
none of it—"
"Hush."
I leaned forward. "Do not tax yourself
... it
will come."
"I
should remember." Dampness glistened on
his
forehead. He made more sense as conscious-
ness
solidified. "Who am I, that my tardiness is
worth a
search party?"
"Devin
of High Crags." I hope it might light the
snuffed
candle of his mind.
He
tried. "No . .."
No help
for it. It was best simply to say it. "We
are
meant to be wed."
The
candle within lighted, blazing in his eyes, but
the
knowledge was not increased. "WedE When?"
His
mouth taxed him badly. "I remember noth-
ing—"
I
sighed. "Know this, then, so you need not re-
main in
ignorance. I am Ginevra of the Ihlini,
daughter
of Lochiel—and we are meant to wed so
we can
bring down the Cheysuli." I stopped short,
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 429
seeing
the expression in his eyes. "The Cheysuli,"
I
repeated. "Do you recall nothing of them?"
"—a
word—"
"A
bad word." I sighed. "Let it go, Devin. It will
come
back, and all will be remembered."
"Who
am I?"
"Devin
of High Crags." I smiled. "Like me, you
are
Ihlini." It was a bond stronger than any, and
he
would know it once his mind was restored.
He
sighed. "Ihlini, Cheysuli ... nothing but
words
to me. I could be either and never know it."
I
laughed. "You would know," I told him. "Be
certain
you would know, when you went before
the
god."
His
eyes snapped open. "The god?"
"Asar-Suti."
He knew all of it, but I would tell
him
regardless. "My father will take you before
the
Seker. The god requires your oath. You are to
wed
Lochiel's daughter, and Lochiel is the Seker's
most
beloved servant. It is necessary." I smiled.
"There
is no need for you to worry. You are Ihlini.
The
Seker will know it, just as your lifestone
does."
He
followed the line of my gaze and saw the
ring
upon his hand. He lifted the hand into the au-
to
study the stone, saw how his fingers trembled
and
lowered it again. "I—have no memory of this
ring."
That
was of concern. He was indeed badly dam-
aged in
his mind if he forgot what a lifestone was.
But I
dared not tell him that. "It will come to
you."
His
eyes were slitted. "You—will have to teach
me. I
have forgotten it all."
"But
surely not this." I drew a rune in the air.
It was
only a small one; it lacked the intricacy of
my
mother's handiwork, but was impressive
enough
if you have never seen it—or if one has
430
Jennifer Roberson
forgotten
what godfire looks like. It glowed livid
purple.
He
stared at it, transfixed. His fingers trembled
upon
the fur-"Can I—do that?"
"Once,
you must have. It is the first one we ever
leam."
I left the rune glowing so he would have a
model.
"Try it."
He
lifted his hand and I saw how badly it shook.
Awkwardly
he attempted to sketch the rune, but
his
fingers refused to follow the pattern. It was if
they
had never learned it.
The
hand dropped to the bed. He was exhausted.
"If
I knew it once, I have forgotten."
I
dismissed my own rune. It was somewhat dis-
comfiting
to discover an Ihlini who could not even
form
the simplest rune, but not surprising. He
would
recall it. For the moment his mind was
empty
of power, of the knowledge of his magic,
like a
young child. "It will come again." I paused.
"If
it does not, be certain I will teach you."
The
lips moved faintly, as if to form a smile.
But his
eyelids dropped closed. The root was reas-
serting
its control.
I rose
quietly. He looked very young and vulner-
able.
Against his hand the lifestone was black.
Black,
not red.
"It
will come back," I said.
At the
door, as I lifted the latch, I heard a sound.
I
turned back and saw the faint glint of green eyes.
"Ginevra,"
he said, as if to try out the fit of my
name
within his mouth.
I
smiled. "Aye."
The
lids closed again. "Beautiful," he whispered.
Nonplussed,
I did not answer. I did not know if
he
meant my name, or the woman who bore it.
Then I
thought of my mother. I could not help
but
smile. You gave him to me, I thought. Now let
you see
what comes of it.
A
TAPESTRY w Lions 431
I went
at once to my father. With him was my
mother,
who sat upon a window seat in my fa-
ther's
tower chamber and gazed down upon the
smoky
bestiary before the gates. I thought she was
very
like the fortress, strong, proud, and fierce. I
wished
I could like her, but that had died. I knew
her
heart now, and the knowledge bruised my
own.
"He
remembers nothing," I told them. "Not
even
his name."
My
father stood before a burning tripod brazier.
It
turned his eyes bronze. He waited.
"I
told him. I told him mine as well, and that
we are
to wed. I told him where he is. But he
recalls
none of it ... not even that he is Ihlini."
That
brought my mother's head around. Bells
tinkled
in her hair. "He forgets that?"
I
refused to flinch beneath the contempt. "He
has
been badly injured. It will come back."
"Did
you test him?" my father asked.
I
flattened my palms against my skirts and held
my
hands very still. "What magic he knew is for-
gotten.
Even bel'sha'a. He is a child, my lord fa-
ther—an
infant empty of power." I took a careful
breath,
knowing what I said was incredibly impor-
tant.
"If you sought a tool, you could not find a
better
one. He has nothing on which to rely save
what we
give him. There are no preconceptions.
How
better to teach the man how to serve the
master
than by replacing the old memories with
the
new?"
Only
the faintest glint in his eyes betrayed his
interest.
I knew I had caught him. Now there was
no need
for subtlety.
My
father smiled. I saw him glance at my
mother
who watched him with narrowed eyes.
Hers,
too, are pale brown, though not like his; hers
432
are
almost golden except when the light hits them
fully,
and then the Cheysuli shows.
"He
shall be mine," Lochiel said.
I put
up my chin. It was time I declared myself
lest
she do it first. "But you will share him with
me."
My
father laughed. "I shall do better than that.
He
shall be your charge until I believe the time is
right .
- - you may have the training of him. In all
things."
I could
not help the burst of pride in my chest.
Never
had he bestowed upon me such a gift. It
was a
mark of his acknowledgment of my blood.
He was
giving me the opportunity to serve my
heritage.
Still,
I hesitated. "Are you sure I am worthy?"
He
laughed. "You need not fear that you might
tarnish
the vessel. I will be here for you ... I will
see
what you do. He is meant for the god, Ginevra,
as you
are. Do you think I would give him immor-
tality
only to have you watch him sicken and die
the way
others do?"
"Lochiel!"
my mother cried. "You promise too
much."
"Do
I?" His tone was cool. "Do you wish it for
you in
place of your daughter?"
Color
stained her face. "You have never sug-
gested
it. Even when I asked—"
He made
a subtle gesture with his hand. I had
seen it
before; I had tried to mimic it desperately
because
it always silenced my mother. "Melu-
sine,"
he said, "you live here on my sufferance."
Her red
lips trembled, then firmed. "I am your
wife."
"That
does not make you worthy of the Seker's
favor."
Her
eyes blazed almost yellow. "You promise it
to
her\"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 433
He
stood next to me. His hand was on my shoul-
der.
The fingers crept into my hair, which hung
loose
to my hips, and I felt the warmth of his flesh
through
the velvet of my gown. "Ginevra is the
flesh
of my flesh, the blood of my blood, the bone
of my
bone," he said quietly. "Her mind is mine
as
well. You are none of these things ... I used
you to
get the child, and now I have her."
"Lochiel!"
His
other hand rose. I could see it from the cor-
ner of
my eye. I looked at my mother because I
could
look nowhere else. "Melusine," he said, "I
have
cared for you. You bore me a child. You suck-
led
Kellin of Homana when I bid you do it. You
have
served me well. But you surely must see that
you and
your daughter are destined for different
ends."
"I
bore her!" It was her only chance now.
"In
blood and pain; I know it. But so do the
mares,
and the cows, and the ewes . .. and they
are not
elevated by the honor of the Seker." He
paused.
"Surely you must see."
Her
face was very pale. "You mean me to die,
then."
"Not
before due time."
"Before
her time!"
Lochiel
sighed. "You are a shrew."
It was
incongruous. He was the most powerful
sorcerer
in the entire world, yet all he did was call
my
mother a name.
It
infuriated her; I saw then what he did. "A
shrew!
In the name of Asar-Suti, are you mad? A
shrew?"
My
father laughed. There was something be-
tween
them I could not understand. "Melusine, do
you
believe you have displeased me? You are all
I could
wish for. You suit me."
JeaaSfer
Robenoa
434
Her
eyes glinted yellow. "Then why do you
threaten
me?"
"To
relieve my boredom." He smoothed my
hair,
then released it. "She is lovely, our Ginevra
. ..
and this binding of the bloodlines will insure
our
survival. But Devin must go before the god.
The
blessing is required."
My
mother was less angry now, but still unset-
tled.
She hated to be used; before, I ^iad not seen
it. I
was old enough now to begin to understand.
"And
if the blessing is denied?" She cast me a
glance.
"What happens to Devin then?"
"He
dies/* Lochiel said.
My
mother looked at me and laughed.
I could
not echo her. I knew she hoped he would.
Three
"A
fool," I told him.
He
ignored me. He sat up anyway and swung
his
legs over the edge of the bed. I watched not
the
splinted leg itself, which was at issue, but the
face of
the man who struggled to redeem himself
in the
eyes of the woman he was meant to wed.
It
meant something to him. It meant a great
deal to
him. It pleased me to know why; that of
all
things in the world to come unexpectedly, we
would
make a match between a man and a woman
who
loved one another.
His
color was much improved. A lock of black
hair,
now clean and glossy, fell forward over his
forehead.
The swelling of his face was gone, so
that
the clean lines of nose and brow formed a
perfect
melding, complementing the oblique angles
of his
cheekbones and the clarity of his eyes
framed
in sooty lashes that rivaled my own.
"A
fool," I murmured, applying it to myself
though
he believed it meant for him. Never had I
thought
I could love a man the way I loved Devin,
and we
not even wed yet. We were, as yet, nothing
but
intendeds; but they all knew, everyone, despite
our
circumspection. It was easier for them to
know
than for us to admit it. As yet, we said noth-
ing of
it.
The
ends of the splint tapped down; Devin
winced.
It would not stop him, I knew; I had
435
436
Jennifer Roberson
learned
that much of him in the past few weeks.
A
stubborn, intransigent man.
And
entirely beautiful, in the way a man can be
who is
clearly a man. Male, I thought, Expressly,
completely
male. like the cats in the undercroft.
I
wanted to laugh. My mother had lost. It
pleased
me intensely that he was as I expected,
as I
had dreamed between sleep and wakefulness,
when my
body would not be quiet. I understood,
now,
what lay between my parents.
"Devin—"
I shook my head. "It is not necessary.
I know
you are not a weakling ... let it heal."
His
mouth was compressed in a grim. Hat line.
He
intended to try again. I sighed and set my
teeth;
he would only damage himself.
I made
a slight gesture from my chair, so that
the
bindings undid themselves and the splints fell
away.
Unbound, the leg was ill-suited to standing.
Devin
looked at the fallen linen and the wooden
sticks.
"You did that."
I
arched my brows. "I did warn you."
"No—you
called me a fool."
"That
was my warning."
He
scowled. Beneath black brows, his eyes glit-
tered
like glass. "I cannot stand without aid."
"No."
He
sighed. "The lesson is duly learned. Will you
bind it
up again?"
He
would not admit it, but the leg hurt. Forgo-
ing
magic, because I longed so much to touch him,
I knelt
on the ground and bound it up by hand
again.
The flesh was flaccid and soft. The bones
inside
knit, but the muscles were wasting,
He
watched me as I tied the knots. His voice
was
hoarse, as if he held back something he longed
to say.
"If we Ihlini are truly as powerful as you
say,
why leave healing to splints and linen bind-
ings?
Why not ensorcell my leg?"
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS
437
I sat
down in my chair again. We spent much
time
together in the small chamber, as I taught
him
what he knew already but did not recall. "My
father
desired you to know limitations."
"Ah."
His mouth hooked down.
"And
there is another reason. Healing is a Chey-
suli
gift."
"It
would seem a benevolent gift. Perhaps if I
had a
Cheysuli here . . ." He grinned. "I see a
storm
in your eyes."
"You
should. Besides, a Cheysuli here in Val-
gaard
would have no power. It is because of the
Gate—the
Seker is too strong. The only magic here
is that
which he makes himself."
Devin's
expression was serious. "And when will
I see
him?"
"When
my father wishes you to." I sketched on"-
neth.
"Try it, Devin."
"I
have tried."
"Again."
He put
his hand into the air. His other was
naked
of lifestone; he had taken it off because, in
losing
weight, the ring would not seat itself prop-
erly.
"Your father has not come to me again. How
is he
to know when I am ready?"
"Make
the rune. He will know."
"Because
you will tell him?"
"No
one tells Lochiel anything; no one has to.
My
father knows things." I sighed. "Devin—"
He
tried. Fingers warped, twisted, mimicking
the
patterns. Only the barest outline appeared,
and
then he let his hand drop. "There. You see?"
"You
mastered bel'sha'a," I reminded him.
"Ori'neth
comes next."
Devin
was glum. "I have no aptitude."
I
laughed at him outright. "Aptitude! You are
Ihlini."
I smiled at his disgruntlement. "It was
better.
This time I could see the air parting. When
438
Jennifer Robersoa
you can
separate the air and put the godfire in the
seam
between air and air, you will have learned
the
trick." I paused. "You learned bel'sha'a."
"In
six weeks," he said. "I will be an old man
before
I learn the third level, and useless as a hus-
band."
He scowled at me. "What use are such
tricks,
Ginevra? They could not stop a man."
"These
could not. it is true .. . but these are the
first
runes, Devin. This is a baby's game, to keep
the
child occupied." I laughed as the scowl deep-
ened.
"But you are a baby! I could make bel'sha'a
when I
was three years old. A six-month later I
mastered
ori'neth. I have no doubt it was the same
for
you—you have only forgotten. The river stole
your
wits."
"I
may never get them back."
He was
depressed. I pulled my chair closer, hesi-
tated a
moment, then leaned forward and caught
his
hand. It was an intimacy I would not have
dared
two weeks before, but something I needed
now. I
wanted to lessen the pain of his weakness.
And
increase your own?
I went
on regardless, ignoring my conscience.
"An
Ihlini does not gain his powers until he
reaches
adolescence, and even then it takes years
to
focus all the skills. I am not so well-versed my-
self."
I was, but no need to tell him that; I was
Lochiel's
daughter, and the blood showed itself. "I
am a
child leading an infant, but who better to
recall
the days when a simple trick proved diffi-
cult?
See this?" I made a gesture and felt the tin-
gling
coldness in my fingertips. The godfire came
as I
bid it, luridly purple. It hung in a glowing
sheet
between Devin and me, but our hands re-
mained
linked. "This is—"
He
jerked his hand from mine and lifted it as if
to
shred the godfire. I tore it aside before he burned
A
r/iffEsrar OF Liofvs
439
himself;
he did not yet know how to ward himself.
A sheen
of perspiration coated his face, "Ginevra—"
"What
is it?" 1 left my chair and knelt by the
bedside.
"Devin—what is it?"
"That—that—"
His eyes were frightened. "I re-
member.
Dimly. Fire—flame . . ." He closed his
eyes.
His body went slack against the pillows.
"Why
can I remember no more?"
"It
will come," I told him, as I had so many
times.
He shifted
against the bedclothes. "How can you
be
certain? How can you know? And if I am not
able to
master such things .. ." The chiseled lips
compressed
themselves flat, robbing them of shape.
"An
Ihlini with no arts is hardly fit to be wed to
Lochiel's
daughter."
I took
his hand into my own and pressed it
against
my mouth. "He will be fit," I said. "I will
see to
it."
Devin's
eyes were black. His breathing was shal-
low and
quick. "Can you do such a thing?"
Against
his flesh, I said, '*! can do many things."
The
hand turned in my own. He caught my fin-
gers,
carried my hand to his mouth, and let me
feel
the hardness of his teeth in the tenderness of
his
lips, "Show me," he breathed,
I
shuddered once. "Not—yet."
"When?"
It was a
difficult truth, but he was due it rather
than
lies. "When my father is convinced you are
fit to
serve the god."
Devin's
breath was warm against my hand as
he
laughed softly. "Fathers need not always rule
their
daughters in such matters as this."
"Mine
does." I pulled free of his grasp. "If you
forget
that, even once, it could be your death."
"Ginevra—"
"He
is Lochiel," I said; I knew it was enough.
440
JeaalCer Roberwn
The
tension in his body fled. His mouth moved
faintly
into an ironic smile. And then it, too, died,
and I
saw in its place a harrowing despair. "I have
nothing,"
he said. "I am nothing—save what you
make
me."
It
shook me. "You are Devin."
"I
am no one," he said, "save what you tell me.
I am
denned by you." His eyes burned livid as
god/ire,
save they were green in place of purple.
"You
are my sanity."
I
petitioned the Seker to lend him the strength
to find
his own sanity, lest mine prove too weak.
And
then I left the room. I wanted too badly to
give him
what he asked.
When
the splint at last came off and Devin was
able to
stand, I learned he was taller than I had
expected.
He had lost flesh in his illness, but
movement
and better meals would restore him.
Within
the week the crutch was tossed away and
he
walked freely on his own. With renewed mobil-
ity
came vigor and curiosity to see where I lived.
He
walked easily enough, but I saw the trace of
tension
in his mouth and around his eyes. I
wanted
him to see all of Valgaard so he would
know it
as I did; it was to be his home. It was
important
that he understand the kind of power
contained
in the fortress, so he would not forget
himself—once
he had relearned the arts—and
wield
it improperly.
He
progressed at last from ori'neth to H'ri'a. The
rune
pattern was roughly worked, but achieved,
glowing
fitfully in the air. He was most pleased
that it
smoked and sputtered, shedding bits of
godfire;
I reminded him that control was more
important
than appearance.
"You
require new clothing," I told him as we
walked
the cobbled courtyard.
A
TAPESTKY OF LIONS
441
"I
have clothing. And you have already said ap-
pearance
is unimportant."
"Not
unimportant; less important—and that is
in
wielding magic, not wearing clothing." I cast a
sidelong
glance. "I want you to have better. These
do not
fit well enough."
"And
if I gain back the weight you say I have
lost,
the new clothing will not." He touched my
cheek.
"Let it be, Ginevra. I am content with what
I
have."
"Then
at least wear the ring." I took it from the
pouch
hanging from my girdle. "Here. I sent it to
you
last year. The least you can do is wear it in
my
presence."
He took
the emerald from me, studying it. I saw
the
flattening of his mouth. "Even this I do not
recall.
Any more than the other ring."
"No
matter. Put it on."
He did
so. The gold band turned on his finger.
I saw
the look in his eye.
"Bind
it with wool," I said. "When you are well,
it will
fit."
He was
frustrated and angry. "Will I ever be
well?"
"Dev—"
He
stopped dead in his tracks, capturing my
shoulders
in hands well recovered from his illness.
'"Will
my memory return? Or am I sentenced to
spend
the rest of my life but half a man, able only
to form
the rune a child of two could make?"
It hurt
me to see him so affected. If I could pro-
vide
help—
I
could. It was up to me to risk it.
I
sighed. "I think it is time . , . come with me."
"Where?"
"To
my father."
The
black in his eyes expanded. "You would
shame me
before Lochiel?"
Jennifer
Roberson
442
"There
is no shame in this. My father under-
stands."
He shut
up the ring in his hand as it turned
on his
finger. "Can Lochiel restore me? Or is that
healing
also, and therefore anathema?"
"Come,"
I said firmly, putting my hand on his
arm.
"Ask him instead of me."
The
room was empty as we entered. It was a
small
private chamber tucked up into one of the
towers,
draped with rune-worked cloth to soften
the
walls, filled with a jumble of chairs and tables,
and
candleracks sculpted to new forms by hard-
ened
streamers of creamy wax. My father pre-
ferred
the chamber when he desired to have
private
discussions; he saw no need for opulence
among
his family.
Devin
was nonetheless impressed. It takes peo-
ple
that way, to witness power incarnate. It lived
in the
room. It was woven into the very cloth that
warded
the stone walls.
None of
the candles was lighted in my father's
absence.
I blew a gentle breath that set them all
ablaze,
laughed at Devin's expression, then threw
myself
down in a chair and hooked a leg over the
arm. An
undecorous position, perhaps, but mod-
esty
was protected by voluminous skirts; I had, of
late,
put off hunting trews to wear silks and vel-
vets.
Even my hair was tamed; I contained it with
a
simple silver circlet, so that it did not spring
forth
from my scalp quite so exuberantly. I knew
Devin
liked it loose; he watched me most avidly
from
his sickbed when I combed it out after a
washing-
It took two days to dry; if I wanted it
uncrimped,
I had to leave it loose.
Devin
heaved a sign and examined the room.
His
spine was very rigid. Nervous—and for what?
He will
be Lochiel's son. "Be at ease," I suggested.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
443
•^i
'•"%
- T'
'"You
be at ease." Then he grinned at me. "I
daresay
you would feel as I do were you to face
the
Cheysuli Mujhar."
"Never."
I smiled serenely. "But that is not the
case—and
you are Ihlini, not Cheysuli. What have
you to
fear?" I slanted an arch glance at him. "Be-
sides,
you say you have no memories. How are
you to
be nervous when you know nothing of the
man?"
Devin
jeered, though not unkindly. "You have a
ready
tongue. You put it to his name often enough
.. .
'Lochiel' this—'Lochiel' that. What else am I
to feel
but unworthy of him?"
"Oh,
you are unworthy—" I grinned, "—but he
will
lift that from you. When you face Asar-Suti,
Lochiel
will no longer seem half so bad as now."
"Ah.
I am comforted." He folded his arms. "Are
we to
wait all day on the chance he might come?
Or will
you send someone for him?" He paused.
"Is
he even in the fortress?"
"He
is here." I tilted my head. "Very much
here."
And he
was, all of a sudden, arriving as he does
to
impress whoever waits. I wanted to chide him
for
excess display, but one does not chide Lochiel.
Violet
smoke roiled in the center of the cham-
ber.
Devin stepped back hastily, mouthing an oath
he had
learned from me, and stared transfixed as
the
smoke transformed itself into the shape of a
man.
"Close
your mouth," I hissed.
Devin
acquiesced. My father smiled. "That," he
said
quietly, "is something you should be able to
do."
The sun
had returned color to Devin's flesh.
Now he
burned darker. "Perhaps I could, once."
Lochiel,
in his youth, did not appear much older
than
Devin. "Has nothing come back?"
Jennifer
Roberson
444
"No
memories." He glanced at me. "Ginevra has
told me
what she could of myself, but the words
mean
nothing. I must believe whatever she tells
me; it
is the only truth I know."
My
father's gaze was unrelenting, "What are
you
able to do?"
Devin
laughed, though it lacked humor. He put
out his
hand. He drew li'ri'a. It was a child's trick,
but he
could do no better. I did not wonder at
the
bitterness of his laughter. "That," he said, and
banished
it.
My
father's voice was gentle. "Do you find it
amusing?"
"In
no way- I find it pitiful, and myself,"
"Ah."
Lochiel smiled. "But I know who you are.
I know
what potential you hold. I would not have
chosen
you otherwise to sire sons upon my daugh-
ter."
Briefly he looked at me, and I saw a light in
his
eyes. "That you have forgotten your power
means
nothing to me. It will be restored. But first
you
must acknowledge it, instead of relying on the
belief
that you have forgotten all."
"But
I have—"
My
father reached out and caught Devin's right
wrist.
By the look in Devin's eyes I knew the grasp
was
firm. "Call for it now," Lochiel commanded.
"Summon
it to you. Let the power fill you com-
pletely,
and you will see what you must know."
Devin
was tense. "I have tried—"
"Try
again." Lochiel's tone was hard. "Do you
forget
I am with you?"
I saw
the alteration in Devin's eyes. He did in-
deed
reach for it. but clumsily. I held my breath,
knowing
what my father intended to do.
Devin
cried out. Wonder filled his face so that
his
eyes glowed with it, and then the light was
extinguished.
He cried out again, this time as if in
pain,
and fell to his knees even as my father re-
A
TAPSSTKY OF Uoivs
44S
leased
his wrist. His breathing was loud. "You
would
have—have me be—that—?"
Lochiel
looked down upon him. "That is what
you
are. It is what I desire of you: power aug-
mented
by service to the god, and a perfect obedi-
ence.
Not powerlessness, Devin. Never that; more."
My
father put a hand upon Devin's head. "To-
gether,
with that power, we can tear down the
House
of Homana and destroy the prophecy. Do
you
think I want a fool? Do you think I desire a
child?
I need a man, Devin, who can augment my
own
strength. A man to lie with my daughter and
sire
children for the Seker."
Devin
still knelt. His face was drained by the
knowledge
of what he had felt, of the power in
my
father. "How can I serve with such blankness
within
me?"
Lochiel
smiled. "You are empty. It will pass. We
will
see to it you are filled. The god himself will
do
it." He looked at me and smiled, then stretched
out his
hand. "Take my daughter. Get a son upon
her. The
wedding shall follow when I am certain
she has
conceived." He put our hands together,
flesh
against flesh.
I could
look at no one save Devin. My father's
voice
became a part of the chamber, like a chair
or a
hanging; one did not acknowledge such things
when
Devin was in the room.
His
eyes burned brilliant green. His spirit could
not
contain the avidity of his desire.
No more
than I could mine.
"There
is no need to wait," Lochiel said. "Much
is
lost, in waiting. The Wheel of Life is turning; if
we do
not stop it soon, our own lives will end."
Four
We had
blown out the candles and now lay abed,
delighting
in discovery. Devin's breath warmed
my
neck. "What did he mean?" His mouth shaped
the
words against my flesh. "Why do our lives end
if the
Wheel of Life keeps turning?"
"A
Cheysuli thing ..." I turned my head to kiss
his
chin; to savor the taste of his flesh. "Must we
speak
of this now?"
His
laughter was soft, as were his fingertips as
they
cherished my flesh. "Aye. You said you would
teach
me everything—well, perhaps not this."
Indeed
not this. It made me blush, to know my-
self so
wanton. "I am not the one to speak—" I
caught
my breath short and bit into my lip as
his
hand grew more insistent, "—but—it seems to
me—gods,
Devin\—that with all the wits you have
lost,
you did not forget this." I used his emphasis.
Devin
laughed again: a rumble deep in his chest.
His
hand moved to my breasts, tracing their con-
tours.
His flesh was darker than mine—I am Ihlini
fair,
and his eyes were green in place of my ice-
gray—but
our bones were similar. We Ihlini breed
true.
His
voice was vibrant. "A man forgets little in
the way
a body works in congress with a woman."
"So
it would seem." Our hips were sealed to-
gether.
I turned toward him again, glorying in the
feel of
his flesh against my own. "The Wheel of
446
A
TWESTHY OF LlWS
447
Life is
a Cheysuli thing. They speak in images.
often:
the Wheel, the Loom, and so on. They are,
if
nothing else, a colorful race." I traced the flesh
of his
chest, glad I could no longer count his ribs.
The
muscle was firm again. I avoided the scar left
over
from the healed knife wound. "This prophecy
of
theirs bids to end our people by making a new
race.
The Firstborn. If we keep them from that,
if we
destroy the prophecy, their Wheel will stop
turning,
and the world as we know it will continue
as it
is."
"As
it is?"
"Well—as
it should be. It will take time to turn
them
away from their gods. They are ignorant
people,
all of them."
"The
Cheysuli?"
It was
difficult to concentrate as I explored his
body.
"And others- The Homanans. The Ellasians.
The
island savages." I touched his lips with my
fingers.
"Even the Solindish must suffer—it is a
Cheysuli
warrior who holds the throne in Lestra."
"Heresy,"
he whispered; his tone was amused.
"So
it is."
"And
if we make a child, we can stop this
Wheel?"
"My
father is convinced."
He
turned then and put his hand on my belly,
spreading
his fingers. The warmth of his palm was
welcome.
"Have we made it, then?"
I
laughed. "Would it please you so much to be
quit of
your duty after a single night?"
"Duty?
Duty is something you do with no real
desire
for it." The hand tightened as he bent down
to
taste my mouth, "This is no duty."
Breathlessly,
I asked, "And if I have not con-
ceived?"
"Then
we will continue with this 'duty.' " His
Jennifer
Robervon
448
tongue
traced my eyelids. "Do you think I wish to
stop?"
It was
abrupt, the chill in my soul. I could not
answer.
He
sensed my mood immediately and ceased the
slow
seduction. "What is it?"
I was
reluctant to say it but felt I owed him
truth.
"There is a—strangeness—in you."
The
words were too facile. "When a man knows
nothing
of his past, strangeness is natural."
"Aye.
But—" I broke it off, sighing; this was not
a topic
I wished to pursue. Now.
He did.
"But?"
"I
wish—I wish you were whole. I wish you
knew
yourself. I wish you were all of a piece, so I
need
not wonder what bits and pieces may yet be
missing."
Devin
laughed. "I am whole where it counts."
"I
am serious."
In that
moment, so was he. Seduction and irony
fled.
He turned onto his back. Our hair mingled,
black
on black against the pallor of pillows.
Strands
of mine were wound around his forearm.
"Aye,
I wish I recalled my past—every day, I wish
it, and
in the darkness of the nights ... but it is
gone.
There is nothing, save a yawning emptiness."
It hurt
to hear him so vulnerable. "I want it to
be
vanquished."
There
was no light, save from the stars beyond
the
casement. I could see little of his face and
nothing
of his expression. "I cannot spend my life
wondering
what I might be if it never is recalled
... the
present is what matters. What I am is what
you are
making me. Ginevra—" But then he
laughed
softly, banishing solemnity, as if he could
not
bear to think about his plight. He twisted his
head to
look at me. "What woman would not de-
A
TAPESTRY OF LtOMS
449
sire
such a man? You can meld me this way and
that,
until you have what you want."
My
vehemence stunned us both. "/ have what I
want."
He
caught his breath a moment; released it
slowly.
He turned onto a hip, moving to face me,
to wind
his fingers in my hair. He pulled my face
to his
even as he leaned to me. "Then we shall
have to
give your father the grandson he desires
for the
Seker, and then we shall make our own."
He was
right. What counted was the now, not
the
yesterday. If the child were not conceived
soon,
the Wheel might turn far enough so that we
were
destroyed in place of the Cheysuli.
But I
could not tell him what I most feared.
That
the emptiness in him, the bleakness in his
eyes
that he would not acknowledge, might rob us
of our
future.
My
father gave us five days and nights together,
and
then he summoned Devin. It piqued me that
he
would give us so little -time—did he think we
could
conjure a child with a rune?—but I did not
complain.
Devin was nervous enough without my
poor
temper, and I dared make no response to my
father.
I told
Devin to go, that it was necessary he
spend
much time with my father, to better pre-
pare
him for the role he would assume once he
had
received the god's blessing. I saw the look in
his
eye, the tension in his body, and wished I knew
a way
to banish the concern.
But it,
too, was necessary; a man facing Lochiel
must
understand what he did, lest he forget his
proper
place in the ordering of the world.
And so
I sent him off with a kiss upon his fingers
and one
upon his mouth, knowing very well my
father
would test him in ways no one, not even
450
Jennifer Roberson
Lochiel's
daughter, could predict. If he were to
assume
an aspect of power within the hierarchy
of the
Ihlini, he had to learn the way.
It was
late afternoon when I sent Devin to my
father;
only the Seker and Lochiel knew when I
might
see him again. I set myself the task of em-
broidering
a runic design into the tunic I made for
him—green
on black—and tried not to think bleak,
empty
thoughts about what might happen if my
father
decided, all on his own, that Devin's miss-
ing
memory might render him weak in the ways
of
Ihlini power.
My
mother came into our chambers. She wore
deep, rich
red. Matching color painted her lips.
"So."
I
gritted my teeth and did not look up, concen-
trating
fiercely on the design beneath my hands.
She
would say what she had come to say; I would
not
permit provocation.
The
sound of her skirts was loud as she came
closer.
"So, in all ways my daughter is a woman."
Do not
be provoked— I nodded absently, taking
immense
care with a particularly elaborate rune.
She
waited. She expected a response. When I
made
none, the air between us crackled. So close
to the
Gate, such anger is personified.
I
completed one rune, then began another.
My
mother's hand swooped down and snatched
the
tunic from me. "And did the earth move for
you?
Did the stars fall from the sky?"
Sparks
snapped from my fingers. With effort, I
snuffed
them out. A single drop of blood welled
on a
fingertip, where the needle had wounded me
as she
snatched the tunic away. I looked up and
saw her
smile; it satisfied her to know she had
won the
battle of wills.
Or had she?
I shook
back my hair and rose from my stool,
A,
TAPESTRY OF LlO!VS 451
folding
hands primly in violet skirts. "Indeed," I
said,
"it did move. And will again, I trust, when he
returns
to me." I smiled inoffensively. "It should
please
you to know your daughter is well serviced.
I have
no complaints of his manhood, or the fre-
quency
of our coupling."
Breath
hissed as she inhaled. The color in her
cheeks
vied for preeminence over the paint on her
mouth.
"I will have no such language from you!"
I
laughed at her. "You began it!"
"Ginevra—"
"By
the Seker himself," I said, "can you not let
me have
this? You would take everything else
from
me, even my father's attention .. . what
wrong
have I done you? I am neither enemy nor
rival—I
am your daughter'."
Her
face was white. "He gives you everything. /
have to
beg his attention,"
"Surely
not. I know otherwise. I see otherwise."
I kept
my hands in skirt folds, so as not to divulge
the
tension in them. "You are only angry that you
misjudged
Devin. You looked upon his injuries
and
dismissed him at once, pleased your daughter
would
wed an unhandsome man. And now that he
is
healed and you see he is beautiful, you are angry
with
yourself. Now that we have bedded and you
see I
am content, you desire very much to destroy
what we
have." I lifted my head. "I will not per-
mit
it."
Melusine
laughed, "He will break," she said.
"When
he meets the god, or before . . . perhaps
now,
with Lochiel. His head is empty of knowl-
edge,
his spirit empty of power. He is no better
than a
Cheysuli hauled here before the Gate, lirless
and
powerless. Pleasing in bed or no, he is wholly
expendable."
I
gritted my teeth. "The lifestone knew him. If
he had
no power, it would have consumed him."
452
Jennifer Roberson
Crimson
lips mocked a true smile. "There is an-
other
test."
"My
father tends to such things."
"You
should tend to this one; you share a bed
with a
stranger. What if Lochiel were to discover
he is not
Devin at all?"
It was
a refrain. "The lifestone knew him."
"Test
him," she said. "Break it."
"It
would kill him!"
"A
chip," she said scornfully, "The tiniest chip
would
divulge the truth."
The air
crackled between us. This time it was
my
doing. "I pity you," I told her. "That you must
stoop
to this merely because he is a man who pre-
fers
the daughter to the mother."
"What?"
"I
know your ways better than you think. I have
seen
you at meals, and other times. Do you think
I am blind?
You court his favor assiduously ...
but he
gives it all to me."
Red
lips writhed. "I challenge you," she said.
"Break
a chip from the stone. Otherwise you will
always
wonder if you sleep with Devin of High
Crags,
or a man of another heritage."
Sparks
flew as I pointed at the door. "Go!"
Melusine
smiled. She built an elaborate rune in
the air
between us; before I could build my own
to ward
away the spell, she breathed upon the
rune.
It was blown to the bed, where it sank into
the
coverlet and disappeared- "There." she said.
"Let
us see what pleasure it brings you when next
he
services you."
"There
are other beds," I told her. "And if you
ensorcell
those, there is always the floor.
Melusine
threw down the tunic. In her hands,
all the
stitching had come undone. My labor was
for
naught.
I
waited until she was gone. Then I went to the
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 453
chest
and drew out the pouch in which he had put
his
lifestone. I loosened the thong-snugged mouth
and poured
the ring into my hand.
In my
palm the stone was black. No life moved
within
it. But I had seen it bum twice; first, at my
father's
touch; then on Devin's hand.
A
lifestone crushed ended an Ihlini's life. To kill
a
Cheysuli, you kill his lir; to kill us, you destroy
the
lifestone.
If he
were not what he seemed and I struck a
chip
from the stone, nothing at all would happen
and we
would know the truth. But if he were Devin
and I
broke a piece of the stone, it would injure
him.
I shut up
the ring in my hand. Gold bit into my
flesh.
The stone was cool, lifeless. There must be
trust
between us. If I doubt, I undermine the founda-
tions
we have built.
At my
mother's behest.
I bent
and picked up the ruined tunic. With
great
care I picked out the tattered embroidery,
gathered
silk thread, then began with deliberation
to wind
it around the ring. I would have him wear
the
stone where my mother could see it.
When
that was done, I would begin the pain-
staking
spell to undo the binding she had put upon
the
bed. Kept close in my arms, where the empti-
ness
did not matter, it was his only haven.
Five
days later, after a night-long meeting with
my
father, Devin came to me high of heart just as
dawn
broke. He woke me with a kiss. The bleak-
ness
was replaced with good humor and an un-
bounded
enthusiasm. He showed no effects from
staying
up all night. "He says the power is build-
ing. He
can feel it, he says."
I sat
upright. "Are you sure?"
He
laughed joyously. "/ cannot—I feel precisely
454
Jeaatfer Robersoa
the
same today as I did when I awoke here—but
he
assures me it is true. And so I begin to think I
may be
of some use after all."
"Some
use," I agreed. "But no one suggests how
much."
I laughed at his feigned heart-blow. "And
what
are you planning? I see the look in your eye."
His
hand rose in the gesture I knew so well.
Two
rings glinted upon it: my emerald, and the
lifestone.
There was no hesitation in his manner.
His
fingers were steady, assured, and the rune was
more
elaborate than any I had seen from him
before.
"Kir'a'el!"
I cried. "Devin—"
It
shimmered in the air. Then it snuffed out the
candles
and became the only illumination in the
room,
dominating the dawn. It set his eyes aflame.
"Only
a trick," he said negligently, but he could
not
hide his satisfaction.
"Three
months ago you could not bestir the air
to save
your soul." I raised my own hand and built
a
matching rune. It was the distaff side of kir'a'el.
Mine
met his; they melted together like wax, then
twined
themselves into one. The conjoined rune
glowed
with the purest form of godfire. I stared
hard at
Devin, filled with blazing pride. This was
what we
were bom for. "Together we can make
anything!"
"A
child?"
"Not
yet." We touched our hands together, let
the new
rune bathe our flesh, then bespoke the
word
that banished it. "We shall have to try
again."
His
eyes were still alight with the acknowledg-
ment of
power. "Come out with me now. I have
horses
waiting."
"You
are sure of yourself."
"Then
I will go by myself."
"Hah."
I arched brows haughtily. "You could
A
TAPESTRY OF LlOIVS 4S5
not
even get beyond the Field of Beasts, let alone
find
the defile."
"I
found it before."
"Tied
to the back of a horse like so much dead
meat?
Aye, you found it." I caught his hand and
kissed
it. "Let us go, then. I could not bear to have
you
lost."
But
even as I dressed, having banished him from
the
chamber—otherwise I would never progress
beyond
the disrobing stage—I was aware of a tiny
flicker
of trepidation. For so long he had been
helpless,
bereft of Ihlini power, yet now he prom-
ised
power in full measure. I did not begrudge it—
we are
what we are—but I was concerned.
Would
he become so consumed by the power
and
Lochiel's ambitions that he would neglect
me?
Once the child was born, would there be a
need
for me? Or would I become as my mother:
valueless
in their eyes because my duty was done?
Naked,
I shivered. Before me I conjured his eyes,
so avid
in tenderness. I felt his arms, his mouth;
knew
the answer in a body perfectly attuned to
his.
Lochiel
had sired me. Melusine had borne me.
But it
was Devin of High Crags who had brought
me to
life. Without him, my flame dimmed.
/ will
not be defined by the man with whom I
sleep.
Yet he
was defined by me- I was his only water
in a
wasteland of emptiness.
Devin
took me out of Valgaard into the rocky
canyons.
It was all new to him, who had seen none
of it,
and I gloried in the telling of our history. He
was
fascinated, asking many questions, until the
cat
squalled. The noise of it echoed eerily.
, He
reined his horse in at once. His face was
4S6
Jennifer Roberwa
stark
white, bleached of color and substance. Even
his
lips cried out for my mother's paint.
"Only
a cat," I said. "Snow cat, I would wager.
They
sometimes come into the canyons. Though
usually
in winter." I frowned. "It is early for it,
but—"
The cat
screamed again. Devin stared blindly.
I
searched for any subject to break his mood. "My
father
will call for a hunt. Perhaps you would care
to go.
You could have the pelt for your own ... or
perhaps
I could make a coverlet for the cradle—"
He
turned to me then and fixed me with a gaze
of such
brittle intensity I thought he might shat-
ter.
His voice was a travesty. "The cat is calling
for
something."
I
shrugged. "Its mate, perhaps. Devin—"
A
shudder took him. The tendons stood up in
his
neck like rope knotted much too tightly. His
mouth
moved rigidly as if to form words, but no
voice
issued.
"Devin—"
"Do
you hear it?" His eyes were wholly empty.
"A
lonely, unhappy beast."
"Devin,
wait—" But he rode on, ignoring me.
"Snow
cats can be dangerous. If it is sick, or in-
jured
..." He heard none of it. I turned my own
mount
and followed, irritated. "Wait for me."
He
halted his horse roughly. As I saw the cause,
I
reined mine in as well. "By the god," I whispered.
Not a
snow cat after all, but a black mountain
cat.
She crouched upon a ledge not far above our
heads,
keening a wail that echoed throughout the
canyon.
Great golden eyes glared.
I
caught my breath. "Beware—"
But the
cat did not spring. She merely held her
crouch,
staring down at him. Then, as I rode for-
ward,
she looked directly at me and screamed.
I
reined in abruptly, apologizing inwardly to my
A
TAPESTRY OF LifWS
457
mount.
But the spell was broken. The cat turned
and
ran, leaping up through a wide crack. She was
gone
almost at once.
I
released a breath. "Thanks to Asar-Suti ..." I
rode up
to Devin. "I thought she would have you."
He
stared after the cat.
"Devin."
His
eyes were empty.
"Devin!"
At
last, he looked at me. "Lonely," he said-
Then,
"Let us go home."
I was
glad to turn my horse and ride back
toward
the defile, side by side with Devin. I did
not
like the pallor of his face, or the bafflement in
his
eyes.
As if
he were incomplete, and now knew it more
than
ever.
Five
He
cried out in his sleep and woke me, so that I
sat
upright with a hand clutched to my breast to
still
the lurching of my heart. He was still asleep,
but he
thrashed; I saw him grasp at his naked hip
as if
he meant to draw a knife.
"Devin."
I put a hand upon his shoulder and
felt
the rigidity of muscle. "Devin—no." He came
awake
at once and lunged upward, one hand grasp-
ing my
throat as if he would kill me. "Devin!"
His
eyes were wild in the shadows of the cham-
ber.
Then sense came back to him, and horror. He
knew
what he had done. "Gods—"
"I
am well," I said at once, seeing the look in
his
face. "Only somewhat surprised by your feroc-
ity."
He seemed no better for all my irony, I dis-
missed
it. "I promise. I am well."
One
hand raked hair from his face. Moonlight
was
gentle, but I could see the scars on his back
from
where the river had embraced him. His eyes
were
still full of realization: he had nearly stran-
gled
me.
I
touched his shoulder and feh it tense, "What
did you
dream?"
"The
cat."
At
first I did not understand. Then the memory
came.
"The mountain cat we saw two weeks ago?"
"No.
Another." His eyes were black in the dark-
ness.
"It was a lion."
458
A
TAPESTRY W LIONS
459
"A
lion!" Lions were mythical beasts. "Why
would
you dream of a lion?"
"It
stalks me . .." He let his breath out on a
long
sigh, and the tension went with it. "Only a
dream."
"Then
I will chase it away." I caught the fallen
forelock
in my fingers and stripped it back (rom
his
face. "I know what to do."
"No."
His hand was on my wrist, pushing it
away.
"Not—now." He turned back the covers and
slid
out of the curtained bed. "I need to go out."
I was
astonished. "In the middle of the night?"
"I
need to walk. Just along the battlements. I
need to
be alone." He slipped into a linen shirt
that
glowed in the dimness. "I beg you, under-
stand—there
is a demon in me. Let me exorcise it,
and I
will come back to you."
I
reached again for irony, so I would not sound
too
petty, too clinging, too much in need of him.
"By
morning? Or is this a difficult demon?"
"Difficult."
His smile was strained. "But my
memory
of you will vanquish it."
"Go,
then." I yanked the covers back over my
breasts.
"But do not be surprised if I am fast
asleep.
It troubles me not at all to have an empty
bed."
He knew
it for what it was, but the smile did
not
reach his eyes. He finished dressing, pulled on
a
fur-lined cloak, and went out of the chamber.
I
stared into darkness. Resolution set me afire.
"I
can banish a lion. I am Lochiel's daughter."
He came
up hours later. I was not asleep. He
knew it
instantly and apologized for keeping me
awake
by his absence.
I held
the blankets up so he could climb beneath
them.
"Do you think I care?" His face was worn
and
bleak as he stripped out of his clothing; we
Jennifer
Roberson
460
had but
an hour before dawn. "Have you de-
stroyed
the demon?"
He
climbed in beside me, shivering, and drew
me very
close. At first he was gentle; then he held
me so
tightly I thought I might shatter. He shud-
dered
once, twice. "Ginevra—" It was muted
against
my hair, but a cry nonetheless. "Gods—"
I had
known it was coming. He had been wound
too
tightly- Now the wire snapped.
I held
him tightly, wrapping arms around his
shoulders
and legs around his legs, until he was
cocooned
in flesh and hair. "Be still," I whispered.
"I
am here for you. I will always be here for you."
"I
think—I think I am going mad."
"No.
No, Devin. There is no madness in you."
"I
wake in the night, in the darkness—"
"I
know."
"—and
there is nothing there, nothing at all,
save
emptiness and anguish .. . and then I recall
there
is you, always you—Ginevra, here, for me.
And I
know that you are my salvation, my only
chance
for survival—and I am afraid—"
"What
do you fear?"
"That—you
will go. That I will prove myself un-
worthy.
That I will be turned out of Valgaard.
That
you will repudiate me because I am not what
Lochiel
needs me to be."
I
stroked hair from his face. "You said he is
pleased
by your progress. And I have seen it also.
There
is nothing to fear, Devin. What can come
between
us?" Then, when he did not answer,
"Where
did you go?"
He said
nothing at first. Then he shifted onto his
back,
cradling me in one naked arm. My head
rested
in the hollow of his shoulder. "I went
below,"
he said finally- "To the undercroft."
For the
merest moment I believed he meant the
Gate.
"The cats," I blurted.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 46S
"Aye."
He was very still. The storm had passed,
but the
aftermath was as painful to see. His ex-
pression
was wasted. "They are wild things, Gine-
vra.
They were not made to be caged." His breath
gusted
softly. "Nor was I."
A
hollow fear began to beat in my breast. "They
are
cats."
"I
looked in their eyes," he said. "I saw the truth
in
them. They know what they have lost. They
long
for it back,"
More
desperately, I repeated, "They are cats."
"So
am I, in my own way- I am very like them.
I am
caged by ignorance."
I knew
it suddenly, "You want to set them free."
His
hand settled in my hair, winding it through
his
fingers. "If we did, he would only replace them
with
others. Perhaps even the black one we saw
in the
canyon. I think—I think I could not bear to
see
more imprisoned then he already has. No. Let
them
alone. They have known their cages too
long."
I drew
him closer yet,- warming his body as I
wished
I could warm his spirit. How long? I won-
dered.
How long will you know your cage?
How
long would I know mine, in the prison of
his
arms?
As long
as I permitted it. As long as I desired it.
Forever
is frightening.
The
door opened very quietly as I sat before the
polished
plate and combed my hair- In the reflec-
tion I
saw Devin's face, peeking around the door,
and the
expression he wore.
I
stopped combing instantly and turned on the
stool.
"What?"
The set
of his brows was comical in dismay. "I
wanted
to surprise you." But he did not seem so
disheartened
that the smile left his face.
462
Jennifer Roberson
"What?"
I repeated.
He
gestured me down as I made to rise. "No.
Wait."
His expression was serious now, and very
intent.
His outstretched hand was held palm up.
He
watched it closely; I watched him. I saw the
concentration,
the effort he used, and then the star-
tled
wonder he suppressed instantly so as to hide
his
childlike pleasure in a task at last accomplished.
In his
palm danced a tiny column of pure white
flame.
Slowly it twisted, knotting itself, then re-
shaped
itself into the aspect of a bird, brilliant as
a
diamond.
I held
my breath. The bird made of flame be-
came a
bird in truth.
Devin
extended the hand. "For you."
I put
out my own hand, took the bird onto a
finger,
and suppressed the urge to cry. It was a
tiny
white nightingale, perfect in all respects, and
very,
very real. It cocked its head, observed me
from
glittering eyes, then began a jubilant song.
Devin's
eyes shone. "Lochiel says it is because
of
Valgaard. That though I have no recollections
of
power, the power simply is. We are so close to
the
Gate ... he says there is power for the taking;
that we
breathe it every day, A man—or a woman—
need
only know how to use it. Even a Cheysuli,
given
enough time, if he claims the Old Blood."
The
bird's tiny feet clung to my fingers. I could
not
look at Devin for fear I would see the change
as I
gave him the truth not all men would tolerate.
"You
do know, do you not - . . that I am also
Cheysuli?"
He
laughed. "Since your mother is a halfling,
one
would assume so."
I set
the nightingale on the edge of my mirror.
"The
House of Homana and my own House are so
thickly
intertwined, it is a wonder we keep our
A TAPESTHV
OF LIONS 463
identities
straight." I looked at him now. "You do
not
mind?"
He came
to me and threaded fingers into my
hair.
"Cheysuli—Ihlini .. . what difference does it
make?
What matters is that we have one another."
"It
is tainted blood. The Cheysuli desire to de-
stroy
us."
"So
we will destroy them first." He laughed. "It
is a
matter of upbringing, not blood. Prejudice and
hatred
is created, not bom. You serve the Ihlini
because
you know nothing else .. . but had you
been
raised in Homana you would serve the Chey-
suli
instead."
"I
never could!"
"If
you knew no better, of course you would."
"But
I do—"
"So
you do. And so you serve the Seker."
It
could not go unasked. "What about you?"
Devin
smiled. "I will do what must be done. If
the god
grants us immortality, it would be a sorry
thing
to repudiate his grace—and therefore watch
forever
as our race dies out at the behest of the
Cheysuli."
I
guided his hands and pressed them against my
belly.
"We will not die out. Not while the child
within
me lives."
Wonder
engulfed his face. His fingers were gen-
tle as
he pressed them against the folds of my
skirts.
"Here?"
I
laughed. "Thereabouts. It is too small for you
to
feel. But in six months you shall have your
son."
He
cradled my face in his hands. "Thank you,"
he
said. "You have made it possible for me to be
a
man."
I found
it odd. "But you are a man!"
"An
incomplete one. Do you understand? Now
464
Jennifer Roberaoa
we can
be wed. Now, at last, I can go before the
god and
let him weigh my value."
Against
my ear I heard the beating of his heart.
Behind
us, the bird stopped singing. When I
looked
around, the nightingale was gone.
Illusions
are transitory. At least Devin was not.
I had
seen the Gate many times, and the cavern
that
housed it, but never through Devin's eyes. It
made it
new again.
I took
his hand as we stepped out of the passage-
way
into the cavern. He did first what everyone
does:
tipped his head back to stare up at the
arches,
the glasswork ceiling alive with reflected
flame.
The symmetry was incomparable. So many
layers
of ceilings, so many soaring arches, and
massive
twisted columns spiraling from the floor.
We were
required to pass through them; at the
end of
the colonnade lay the Gate itself.
Devin
was puzzled. "Where does the light come
from? I
see no torches."
I
smiled. "It comes from the Gate. See how it
is
reflected time and time again, multiplied one
hundredfold
in the columns and the arches?" I
watched
his avid eyes. "The Gate itself is in the
ground,
but it is open, and its light is uninhibited.
It is
god^re, Devin—it is the light of truth, so that
the
Seker can illuminate the dark comers of your
soul."
The light
was in his eyes. I could see no pupil
in
them, only a vast empty blackness filled now
with
livid godfire. "He will see my weakness."
"All
men are weak. He will draw it from you
and
replace it with strength."
"Is
that why you have no fear?"
"I
have fear." I touched his hand. "His glory is
terrible.
When one looks upon his aspect, one
knows
he—or she—is insignificance incarnate." I
A
TAPESTRY W LIONS 46S
closed
my fingers on the still flesh of his hand.
"The
Seker awaits."
"Ginevra!"
He drew me back as I turned toward
the
columns. "Ginevra—wait." His face was graven
with
lines of tension. "I need you."
I
carried his hand to my mouth I felt his minute
trembling;
he feared as all men do, who must face
Asar-Suti.
Against his palm, I said, "I am here for
you.
Before the god, I swear it: I will always be
here
for you. We are bound already by the child
in my
body. Once we share the nuptial cup, we
will be
bound forever."
His
voice was raw. "I am—unworthy,"
"Of
the god?" I smiled. "Or of me?"
Devin
laughed; it was what I had hoped for. "Of
both,"
he said.
I
arched haughty brows. "Then neither the god
nor I
have grounds for discontentment. Things are
as they
should be." I glanced toward the Gate,
then
looked back into his face. "Come," I said
gently.
"There is no sense in delaying the truth."
"Truth,"
he echoed, "is'what I fear."
I held
his hand tightly in mine. "Why?"
"I
am what you have made me. Ginevra's Devin,
whatever—w/ioever—that
is. I know nothing at all
of my
past . .. what if Devin of High Crags is a
man who
aspires to waste his coin in tavern wa-
gers
and his seed in roadhouse whores?"
My
laughter echoed throughout the cavern. "Then
the
greater truth will be that Devin of High Crags
is now
a changed man." I shook back hair. "And
they
may spin the tale that it was the god's
doing—or
lay credit where it is due."
He was
suspicious now. "Where?"
I set
his hand against my heart. "Here," I said,
"deep
in my soul. What other truth is there?"
Devin
looked beyond me. "Then let us get it
466
Jeaatfer Roberaoa
done.
Have them bring the nuptial cup. I am very
thirsty."
My
father waited for us at the Gate of the neth-
erworld,
clothed in black that the godfire dyed pur-
ple. In
his hand was a rune-scribed silver goblet;
at his
feet lay the god himself.
"Where
is he?" Devin breathed.
"There."
I dipped my head. "Beneath the
ground—that
pool is the Gate."
I heard
vague surprise in the timbre of his tone.
"That
hole in the ground?"
"His
greatness is such that he requires no sepul-
cher,"
I said it more tartly than I intended; I ex-
pected
Devin to be more circumspect in his worship
of the
Seker. Everyone else was.
Devin
stared at the Gate. Light lapped at the
edges,
and smoke rose up. It wound around my
father
and clung to the folds of his robe. His gaze
was
fixed solely on Devin.
"Come,"
Lochiel said.
Devin's
grasp tightened. "What is that?" he
whispered.
He
meant the pedestal just behind my father.
"A
chain," I whispered back. "A keepsake from a
Cheysuli
who thought he could defeat my father."
"It
is in two pieces."
"The
Cheysuli broke it. He surrendered to my
father
and broke the chain in half." I squeezed his
hand.
"Enough. There is a task we must do. Or do
you
mean to put off the ceremony that will make
us one
in the eyes of the god?" Devin's smile was
fleeting.
He stared at the cup.
"Empty,"
Lochiel said from the other side of the
Gate.
He held out the goblet. "Fill it, Devin, if you
would
have my daughter."
The
tension spilled out of Devin. He turned to
face
me, brought my hand to his lips, and kissed
A
TAPESTRY OF LtOIVS 467
my
fingers. Then he released my hand and turned
to
Lochiel. He extended his arm across the maw
of the
Gate.
So
vulnerable, I thought. The god has only to rise
and
swallow him whole.
But the
Seker did not do it. Devin accepted the
cup
from my father's hand, then knelt at the edge
of the
Gate. Without hesitation, with no sign of
fear,
he dipped the silver goblet into the pulsing
godfire.
Illumination
engulfed him. Devin laughed, then
dipped
the cup lower. When it was filled, he rose
and
inclined his head in tribute to Lochiel, then
turned
to me. The cup's smoking contents flared,
burning
more brightly, so that the light stripped
bare
all shadows from Devin's face, washing the
darkness
from him- His eyes burned brilliant
green.
I
placed my hands over his and guided the cup
to my
mouth. I drank liquid light and let it fill
me.
Cold fire burned as my blood responded to it.
Gods,
but it was sweet. Such a sweet, cold fire ...
I
laughed and shook back my hair, then guided
the cup
to Devin.
He
drank. I saw the widening of his eyes in
shock;
I feared, for a horrible moment, he might
sprew
it from his mouth. But he swallowed. He
shivered
once. When I saw the emerald of his eyes
replaced
with livid black, I knew it was done.
My
father's voice was an intrusion. It took effort
. to
listen. "You have shared the blood of the god
at the
god's own Gate. His blood is yours. There
; can
be no parting you now."
',
Devin turned. "Is there more?"
I,
"There is always more." Lochiel extended his
|'<Jhands,
and Devin placed the goblet in them. My
ither
smiled, then dropped the goblet into the
468
Jennifer Roberaon
light
and smoke. "But you have begun already.
Kneel
down. Ginevra—here, beside the Gate."
I knew
better than to question.
"Remain
there. It must be you first, so the child,
too, is
blessed."
I dared
not look at Devin. I knelt there beside
the
Gate, thinking of my child, and waited for the
god.
He came
all at once, without warning. I knew
only
that I was blinded as the light sprang forth,
and
then it engulfed me. I felt hands touching me,
reaching
through my clothing to pluck at my flesh,
until I
feared it might be stripped from my bones.
I
shuddered once, then stilled. The god's hand was
upon
me.
I knew
only what my father had told me: that
the
hand of the god, the light of the Seker, would
reveal
the inner soul. Hidden truths would be un-
covered.
Small vanities displayed. The insignifi-
cant
desires of a human would be mocked for
what
they were, so they could be replaced with
perfect
service to the god.
My
perfect service was to bear the god a child.
A son
for the Seker, Who Lives and Dwells in
Light—
I
laughed aloud. "A son!" I cried. "A son to bring
down
the House of the Cheysuli!"
And the
god was gone. I felt him go as abruptly
as he
had come. I wavered there on the edge, en-
shrouded
in swirling smoke, and then Devin raised
me up
to keep me from tumbling in. "Ginevra?"
It was
vital that I know. I turned my head to
look at
my father. "Is it done? Is it done?"
Lochiel
smiled. "The god is well pleased."
I drew
back then from Devin. "Kneel," I said.
The
blackness lived in his eyes, which once had
been
clear green, but I saw something more. The
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
469
emptiness
remained though he had drunk of the
cup.
"Kneel,"
I repeated. To mitigate the tone, I
touched
his face- For him, and only for him, I of-
fered
the key. "Release the cat," I whispered, so
my
father would not hear. "Let him go free from
the
cage of your fear."
Devin
knelt. He crossed his arms against his
breast
and bent low in homage beside the Gate.
The god
spewed forth.
I held
my breath. It will only take a moment—
Devin
screamed. He screamed and screamed in
a
language I did not know, shaping words I could
not
decipher. His head fell back as he flung out
both
arms. He hung there on his knees, transfixed
by the
god. Blackened eyes were wide and blind-
1 could
not help myself; I shouted a denial. I
saw the
transformation, the alteration of bone and
flesh.
From man into cat: the hands became paws,
the
fingernails claws, the teeth elongated into
fangs,
and the sound that issued from his throat
changed
itself in mid-note from the shouting of a
man to
the scream of an angry cat.
Black
as night, he was- Like the one we had seen
in the canyon.
But the eyes were purest green.
I was
rooted to the stone, Cheysuh—Cheysuli—
Cheysuli.
"Punish
him!" Lochiel shouted. "Punish the
transgressor!"
God, he
was Cheysuli\
The god
made him a man again, so he would
know. I
looked very hard for the mark of a Chey-
suli,
the sign of a demon, but all I saw was Devin.
In one
step I reached him. I struck with all my
strength,
smashing my hand across his face. "How
could
you do this?" I shouted. "How could you do
this to
us?"
To us,
I said. Not to me.
470
Jennifer Robersoo
It
infuriated me.
"How?"
1 cried. And then, viciously, "Is this part
of your
tahlmorra? To seduce an Ihlini so she con-
ceives
of your child?"
There
was no response in his eyes. The god held
him
immobile, crucified on air; was he deaf as
well as
blind?
"Step
back," my father said. "The god will deal
with
him."
Trembling,
I stepped back. I saw the nicker in
green
eyes. Then a shudder wracked the Cheysuli.
"Tahlmorra,"
he gasped, in the tongue I did not
know.
"Tahlmorra lujhalla-—"
My
father overrode him. "Have you ever won-
dered,"
he mused, "what it would be like to be
trapped
in lir-shape forever?"
"—lujhalla
me wiccan—cheysu—" And then,
"Not
Devin—"
The god
sprang forth again. In a man's place
writhed
a cat with eyes the color of emeralds.
All I
could think of was the incongruity: Not
yellow
at all.
Lochiel
looked at me. "We will turn it loose,"
he
said, "and then we will call a hunt."
Six
Was it
like thts, I wondered, that they first brought
you
here?
The cat
remained senseless, deep in enforced
sleep;
they had thrown him unresisting on his side
across
a horse, then tied him to the packframe.
"Ginevra,"
my father said.
The
cat's tongue lolled from a slack-lipped
mouth.
The eyes were half-lidded, dulled by the
touch
of the god.
We
shared a bed, you and I. We shared our hearts.
We
shared our souls. And now we share this: a hunt
to the
death.
"Ginevra."
Lochiel
again; I did not tarry longer. I turned
my
horse away from the cat and rode to the head
of the
party, letting no one see weakness. I was
Lochiel's
daughter.
I led
them out of Valgaard, across the Field of
Beasts,
through the narrow defile into the canyon
beyond.
Then my father stopped us and used his
own
knife to cut the beast free. The heavy black
body
fell flopping to the ground. It brought no
response;
dull green eyes remained slitted and
senseless,
and the red tongue fell out into the dirt.
"Ginevra."
A third time.
I looked
at them all; at five of my father's min-
ions;
at my mother who watched me with undimin-
471
472
Jeaalfer Robersoa
ished
avidity. Lastly I looked at him, who served
Asar-Suti
with an unflagging, perfect service.
"Leave
it," I said evenly. "The hunt may com-
mence
tomorrow."
My
mother raised her voice for the first time
since
we had left the fortress. "I wonder," she said,
"that
you take no steps to insure he does not flee.
Would
it not be wiser to kill him now?"
Lochiel
looked at the cat. "Where is he to go?
He is
bound to Ginevra, bound by the god. And
bound
also, perhaps, by the child in her body."
I could
not look at him. I was ashamed, so
ashamed
that I had denied myself. That I had per-
mitted
myself to love him.
"No,"
he shook his head, "our prey will not flee.
He will
wait here for us, until we choose to come."
"Sweet
revenge," I declared. "When you have
trapped
him, will you put him with the others in
the
undercroft?"
"There?
No. When I decide to take him, it will
be for
his pelt. I have a whim to rest my feet in
winter
on the hide of a dead Cheysuli."
My
mother's car-mined mouth gloated.
In
Valgaard, I threw back the lids to all the
trunks
and pulled the clothing from them, then
piled
it on the bed. I took the caskets containing
the
gifts I had bestowed and dumped the contents
on top
of the clothing. Lastly I dug out the
nightshift
I had worn the first night we shared a
bed and
tossed it into the pile. Then I summoned
godfire.
"A
waste," my mother said, "of a comfortable
bed."
I did
not turn. I did not care. Let her stand there
if she
would; I wanted nothing more than to watch
all of
it burn.
All of
it. All of it. Every bit of it.
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS
473
"Will
you burn yourself too?"
I
swung. The names were in her eyes- It turned
them
Cheysuli yellow. "You wanted him," I said
viciously.
"From the beginning, you wanted him.
How
does it feel to know he was Cheysuli?"
My
mother smiled. "So am I. So are you. And
aye, I
would have bedded him. He was in every
way a
man."
1 drew
back my lips from my teeth. "Shape-
changer!"
The
light in her eyes was livid. She looked be-
yond me
to the bed as the godfire consumed it.
"Which
one pleased you most?" she asked. "The
warrior—or
the cat?"
I
wanted to scream at her. I wanted to bum her,
too. I
wanted to tear the mirror from the wall and
hurl it
into the fire.
Even as
I thought it, the mirror shattered.
Melusine
shook her head. "A dangerous thing,
when
Lochiel's daughter is angry. The very walls
are at
risk."
"Why
have you come?"! cried, "Are you hoping
I will
cry?"
She
wore her hair pinned up. Light glittered off
all the
gemstones. "Once I wanted your father to
care as
much for me as Devin does for you. He
does
not. Once I wanted your father to care as
much
for me as he does for you. He does not, and
never
will. And so I am soundly defeated in all
patterns
of the dances which are danced between
men and
women—even between fathers and daugh-
ters."
Her face was very still, but her eyes were
livid.
"I bore a single living child. I nearly spent
myself
in the birth, and tore myself so badly I
could
never bear again."
Behind
me the bed burned. So did all of his
clothing,
the jewels I had given him, the nightshift
474
Jennifer Roberson
he had
removed with avid tenderness. "You are
punishing
me."
In her
eyes godfire dimmed; the bed was nearly
consumed.
"The child you carry is the child of
prophecy."
I
touched a hand to my belly.
"
'The Lion shall lie down with the witch,' " my
mother
quoted. "It is what their madman says,
the
shar tahl who was a prince."
"Aidan,"
I murmured; I was consumed by real-
ization,
by the knowledge of what I was: a vessel
for the
child that could destroy my race. "I shared
a
cradle with his son. My father told me."
"As
an infant you shared his cradle. As a
woman,
you shared his bed."
It
jerked me out of numbness "That was Kellin>
Him?
But—he said nothing of it! He made no indi-
cation!
He was—" I broke it off, then finished it
by
rote, "—Devin. We all thought he was Devin."
I
looked at her. "You are punishing me. That is
why you
have come."
Her
eyes were yellow again. "You nearly killed
me/'
she said. "But you were what he wanted,
once I
could not bear again. You were his only
hope. I
counted as nothing. And then he came—
and
once there was a child, Lochiel gave you both
what
should have been mine!"
The
godfire died to ash. I grieved for the woman,
that
she could be so bitter. I grieved for myself,
that I
had lost my mother when I most needed
her.
And I
grieved for the child who was not, after
all,
the salvation of my race, but the herald of its
destruction.
"I
will be dead," she said, "but you will live to
see it."
When I
was certain she was gone, I closed the
door
and locked it with meticulous care, I put a
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 47S
rune
upon the lock so not even my mother could
open
the door. Only my father might, but he
would
not come.
Godfire
was gone. The bed, the jewelry, the
nightshirt—all
had been consumed. All that re-
mained
were charred bits and pieces and a drift
of
violet ash.
Grief
roused itself. Anguish awoke. The terrible
anger
was stilled.
I
knelt. I plunged my hands into the ash and
closed
them on frosted remnants. They did not
burn my
flesh. The pain was all inside, where no
one
could see it.
But I
would know.
I would
always know.
It
burns, such pain. It devours the heart and
soul.
When
the summons came, I did not shirk it. I
did not
delay. Clad in the tattered remnants of my
pride,
I went to the tower chamber and presented
myself
to him. My deference was plain; there was
no
latitude, in this, for anything save shame.
He sat
upon a tall stool set before a grimoire on
a
tripod stand. He wore russet hunting leathers,
as if
he planned already how the chase would
commence.
With his hair freshly cropped close
against
his head, I saw the shape of the skull. A
beautiful
man, my father; but the beauty now was
tarnished
by the memory of another, who had so
indelibly
replaced Lochiel as the model, in my
mind,
of pure masculine beauty.
I hated
myself for it, but I could not banish it.
I
looked at my father, saw my father's face, and
superimposed
the features of another man.
It was
easy to do. I saw in that instant that they
were
very like.
476
Jennifer Roberson
My lips
parted. Color drained. "—true," I
blurted.
"All of it true—"
Winged
brows arched. "What is true?"
"I
did not see it before—but now ..." I shivered.
"We
are, both of us, linked by more than enmity."
Only a
few candles shed illumination. Most were
unlighted.
"Aye," my father said; in smoky light,
his
eyes were bronze. "For years we denied it; for
decades,
so did they. We came to accept it sooner
than
the Cheysuli. Most of them still deny it." His
smile
was slight. "We are everything they cannot
countenance,
we who serve the Seker. I think it
less
taxing to us to admit the truth. After all, we
merely
desire to destroy them in order to maintain
what we
have fought so hard to win. Autonomy
from
gods."
I
shivered. "But—the Seker."
"I
said, 'gods.'" He emphasized the plural. "They
worship
a pantheon of gods, while we comprehend
true
power lies only with one." He held his silence
then,
weighing me by expression. "It provides
many
answers." He rose from the stool and lifted
something
from the gutter in the pages of the gri-
moire.
Candlelight glinted. A gold ring, set with
jet.
"It lives again," he said. "It knows my touch."
"But—it
knew his, too! And he is Cheysuli!"
"Kellin
is many things. Kellin of Homana is
very
nearly a Firstborn himself. He has the Old
Blood
in abundance, twice and thrice again . . .
the
earth magic lives in him." The ring sparked
deep
red. "Our lifestones answer power. This close
to the
Gate, it does not distinguish. It acknowl-
edged
his gifts, no more. But it would not kill him;
his
blood is very like ours."
"Old
Blood," I said. "Ours is older yet."
"No."
His tone was thoughtful as he contem-
plated
the ring. "Exactly the same, Ginevra. In all
ways,
the same. If I were to cut into my left hand
A
TAPESTRY OF Lio\s
477
and
spill my blood, then cut into Kellin's hand
and
spill his blood, we would see they were the
same.
But until we mixed the blood, until we
clasped
hands, nothing could come of it save we
each
would bleed to death if the cuts proved too
deep."
The cut
inside my heart was very deep indeed.
"Then
Devin of High Crags is dead."
"It
would seem so." He shut his hand upon the
ring
and squeezed. When he opened it again, the
ring
was naught but shattered crystal. He blew it
from
his palm. "Now, certainly." His eyes were
steady.
"Come here, Ginevra."
I
shuddered once. Suppressed it.
"Ginevra,"
he chided. "Do you fear me7 Do you
believe
I would harm you?"
My lips
were stiff. "There is no need," I said. "I
have
shamed you. I have dishonored you. You
need do
nothing save withhold your regard, and I
am
diminished."
"Diminished."
He smiled. "Lochiel's daughter
should
never be diminished."
"I
am. I am." I fell to my knees. "The god will
know my
shame each time I go before him. And I
will
know he knows!"
My
father came to me. I bowed my head before
him. He
put hands upon my head and cradled it
tenderly.
"You are everything I could desire in a
daughter.
You have not failed me. You have not
dishonored
me. There is no shame in what you
have
done; you did it at my behest. If you casti-
gate
yourself, you also castigate me."
I
turned my face to look up at him. "I would
never—"
"I
know." Lochiel smiled. His eyes, in dim light,
were
black instead of brown. "In anything we do,
there
is no shame- Do you understand? I will have
478
Jennifer Roberson
it no
other way. In anything we do, there is no
shame."
I
nodded, grateful he would do so much to dis-
card my
degradation.
"Good."
His hands shifted. He lifted me up. Our
faces
were very close. He studied mine avidly, and
then he
smiled. "There is your mother in you, also.
You are
her daughter as well."
"Aye."
Though I hated to admit it.
"There
is much in Melusine I find most enter-
taining,
especially her passion. Are you the same?"
My face
burned against his hands.
"Was
the Cheysuli content?"
I began
to tremble.
"Did
you play kitten to his cat?"
"God—"
1 blurted.
Lochiel
smiled. "After the hunt tomorrow, I will
come to
your bed."
"My
bed?"
"To
destroy the Cheysuli's seed, we will replace
it with
my own."
In my
chamber, alone, where there was no bed,
I
wondered if he would conjure another fitting for
his
state.
Could I
burn that one, too?
He
would simply conjure again.
Did he
think I would submit?
Or
would he also conjure submission?
I
looked at the door. I looked at the latch. No
ward I
made would prevent Lochiel from entering
my
chamber. No defense I summoned could pre-
vent
him from entering me.
After
the hunt.
After
the cat is dead.
What
would my mother say?
I
caught back the laugh before it became a sob.
A
TAFESTKY w LSONS
479
I
pressed my hands against my mouth to suppress
another
lest I shame myself.
There
were drugs, I knew. There were all man-
ner of
ways.
I did
not want the child. I desired the child to
die.
There
were other ways than this.
"There
is your mother in you also."
He
wanted it this way to gratify himself.
After
he killed the cat.
I
unlatched the door and went out of the cham-
ber
that no longer contained a bed. I thanked the
god I
had burned it. What the Cheysuli and I had
shared,
despite centuries of enmity, was cleaner
by far
than the union my father proposed.
I went
down to the undercroft, to see the caged
cats.
They greeted me with snarls, with lashings
of
supple tails, with the fixed stare of the predator
as they
paced out the dimensions of their lives.
What
had he said of them? "They know what
they
have lost. They long for it back."
He had
lost humanity in the shaping of his self.
Did he
know he had lost it? Did he long for it
back?
Did he
know, in the great gulf of darkness, why
he
could not leave?
Do you
remember my name?
Did he
understand what had happened?
Did you
remember the truths we discovered in our
bed?
Did he
recall the god at all, and how he had
come to
be locked forever in cat-shape?
Do you
remember the oath I swore, when you said
you
needed me?
I
remembered it all.
"Cheysuli,"
I said aloud. The word was alien,
shaped
of a foreign tongue. Its sibilant hissed.
480 Jennifer
Robersoa
He had
said something as the god revealed the
truth.
Something about fate. I knew the word for
that.
The Cheysuli called it tahlmorra.
"Fate,"
I said aloud, "is another word for sur-
render."
It was an Ihlini belief; we make our own
fates
dependent on our needs.
One of
the cats snarled. It thrust a tawny, wide-
toed
paw through the iron bars and reached
toward
me, slapping air with half-sheathed claws.
What
else had he said? "Prejudice and hatred is
created,
not born. You serve the Ihlini because you
know
nothing else."
"I
am Ihlini," I said, "What else would you have
me
do?"
The cat
waved its paw and snarled.
"Do
you hate me?" I asked. "Because I am
Ihlini?"
His
words were in my head. "Cheysuli—Ihlini ...
what
difference does it make? What matters is that
we have
one another."
I had
sworn him an oath.
I
looked at the cat. "Oaths are made to be
broken."
He was
the father of my child.
The
father of the Firstborn.
Anguish
welled up. "Let me be free of this!"
It
echoed in the undercroft, disturbing all the
cats.
They
know what they have lost. They long for it
back.
"
'Let them alone,' you said- 'They have known
their
cages too long.' "
He was
not caged. He would not be caged. My
father
would kill him, then strip the pelt from his
body
and use it for a rug.
Would
he have us couple on it when he saw I
had no
bed?
The
jaws clenched together. "For that, then," I
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 481
said.
"I honor my oath that much—and then we
are
quit of each other."
I knew
what I had lost. I longed for it back. But
knew I
could never have it.
In the
hour before dawn I went out of Valgaard,
crossed
the smoky Field of Beasts, and passed
through
the defile into the canyon beyond. There
I found
the cat I had known as man, whose name
was
Kellin.
I was
bundled in a heavy cloak. "You know
what
you are," I said. "/ know what you are. Ac-
cording
to my father, what you are is what you
shall
be—until he desires to add a new rug to his
floor
to keep his feet warm in winter."
The
eyes were huge and green. Sense had re-
turned
to them. They glared balefully.
"I
owe you an oath," I said- "I gave it freely,
not
knowing what you are, and could in all good
conscience
claim its meaning forfeit .. . but there
are
things between us that are not so easily gov-
erned."
I looked at the female beside him. "Did
you
tell her there is a child? That the child of the
prophecy,
so beloved by the Cheysuli, lives here in
my body?"
I pressed my hand against cloak-
swathed
belly. "If I suffer this child to live, I bring
down my
people. I destroy an entire race. That I
will
not do. But neither will I permit my father to
kill
you. I have no desire to gaze each winter upon
the
stones they will put in the sockets that once
were
your eyes."
The
black tail lashed. Green eyes did not blink.
"Then
come," I said roughly, angry that I cared.
"I
will set you free of this shape so you may re-
sume
your own. We have fought for centuries, the
Ihlini
and Cheysuli—I think it will do no harm if
we
fight a while longer."
If it
came, it came. But I would not, as my
Jennifer
Robersoa
482
mother
threatened, live to see it. The god would,
in
making the bargain, require something to seal
it. All
I had of value was what he had given me.
Worth
giving up, I thought, 50 / need not spend
the
centuries watching the descendants of our races
waste
lives trying to kill one another in the name of
a
prophecy.
Worth
giving up so I need not replace my
mother
in my father's bed for the balance of
forever.
Interval
The
woman knelt at the Gate, and fire bloomed in
her
hands. She held them out steadily, reached
across
the pool, and shaped living god/ire into a
reflection
of itself. In her hands the god writhed
as he
writhed within the Gate.
She
parted her hands and drew them apart.
Flame
surged in her palms, licking from her fin-
gers as
each gout of godfire stretched toward the
other.
Then she brought her hands together and
joined
the halves again. She built of flame a gob-
let,
then fed it on itself. Bloody runes formed on
the
rim. In the bowl sparks snapped; smoke rose
from
the contents.
She
raised it to her mouth and drank the flame
away.
The goblet was banished. Godfire glowed in
her
eyes.
She
looked at the cat who crouched nearby, be-
side
the rim of the Gate. Tufted ears were flat-
tened.
Fire blazed in green eyes as the tail beat
basalt.
The
woman's mouth opened and smoke issued
forth.
Her voice was alive with light. Each word
was a
spark that broke from her lips and formed
into a
rune. The words she spoke bound them-
selves
into sentences, until the runes formed a
necklet
that dangled in midair.
"He
did not know," she said. "He believed him-
self
Ihlini. He came to you consenting, eager for
483
484
Jennifer Robersoa
your
touch, eager to serve the Seker. He meant to
bind
himself to you. What you revealed in his soul
was not
what he expected."
Viscid
liquid boiled. Smoke billowed up. The
runes
that had been words burned brightly in the
darkness.
"I
do not question the punishment; he is Chey-
suli,
and transgressor. But he meant only to serve.
His
heart was empty of hostility. He meant no
sacrilege."
A
second necklet was conjoined with the first
into a
glowing girdle. It moved from the air to
bind
itself around her hips; to seal her wrists to-
gether.
Smoke issued from her nostrils. Her eyes
wept
blood.
"To
the god of the netherworld. Who Made and
Dwells
in Light; who illuminates our souls, I offer
this
bargain: my immortal life in exchange for his
true
guise."
The
blood she wept was black. It ran down her
cheeks
to fall into the Gate, where the godfire
hissed
in welcome to itself.
She
prostrated herself. Her hair tumbled free of
pins
and fell down into the Gate, where the godfire
crept
up the strands. It lingered at her hairline.
then
spilled in a glistening net to sheathe her face
in a
glowing filigree.
Her
breath was made of flames. "Let him go,"
she
begged. "Let him be a man. I will give you
my
life. I will give you the child."
Godfire
gouted forth. It broke in a wave over
the
cat, bound it in white fire, then dragged it
inexorably
toward the Gate.
"No!"
she cried. "I promised you the child!"
Claws
locked into stone. And then the claws
were
human fingers with bloodied, broken nails
digging
into smoking rock. "Ginevra!" he shouted,
with
the voice and mouth of a man. "Ginevra!"
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
485
She
broke free of her bonds and thrust herself
to her
knees, hands locked around wrists that were
fleshed
in human flesh. She dragged him forth
from
the Gate, breaking bonds- He climbed out,
dripping
gouts of godfire, and was reborn as a
man.
Her
grasp on his wrists broke as she fell to her
knees.
"Done," she gasped.
The
man's breathing was labored. He bared
human
teeth in a snarl that was wholly bestial, as
if he
had forgotten how to make his mouth form
words.
"Go,"
she said raggedly. "The bargain is made.
If you
linger now, you invite his renewed interest."
The man
laughed harshly. He knelt upon the
floor
in an aspect of obeisance, but the burning in
his
eyes was born of different loyalties. " 'The Lion
shall
lie down with the witch.' "
She stared
at him. "What?"
"My
jehan had the right of it. And now we are
wed—Lochiel's
daughter and the Prince of Ho-
mana."
The laughter broke again from a throat
made
raw from fire. "How the shar tahls will un-
tangle
our birthlines I dare not predict; it may
take
more decades than either of us has."
Her
face spasmed. "Go."
"Not
without you,"
Her
breath halted, then resumed. Color ebbed
in a
face of fragile, faceted planes, delicate as the
arches
that shattered overhead. "That is finished.
That is
over."
Green
eyes burned in the clean, sculpted fea-
tures
that were, in their fierceness, in their avidity,
far
more feral than human. He was predator to
her
prey.
"Go,"
she said again, as the Gate behind her
blazed.
"There is nothing between us now."
He
closed his hand around her wrist. "What is
486 Jennifer Roberson -^
between
us now is of an entirely different making
-^
than
what we shared in bed."
The
woman's laughter echoed in basalt, and
crystal
arches. "Enmity?"
He
pulled her from the floor. "His name is
Cynric."
One
Kellin
knew it at once. She does not understand—
she has
no comprehension of what we did here, in
drinking
from the cup.
Ginevra
tore free of his grasp. Between them she
built a
wall of conjoined, blazing runes.
His own
shredded it- "I drank of the cup," he
told
her. "What I know is not forgotten."
Ice-gray
eyes were black in comprehension.
"What
have I done?" she whispered. "What have
I
wrought?"
Oddly,
he wanted to laugh. "I think—peace."
His
mind moved ahead to means. Kellin turned.
"Only
one thing remains—"
She saw
what he meant to do. "No! Not that—"
He did
not heed her but went straight to the
glassy
basalt pedestal, all twisted upon itself, and
snatched
up the heavy links. He would take the
chain
to his father and prove himself worthy of
being
Aidan's son.
He
turned back to Ginevra. Her face was bathed
in
light, but the shadowed hollows beneath her
cheeks
underscored the exquisite architecture of
her
face. Gods, but she is magnificent. They wrought
well
when they made her. Hoarsely, he said, "Now
we
go."
"No!
Not me!"
She was
pride incarnate, and beautiful, blazing
489
490
Jennifer Roberson
with
determination. Light from the Gate glowed
in her
hair. All of it was silver now save for the
pure
white frame around her face. She did not
know.
She had not comprehended what the god
had
stolen from her in addition to what was
offered.
Knowing
what she is alters nothing. NOTHING. /
want
her as much now as I did before. And—I need
her as
badly.
Yet
looking at her, knowing what he knew of the
woman
who was Ihlini, but also whom he loved,
Kellin
was keenly aware of a strange division in
his
soul. He, too, had been raised to believe in
certain
assurances, in certain absolutes, such as a
conviction
that only one race could—and should—
survive-
Assumptions were made predicated on
traditional
beliefs; he wondered now if perhaps
disservices
were done in the name of service.
To the
IhHni, service to the Seker is as binding—
and as
honorable—as ours to Cheysuli gods. In that
moment
he understood. He comprehended at last
how his
father could, in the name of prophecy,
give up
a son.
Should
he not be able to sacrifice something as
well to
serve a greater purpose?
He
looked at the woman. A small part of him
wanted
to say she was Ihlini, and enemy, and
therefore
worthy of hatred; but the greater part of
him
recalled the other woman. Had he not said it
himself?
"Prejucide and hatred is created, not born."
He had
loved her as an Ihlini, knowing no differ-
ent;
now that he did know, why should all things
change?
Ginevra was simply Ginevra.
Kellin
laughed painfully, cognizant of a truth
that no
child could comprehend. He gave up his
son's
childhood, but will have him in adulthood. I
give up
old prejudice so I may have a woman, and
therefore
serve the greatest purpose of all.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 491
Ginevra
scrambled up as he rounded the Gate.
"I
gave you your freedom! Now go!"
His
hand closed upon her wrist. The other
clutched
the chain. As she struggled to break free
he
caught handfuls of her hair, all tangled with
bloodied
fingers and links of rune-wrought gold.
He held
her imprisoned skull very still between
his
palms. "I want—" He could not say it. It filled
all of
his being, he overflowed with it, but he could
not say
it-
Her
face twisted. "You want the child!"
Lips
drew back. He did not mean to snarl, to
bare
his teeth before her, but much of him recalled
what it
was to be a cat in place of a man.
She was
Lochiel's daughter.
Kellin
laughed. He saw the spasm in her face,
the
anguish in her eyes, and knew he had to ex-
plain.
If he could but find the words. "Ginevra—" He
shut
his teeth together. Why not let her believe it is
because
of the child? It would be easier.
But he
no longer desired to predicate decisions
on what
was easiest- "I-have— I have lost too
much .
. ." He would say it; he would. "In the
past—too
many people." His breath stirred her
hair,
stark white around her face, silver in his
hands-
Say the words. Say them so she knows—say
them so
YOU know. "If—if it is heresy—" He drew
in a
hissing breath. "If it is heresy to love Lochiel's
daughter,
then burn me now."
Her
eyes were blackened sockets. Ginevra said
nothing.
His
breath rushed out of his mouth. "I thought
it was
a lie. This Lion, I swore, would never lie
down
with the witch." His eyes were avid as he
cradled
her face. "But he has, and found it good—"
"How
can you say that?" she cried. "Knowing
what we
are—"
"Knowing
what we are is why I can say it." Kel-
492
Jennifer Roberson
lin
clung to her more fiercely, wanting very badly
to find
the proper words, but not knowing how.
He was
afraid, suddenly. Afraid he could not win.
"Ginevra—"
A gout
of godftre burst from the Gate- It show-
ered
them with sparks. An eerie wailing whistle
accompanied
smoke.
Ginevra
flinched, then her eyes opened wide.
"He
knows—the god knows—"
The
ground beneath their feet shook. High over-
head,
one of the arches shattered. Glass rained
down.
"No
more time—" Kellin dragged her with him
as he
headed toward the colonnade that led from
the
Gate to the passageway beyond. More glass
shattered.
The chime of its landing was swallowed
by the
keening from the Gate. Godfire lapped at
the
edges, then spilled onto the floor.
She
staggered next to him, fighting to regain
balance.
"I told you to go at once, so he would not
renew
his interest! You lingered too long!"
He had,
but it was for her. "Then we had best
make
haste."
The
voice echoed in the cavern, carrying easily
above
the keening of the Gate. "Ginevra shall go
nowhere.
She is my daughter—and within the
Seker's
keeping."
They
spun in place. Lochiel stood on the far side
of the
Gate. In his outstretched palms danced
crimson
runes. His cloak smoked of godfire, purl-
ing
around his body. The ale-brown eyes, in lurid
light,
were molten bronze in their sockets. The
clean
architecture of bone, so clear and pure in
line,
was visible behind the human mask that hid
perverted
purpose -
"She
made a mistake," he said, "but it is easily
rectified."
The runes in his hand flared higher,
brighter,
though the brilliance did not distract
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
493
him.
They twisted into knots, then broke apart
and
reformed. "First, there is the child. We cannot
permit
it to live. Ginevra knows that. You have
only to
look at her face."
Kellin
did not. He knew what he would see
there.
She was profoundly Ihlini; he did not know
if she
loved him enough to bear the child whose
presence
in the world would alter hers forever.
Scalloped
arches broke from the ceiling in sheets
and
fell behind them, shattering against basalt. A
splinter
cut Kellin's cheek. The floor trembled
again.
The Gate ran white with fire, bubbling over
its
edges. Kellin had mastered the art of working
godftre
in order to make runes, but he knew better
than to
believe he might turn back the flood. Lo-
chiel
was Lochiel: his arts were more powerful,
and his
intentions deadly.
Kellin
moved back two paces and took Ginevra
with
him.
Lochiel's
eyes were fixed on his daughter. "She
knows
what must be done."
Color
stood high in her face. "I serve the Seker."
"Aye,"
he said, "you do. In all ways necessary—
and in
certain sacrifices."
"Wait—"
Kellin blurted.
Ginevra
cried out, then fell to her knees. Her
body
shuddered once. Her face was alive with pain
as her
mouth formed a rictus, then loosened its
hideous
tension into slack astonishment. "—kill
me . .
-" she gasped. "—to kill it, you kill me—"
"Sufficient
punishment." Lochiel's runes blazed
more
brilliantly. "You made a mistake."
Kellin
dragged her up and turned her from the
Gate,
pushing her onward. "Go on—go .. . get out
of the
cavern!"
Ginevra
screamed. "—inside me—" she gasped.
"—so
black—" She thrust out her hands and
clawed
at the air. Godfire sparked from fingertips.
Jennifer
Roberson
494
Her
hair, in the light, glowed silver. "My own—
father—"
Lochiel
said calmly, "I can make other children."
Kellin
built his own rune and hurled it across
the
Gate, bleeding godfire as it flew. Lochiel's
blazed
up, then shattered Kellin's rune into a
shower
of impotent fragments. "Tricks," the Ihlini
said,
and looked again at his daughter. "I would
kill a
thousand Ginevras to destroy the Firstborn."
"You—will
not . .. you will not—" She reached
out to
Kellin, clawing. "Take—" She bit deeply
into
her lip as his fingers closed on hers. "I—will
not—permit—"
"What
choice have you?" Lochiel asked. "This
is your
sacrifice. Accept it willingly, so you do not
shame
me."
"Shame
you! You?" Ginevra writhed against the
pain,
laughing breathlessly. She clutched Kellin's
hand.
"I need make no choice ... you have made
it for
me—"
Godfire
rose up in the Gate, then fell back,
splashing,
to pool again on the floor.
She
clutched his hand more tightly, "Kellin."
Her
grin was ghastly as she bared it to her father.
"You
are Lochiel the Ihlini, servant of the Seker—
but
we—we—are more ... in my body lies the
Firstborn.
Do you think he will allow you to kill
him?"
Lochiel
laughed. "It is unborn, Ginevra! And
will
stay that way."
"No—"
She bit again into her Up. Blood ran
red,
unsullied; she had given up immortality. "He
drank .
.. and I drank. The child has tasted also.
What we
are together is more than even you can
withstand."
She bared her bloodied teeth in the
travesty
of a smile. "The god, like your cats, is
hungry.
I think it is time he was fed."
A
TAPESTRY w LIONS 49S
Kellin
felt her fingers bite into his own, setting
fingernails.
He saw then what she meant to do.
"—help—"
she gasped. "I cannot do it without
you-"
No. Nor
could he without her, or the child in
her
body.
"Earth
magic," Kellin murmured- "This is a
Gate,
like the Womb of the Earth. Here it is per-
verted,
but there is still a stronger power—"
"Now!"
Ginevra cried, and the walls around
them
trembled- Archways tumbled down, shat-
tering
to fragments against the floor.
Godfire
blazed up. At its heart it burned white.
In its
reflection, as its servant, Lochiel's face was
without
feature. He was, in that moment, the ava-
tar of
the god- "GINEVRA."
"He
is hungry!" Ginevra cried. "He cries out for
food!"
''In
the name of the Seker, in the name of Asar-
Suti~"
"Aye!"
she cried. "In his name always, in all
ways.
You are his creature; let the god have you!"
Lochiel's
eyes were livid. "I will raze this for-
tress
before I permit you to take that child from
here!"
Ginevra
laughed. "You wanted to kill it! Now
you
change your mind?"
"As
I must," he said. "The Seker's aspect is of
godfire.
I think he would like to be human once
again,
that he may walk the land freely as he sun-
ders
it."
She
clung more tightly to Kellin's hand. 'Tf you
would
give him a body, give him your own!"
"GINEVRA!"
"Your
own!" she cried. And then, "Now, Kellin!"
With their
power they burned out his eyes, leav-
ing
blackened, melted sockets, and exploded the
runes
in his hands. His clothing caught fire. The
496
Jennifer Roberaw
flesh
of his face peeled away so the bone exposed
itself.
A rictus replaced his lips, displaying perfect
teeth.
Lochiel staggered forward, waving impotent
stubs
on the ends of blazing arms, then tumbled
into
the Gate.
The
godfire within dimmed as if measuring its
addition.
And then it burst upward in a geyser
of
naked flame, licking at the jagged remains of
shattered
crystal arches. The Gate bled godfire in
Lochiel's
immolation.
A
shudder wracked Ginevra. She fell to her
knees.
Silver hair streamed around her, tangling
on the
floor with steaming godfire and melting
glass.
In the rumbling of the Gate, her sobs went
unheard.
"Come."
Kellin urged her up. "If Asar-Suti de-
sires a
second helping . .."
She
caught great handfuls of god-bleached hair
in
rigid, trembling hands. Tears shone on her face.
"What
manner of man sires a child such as /, who
murders
her own father?"
A
ripple moved through the floor. It fractured
the
massive columns that spiraled to the roof.
Black
glass rained down. With it came more
arches,
the fretwork of the ceiling, and then the
roof itself.
"Ginevra!"
Kellin dragged her to her feet one-
handed
as he tucked the two pieces of chain into
his
belt.
Cracks
appeared in the rim of the Gate. Fissures
ran
toward them. As the roof fell down, part of it
splashed
into the Gate, so that godfire gouted forth.
In its
depths, something screamed.
The
floor beneath them rolled. From high over
their
heads, from the bulwark of the fortress, came
a
keening howl of fury.
"They
know," Ginevra said. "The bonds are all
broken.
Lochiel is dead and so they die—and Val-
A
TAPESTRY W LIONS 497
gaard
is falling." She caught his hand tightly. "I
have to
find my mother."
As they
burst from out of the passageway into
the
corridor, Melusine was waiting. In her hands
was a
sword made of livid godfire. "What have you
done?"
she cried. "What have you wrought?"
Ginevra
laughed crazily to hear her own words
repeated.
"Lochiel is dead."
"The
walls fall," Melusine said; in her eyes
shone
the light of madness, yellow as a Chey-
suli's.
"Valgaard is sundered . . ." She looked at
Kellin.
"Kinsman," she said, then raised the
sword
high.
"No!"
Ginevra struck before he could, trans-
fixing
her mother's breast with a single blazing
rune.
The sword was snuffed out. "No," Ginevra
repeated.
Her eyes were anguished. "Go away,"
she
said. "Get out of Valgaard now."
Melusine
laughed. "Without Lochiel? You must
be
mad!"
"Mother—"
But the floor between them fissured.
A
jagged hole appeared. Kellin staggered, righted
himself,
then caught Ginevra and yanked her back
as
Melusine, screaming, tumbled in. "Mother!"
He did
not remonstrate, nor try to explain there
was no
hope as godftre gushed forth and drove
them
back. Ginevra knew. "Shansu." he whis-
pered,
though she would not understand.
She
pressed a hand across her face so he would
not see
her tears.
Kellin
did not permit them to stop until they
were
through the defile on their Valgaard horses
and
safe within the canyon, where the floor did
not
split, the walls did not fall down, and the roof
above
their heads did not collapse upon them.
There
Sima waited.
498
Jennifer Robersoa
He
expected the link to be sundered by Gine-
vra's
presence, but Sima's pattern was clear. You
did
well, his lir said, to release my kin.
He
thought of the undercroft, where he had,
with
his power, torn the doors off their hinges and
permitted
the cats to escape. They deserved a better
tahlmorra
than to die with Lochiel.
Sima's
eyes gleamed golden. Tufted ears slicked.
Do you
understand?
No. I
was taught we could not link when an Ihlini
was
near.
There
is some of the god in you. Not only in your
magic,
but in your tolerance. You are both children
of the
gods; the time for schism is ending. She
glanced
at Ginevra. Tend her first. There will be time
for us
later.
He
climbed off his horse, hooked its reins over
a
branch, then went to Ginevra's. "Come down,"
he
said, and reached out a hand.
Ginevra
looked down at him from atop her
mount.
Ash marred her cheek. Silver hair was a
tangled
tapestry on either side of her face. In her
eyes
was an anguish of such immensity he feared
it
might break her.
He
could not help herself. "Meijhana—"
At the
sound of the enemy tongue, spoken so
close
to sundered Valgaard, Ginevra flinched.
Then,
with careful deliberation, she unhooked a
foot
from a stirrup and got off on the other side.
It put
the horse between them.
She
could not have taken a blade and stabbed
any
deeper. He was eviscerated.
Gods,
he prayed, let this woman never hate me. I
could
not bear it.
Ginevra
took the horse away to the far side of
the
canyon. She sat down there upon a broken
stump
clad in the stormwrack of her soul and
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 499
stared
blindly into shadows with ice-gray eyes
glazed
black.
With
effort, Kellin turned back to his horse. He
unbuckled
girths, pulled off saddle and blankets,
scrubbed
down the damp back with a handful of
leaves.
When he was done, he went to her horse
and did
the same service. Ginevra said nothing-
Smoke
crept into the canyon- It was laden now
with
odors: burned flesh, the stink of the nether-
world,
the smell of a world come undone.
"It
is gone," Ginevra said.
Kellin
turned from her horse.
"Gone."
She sketched a rune in the air; he rec-
ognized
bal'sha'a by the movement of her fingers.
But
nothing came of it. Her fingers moved deftly,
yet
nothing flared into brilliance in answer to her
shaping.
"The Gate is closed," she said. The hand,
bereft
of power, slapped down slackly and lay
curled
in her lap. "And so now there is no godfire."
Her
eyes were oddly empty. "Everyone I knew is
dead.
'Everything I knew is gone."
His
voice shook. "Ginevra—"
Her
face was a wasteland- "Lochiel was right-
We are
truly destroyed."
"No."
He drew a slow breath, treading care-
fully;
he desired in no way to be misconstrued, or
what
they had built between them—that now was
in
jeopardy—would collapse into ruins. "No, not
destroyed."
He would not lie to her; would never
lie to
her. "This aspect of it, perhaps, but your race
survives.
Asar-Suti is defeated, but there are Ihlini
in the
world."
"Good
Ihlini?" She smiled, but without amuse-
ment;
it was a ghastly mockery of the smiles he
had won
before. "Those who repudiate the Seker
will
surely survive and be looked upon with favor,
but
what of—us? Those like my father, and Stra-
han
before him, and Tynstar before him." The line
500
Jennifer Roberson
of. her
jaw was blade-sharp as she set her teeth.
"What
of Ihlini like me?"
"You
said it yourself: the Gate is closed."
She did
not flinch. "Aye."
"I
would like to think that as we end this war,
such
Ihlini as they were will turn from the dark
arts to
fashion a new world."
"
'Such Ihlini/ " she echoed. "Like me?"
He said
it deliberately: "You are not your
father."
"No."
Moonlight glinted in hair. "No, so I am
not- Or
surely I would have killed you there at
the
Gate." Her mouth warped briefly. "Perhaps I
should
have."
"Aye,"
he agreed. "Or left the cat loose so the
hunt
could commence."
It
shook her. It shook her so badly he knew she
as much
as he comprehended the precipice.
He gave
her the truth. "I do not believe Cynric's
task is
to have the Ihlini killed."
Her
tone was harsh. "As we killed my mother
and my
father?"
My poor
meijhana. He went to her, and squatted
down
before her. "No matter how hard you strike
at me,
it will not bring them back."
Ginevra
laughed harshly. "How can I strike at
you?
You only did as I asked, there in the cavern.
What
does it matter to me how it was done, or
that we
used an unborn child for his power?"
He
caught her hand. "Do not punish yourself for
choosing
to live. You did—we did—what had to be
done."
"All
of it? All of it?" Her hand shook in his. "My
father.
My mother. My—home." Tears glazed her
eyes as
she put a hand against her belly. "So falls
the
Ihlini race. As according to prophecy—but be-
fore he
is even born!" Her voice was raw. "Are
you
pleased by it?"
A TAPESTRY
OF LIONS 501
He put
his hand on her hand and let it rest
against
her belly. "He is Ihlini, also."
She
wrenched her hand away and pressed both
against
her mouth. Fingers trembled minutely.
Through
them, she said, "How can you love me?
I am
everything you hate."
"When
I was Cheysuli—" He smiled to see her
start.
"When I was Cheysuli, and knew it, I hated
Ihlini-
There was no choice. They meant to destroy
my
House- They had killed people I loved. They
would
kill me. if I gave them the chance to do so."
He
pulled her hands away and held them in his.
"When
I was Cheysuli but no longer knew it, I was
free to
understand that life is much more complex.
That
the gods, when they act, when they wish to
humble
a man, wield a weapon of irony."
"Vour
gods'"
"Mine.
Yours also." He lifted a strand of her
hair.
In the sunset, the silver was gilt. "You knew
what
would happen."
Ginevra
stiffened.
"You
knew very well. It was what you implied
when
you came to me here, to fetch me to the
Gate so
you could win me back my human form."
He
looked into her eyes. "You grieve for more than
their
deaths. You grieve because of your guilt.
That
Lochiel's daughter, bred to serve her people,
preserved
in the name of love the life of the only
man who
could destroy her race."
"You
shame me," she said.
It
shook him. "In what way?"
"The
truth. The truth shames me. I have betrayed
my
race." She put trembling fingers against his
mouth.
"And I would do it again."
He
wanted in that moment, recognizing her
truth
as an absolute, to give her a truth in return.
To
admit to her—and to himself as well—what
demon
had lived in his soul all his adult life.
502
Jennifer Roberson
Before,
he had not known- And if someone had
told him,
if someone had dared, he would have
taken
solace in ridicule. / have used weapons in my
life,
but none so sharp as the blade of honesty. It is
time, I
think, to use it on myself and lance the can-
ker I
have cherished.
Kellin
took her hand away, caught up the other
one,
then tucked both against his chest so she
could
feel his heartbeat. "I have been afraid of
many
things in my life, but none so much as the
intimacy
of loving a woman. I lay with many, aye,
to
assuage a physical need in vain attempts to dull
the
emotional pain, but nothing sufficed. I was al-
ways
empty, always in despair, despite what I be-
lieved.
Despite what I yearned for." His fingers
warmed
hers. He pressed her palms against his
heart.
"In fear of losing others, I distorted my soul
on
purpose. I cherished bitterness. I drove people
away,
even those whom I loved, because I wanted
no one
to care for me so / would not be required
to care
for them ... to care was to lose them,
and I
could not bear it. Not after so many
deaths,"
He carried her hands to his mouth and
kissed
them. "The river gave me the chance to
become
another man, perhaps the one I was
meant
to be all along. What you see before you
now is
not Kellin of Homana, but Kellin the man,
of whom
Ginevra had the shaping." He set his
mouth
against her palm. "I am your construct. If
you
would destroy me now, you need only with-
draw
your love."
She
looked away from him. She gazed over his
shoulder.
Beyond the defile, beyond the Beasts,
Valgaard
yet burned. The air was laden with
smoke.
He
would not release her hands. "What we have
shared
could transfigure a world. Even this one."
The
scent of smoke was thick. Ginevra's mouth
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
503
warped
briefly. "I have no roof," she said. "It has
all
fallen down."
Kellin
cradled her face in his hands, threading
fingers
into the shining wealth of her hair. Softly
he
said, "Homana-Mujhar's still stands."
She
flinched visibly; he saw she regretted it at
once.
"I am Lochiel's daughter."
He
pressed his lips against her brow. He kissed
it
twice, thrice, then moved the great distance be-
tween
forehead and mouth. Cynric or no, prophecy
or no,
how could I even consider giving up this
woman?
He
never had. Not once.
The truth
seared his soul even as his lips shaped
words
on hers with careful tenderness. "I need
you,"
he whispered, "as I have needed no one. You
are my
balance."
He knew
it was not enough. But it was all he
had to
give her.
When
her hand touched his shoulder, Kellin
opened
his eyes. It was full night. He had not
slept.
Neither had she.
He
waited. He held his silence, his position. The
tension
in her fingers, as she touched his shoulder,
was a
reflection of his own.
The
canyon stank of smoke. Valgaard burned.
The
full moon above them was dyed violet and
black.
Her
hand withdrew. When she touched him
again,
her fingers were cool on his face. They
touched
his mouth and clung.
Kellin
sat up. He sat upon his heels even as she
sat
upon hers; their knees touched, and hands.
Ginevra
stared into his face. Her own was shad-
owed in
the shroud of her hair. He saw the angle
of a
cheekbone, the curve of her brow. Her eyes
304
Jennifer Roberson
were
pockets of darkness. "If I am your balance,
you are
my Ufestone."
In
silence, Kellin waited.
She
took one of his hands and carried it to her
breast.
She cupped his fingers around it. "Make
me feel
again."
Two
Ginevra
stopped Kellin at the top of the steps
leading
into Homana-Mujhar. Rigid hands bit into
his
forearm as he turned immediately. "Meij-
hana-—what
is it?"
Her
face was a sculpted mask with burning ice
for
eyes. "How will you say it?" she asked. "How
will
you tell them who I am?"
Kellin
smiled, moving down a single step so he
did not
tower so much; she was shorter than he,
and
delicate, but her stature belied the dominance
of her
spirit. "Easily. I will say to all of them:
'This
lady is Ginevra. This lady is my cheysula.
You all
of you should be pleased the beast is
tamed
at last.' "
Color
bloomed in her cheeks. Fingernails dug
through
fabric into flesh that was lighter than the
norm
for a Cheysuli, but darker than hers. "And
will
they want me tamed? The wicked Ihlini?" She
had
left tears in Solinde; what she gave him now
was
pride fierce as a Cheysuli's. "At least you came
to my
home without excess display!"
It took
effort for him to keep his hands and
mouth
from her here and now, out of doors, before
the
palace entrance and all the bailey, and the
soldiers
from the guardhouse. "I was unconscious,"
he
reminded her. "I have not the slightest idea if
there
was display, or no. For all I know, you might
505
506
Jennifer Roberson
have
hung me from my ankles and dried me over
a fire."
Ginevra
let go of his arm. "It never would have
worked.
Your brain was much too soggy!"
"Meijhana."
He captured her hand and tucked
it into
his arm, warming it with his own hand. "I
know
you too well; you are not the one to hide
from a
truth, harsh or no. You will tell them
yourself."
"Aye,"
she said, "I will. Just give me the chance!"
Kellin
laughed. "Then come into my house."
"Gods—"
she blurted, "—wait—"
He
turned around promptly and sat down upon
the
steps, hooking arms around upraised knees as
Sima
sat down beside him. The cat's purr rumbled
against
his thigh. When Ginevra did not move, he
eventually
glanced up. "Well?"
Sunlight
glinted on silver; he had loved her
mass of
black hair, but found this as much to his
liking.
She could be hairless, and I would love her.
And
then he grinned; who would have predicted
Kellin
of Homana would lose his heart at all, and
to an
Ihlini?
"What
are you doing?" she asked.
"Waiting.
You wanted me to." He paused, elated
by her presence
and the knowledge of what life
with
her would be; never dull, never quiet. The
Prince
and Princess of Homana did not harbor
timid
souls. "Should I have food sent out? If we
are to
be here so long . .."
Ginevra's
sharp inhalation hissed. New color
stained
her cheeks. She turned on her heel and
marched
directly into the palace.
He
leaned his weight into Sima, who threatened
to
collapse his leg. Contradictory.
Then
you we well-suited.
How
could we not be? Was it not prophesied?
Sima's
eyes slitted. Not specifically. The prophecy
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 507
merely
said the Lion would lie down with the witch.
Even
the gods could not predict that you would be
so much
alike.
He
smiled. By now she may well be in the Great
Hall
confronting the Mujhar himself.
Or in
your chamber confronting the knowledge of
other
women.
Kellin
sat bolt upright, then got up at once.
Sima
relented. She is in the solar speaking with
the
Queen. Leave the women to one another—your
place
is with the Mujhar.
And
you?
Sima's
tufted ears nicked. She stared past him
into
the sunlight, transfixed on a thought he could
not
decipher. The ears flattened once, then lifted
again.
Kellin
prodded. Lii?
She
looked at him. Her stare was level. He felt
in that
instant she looked beyond the exterior to
the
soul within, and wondered how she found it.
/; is
for you to do, she told him.
Kellin
smiled. "He wil^ understand. Once I have
explained
it. All of them will." He laughed aloud
for
joy. "Most assuredly my jehan, who undoubt-
edly
knew very well what was to become of me!"
The
cat's glance was oblique as she shouldered
by his
knee into the palace. The Great Hall, she
said,
where the Lion lives.
He went
there at once, pushing open the ham-
mered
doors, and saw, as expected, the Mujhar
sitting
quietly in the belly of the Lion, contemplat-
ing his
hall.
Kellin
paused just inside the doors. It had been
half a
year since he had been sent away by a man
clearly
desperate to salvage his only heir. 'Well, the
heir is
salvaged. Homana is preserved. Kellin's
smile
was slow, shaped by anticipation. There was
508
Jennifer Roberson
much he
longed to say, much he meant to share,
but
especially Ginevra. / will make him understand.
And how
could he not? Lochiel is dead. The Wheel
of Life
still turns.
Kellin
drew in a breath, lifted his head, then
walked
with steady strides the length of the firepit
to
pause before the dais. There he lowered his eyes
out of
respect for the man, and gave him Cheysuli
greeting.
The
Mujhar did not answer.
Anticipation
waned. Kellin's belly tightened.
Does he
know already? Has word come before us:
"The
Prince of Homana has taken to wife an Ihlini
witch!"
The
Mujhar offered nothing. When Kellin could
no
longer stand it, he raised his head at last.
"Grandsire—"
He
checked. He stood there a long while. He
denied
it once, and twice. The truth offended him.
He
longed to discard it and conjure another.
But
truth was truth. Magic could not change it.
His
spirit withered within.
Kellin
climbed the three steps and sank to his
knees.
His trembling hand, naked of signet, reached
out to
touch the dark Cheysuli flesh that was still
faintly
warm.
He
looked for Sleeta, but the mountain cat was
gone.
Kellin
thought of Sima. She knew. When she sat
upon
the steps— But he let it go. He looked into
the
face of the Cheysuli warrior who had ruled
Homana
for more than forty years. The body
slumped
only slightly, tilted slantwise across the
back of
the throne, as if he merely rested. One
gold-freighted
arm lay slack, hand upturned against
a
leather-clad thigh; the other was draped loosely
along
the armrest, so the dark Cheysuli fingers fol-
"ff
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 509
\ lowed the curve of the claws. On his
forefinger the
^ seal ring of Homana glinted dully.
Though
the flesh had stilled, the bones as yet
defied
the truth. Brennan was, even dead, still
very
much a king.
Kellin's
mouth moved stiffly as he managed a
smile.
He said it as he had told her on the steps
before
the palace. "The lady is Ginevra. The lady
is my
cheysula. You should be pleased the beast is
tamed
at last."
In the
Lion, silence reigned. The Mujhar had
abdicated.
"So
much—" his grandson whispered, kneeling
before
the king. "So much I meant to say."
Mostly
leijhana tu'sai, for being jehan as well as
grandsire.
The
Mujhar of Homana left the Great Hall and
went
directly to Aileen, where Ginevra was. He
was
aware of an odd dispassion, as if someone had
wrung
him empty of grief, and pain; with effort
he put
into words the requirements of state.
Then he
put into words that which most re-
quired
telling: that he had loved and honored her
cheysul
far more deeply than he had shown, as he
loved
and honored her.
In her
face he saw his father's: chalk eroding in
storm;
crumbling beneath the sun. It ate below
the
layers and bared the granite of her grief, hard
and
sharp and impenetrable, and ageless as the
gods.
Pale
lips moved at last. "If this were Erinn, we
would
take him to the sacred tor and give him to
the
cileann."
But
this was not Erinn. They would take him to
his
tomb and lay him to rest with other Mujhars.
Kellin
kissed his granddame. He sent for a ser-
510 Jennifer Robersim
vant.
He sent for a shar tahl and Clankeep's clan-
leader.
He sent
for his lir to bide her time with Ginevra,
whose
eyes bespoke her empathy, and returned to
the
Great Hall.
People
came. They took away the body. They
gave
him a ring. They called him "my lord
Mujhar."
They left him as he desired: alone in the
hall as
the day shapechanged to dusk.
Kellin
felt sick to his stomach. He sat upon the
dais
and wished the day were different, that he
could
stop the Wheel of Life from turning and then
start
it up again, only this time moving backward,
backward,
BACKWARD, so the time was turned up-
side
down and his grandsire could live again.
He
stared into the blazing firepit. / do not want
to be
Mujhar.
He had
wanted it all of his life.
/ want
him back. Grandsire. Let him be Mujhar.
They
had trained him from birth to be king in
his
grandsire's place.
A king
must die to let another rule in his place.
Kellin
shut his eyes. He heard in the silence all
the
arguments they had shared, all the rude words
he had
shouted because his grandsire wanted too
much,
demanded too much of him; chained his
grandson
up so he would never know any freedom.
The
words were gall in his mouth. "Too much
left
unsaid."
Behind
him crouched the Lion. Its presence was
demanding.
Kellin heaved himself up and turned
to
confront it. Gilded eyes glared back.
He
moved because he had to; he could no longer
sit
still. He climbed the dais. Touched the throne.
Moved
around to the back of it and turned to face
the
wall. He stared hard at the tapestry while the
lions
within its folds blurred into shapeless blobs.
A
TAFBSTRV w LIONS
Sll
He
remembered very clearly the day lan had
died.
One small hand, not much darker than a
Humanan's,
and one old hand, bronzed flesh aging
into
brittle, yellowed flesh.
"Gods,"
he said aloud, "you should have made
a
better man than me."
"The
gods wrought very well. In time, you will
know
it. I already do."
Kellin
turned. "Jehan." He was mostly unsur-
prised;
it seemed to fit perfectly- "You know."
"I
know."
"Have
you seen the Queen?"
Aidan's
eyes were steady. "I did not see your
cheysula."
He let it register, "But aye, I saw my
jehana."
The
words were hard to say. "Did you know—
before?"
Aidan's
face was graven with new lines at eyes
and
mouth. "I am privileged to know things before
others
do. It is part of my service."
"
'Privileged' to know your father has died?"
"Privileged
to know certain things so I may pre-
pare
the way for greater purposes."
Kellin
smiled a little. "A true shar tahl, couching
his
words in obscurity."
Aidan
smiled back. "I believe it is required."
Kellin
nodded. His father walked very steadily
toward
the dais on which he stood. "How does one
know if
one is worthy of what he inherits?"
"One
never does." Aidan stopped before the
dais.
"/ know, Kellin. For now, it is enough."
Kellin
swallowed heavily. "Did you come for
him?"
"I
came for you. I came to bind the Lion."
"Bind
..." Kellin sighed. He felt very old. "I
feared
it, once." He stroked away a lock of hair-
"The
Lion lay down with the witch."
Aidan
nodded. "I know."
512
Jennifer Roberson
Kellin
wanted to smile, but his face felt old, and
empty.
"You prophesied for me, that day. You said
I would
marry."
A
glint, purest yellow. "Most princes do."
"But
you knew it would be Ginevra."
The
glint died. Aidan's eyes were calm. "It
seemed
a tidy way of achieving what we all of us
have
worked for."
"The
Lion lay down with the witch. And so the
prophecy—"
"—continues."
Aidan's expression was solemn.
"Despite
what you may hope, it is not yet com-
plete.
There are things we still must do."
"Ah."
Kellin put his hands to his belt, then
undid
the buckle with fingers that felt thick and
slow.
He slid the links free. "Here. This is yours."
Aidan
took the broken chain as Kellin redid his
belt.
"Sit down, my lord. It is time I chained the
Lion."
He was
too weary to question the task. He sat
down.
The Lion's mouth gaped. Kellin touched the
wood
and felt an echo of ancient power. Mine? he
wondered.
Or left over from my grandsire?
Aidan
stood before the dais, before the firepit.
His
eyes burned feral yellow in the umber light of
the
dying day. In his hands were links. "Shame,"
he
said, "who began the qu'mahlin. His nephew
Carillon,
who took back Homana and ended the
qu'mahlin.
Then came Donal, son of AH and Dun-
can—and
after him, Niall, followed by Brennan."
Gold
chimed on gold. "The next link is broken. Its
name
was Aidan. I shattered it myself to bargain
for my
son. To know without a doubt that what I
sacrificed
would make Homana stronger." He held
up the
shorter length. "Two more links. One of
them is
Kellin. The other is named Cynric."
Kellin
waited.
A
TAPESTRY OF LtONS 513
Aidan
smiled. He turned to the firepit and
dropped
the two halves into flame.
Kellin
started up from the throne, then checked.
Aidan
said clearly, "The chain shall bind the
Lion."
Their
eyes locked. He does not ask, he TELLS.
And
then Kellin laughed. He stood up from the
Lion
and walked down the dais steps. He knelt
beside
the firepit with his back to the Lion, and
knew
what he must do.
Aidan
waited.
What is
fire, but fire? I have withstood godfire: I
have
made godfire. This comes from my jehan—
surely
its flame is cleaner. Kellin drew in a breath.
He put
his hand through flames, then farther into
coals.
It
burned, but did not consume. Fingers found
metal.
He sought the shape of the link and could
not
find it. What he found was something else.
"Free
it," Aidan said.
Kellin
brought it out of the flame, unsurprised
to
discover his hand was whole. He opened it. In
the
palm lay an earring. The head of a mountain
cat
stared back at him.
"More,"
Aidan said-
Kellin
set the earring onto the rim of the firepit.
He
reached into the flame again, dug down into
coals,
and took from the pit two /ir-bands.
Aidan
was patient. "And again."
"Again?"
But he set the armbands also on the
rim and
plunged both hands into the blazing
coals.
Aidan
smiled. "A king must have a crown."
Kellin
drew it forth. A rune-wrought circlet of
lir
gleamed against his palms. Its workmanship
was
such that no man, looking upon it, could with-
stand
the desire to set it on his brow.
The
voice was light and calm, pitched to reach
514
Jennifer Robersoa
the
dais. "So this is Cheysuli magic." Ginevra's
winged
brows rose as she walked the length of the
hall.
"Does all your gold come from fire?"
"No."
Aidan answered. "Our gold is merely
gold,
though blessed by the gods in the Ceremony
of
Honors. This gold, however, is to replace that
he lost
in misadventure."
"Misadventure."
Her gaze dwelled on Kellin.
She had
tamed the silvered hair by braiding it
into
quiescence with blood-red cord. "The sort of
misadventure
that rendered him without memory
of
name, of rank—of race." She looked now at
Aidan-
"You are the one my father most feared."
In
dying light, Aidan's hair glowed russet. "He
never
told me so."
"He
did fear you. He never told me so—my fa-
ther
was not a man to admit to such things as
fear—but
I think he must have. He spoke of you
repeatedly,
telling me how it was, in your mad-
ness,
that you came to him in Valgaard to bargain
for
your son. I think he did not know what else
you
might do, and it frightened him."
Kellin
clutched the circlet. The gold was warm
in his
hands. What passed between his father and
Ginevra
was undivulged even in gesture; he could
not
decipher it.
Aidan's
face was relaxed. "I might have chosen
you."
"Aye.
And brought me here," She cast a glance
at
Kellin. "My lord prevails upon me to insist that
had I
been, I would never once have realized I was
anything
but Cheysuli."
"But
you are." Aidan answered. "You are many
things,
Ginevra . .. among them Cheysuli. Among
them
Ihlini."
Her
chin firmed. "And the mother of the
Firstborn."
Aidan looked
at her belly. She did not show
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS SIS
much
yet, but her cupped hands divulged the
truth.
He smiled into her eyes. "You may choose
what
you will be. The gods give us free will—even
to
Ihlini."
"Choose?"
She glanced sidelong at Kellin, then
returned
her gaze to Aidan. "In what way do I
choose?
And what?"
"How
you shall be remembered." Aidan rose.
"You
may be Kellin's cheysula. You may be Queen
of
Homana. You may be merely a mother—or the
mother
of the Firstborn."
"I
was and always will be Lochiel's daughter."
Aidan
inclined his head.
"And
it will mark me," she declared. "That is
how
they will know me!"
"Aye,"
Aidan agreed, "because it is required."
His
eyes were very feral in the waning light.
Flames
turned them molten. "As it concerns you,
my
prophesying is done."
It
startled her. "What?"
"You
were the witch. But that is done. When
Kellin
lies down again, it will be with his cheysula.
If you
mean to be anything more, you yourself will
make
the choice."
Color
stood in her face. "You mean if I choose
to
remind them I am heir to Lochiel's power." She
smiled.
"I could. I could do it easily,"
"That
would depend," Aidan said calmly, "on
how you
chose to do it."
She
stared fixedly at him, then looked at Kellin.
She
was, in that moment, pride and glory incarnate.
Leijhana
tu'sai, he thought, for giving me the
wit—or
robbing me of them.'—so / might see beyond
the
wall of our people's enmity to the woman
beyond.
The
fire kindled her eyes and melted Ihlini ice.
The
quality of her tone was pitched now to ac-
knowledgment,
and a warmth that left him
516
Jennifer Roberson
breathless.
"Then I would choose to be the woman
who
crowned a king. So they would know I want
no war.
So they would know I am Ginevra, and
not
merely Lochiel's daughter."
"Then
do it," Aidan said.
Ginevra
lifted her head. She advanced steadily.
Beside
the firepit she paused, stared up into the
blind,
gilded eyes of the Lion Throne of Homana,
and
smiled a tiny smile. "Tahlmorra," she said
dryly.
"Is that not what you call this?"
Aidan's
voice was quiet. "All men—and all
women—have
a tahlmorra. You were bred of Chey-
suli
gods as surely as of Ihlini . . . they were—and
remain—the
same. In their view we are all of us
'Cheysuli.'
The word means 'children of the gods-' "
His
smile was gentle, lacking in threat, lacking
in
arrogance. "We have a saying, of twins: 'Two
blossoms
from the same vine.' Though our vine
was
split and the two halves borne away to sepa-
rate
gardens, the rootstock remains the same. It is
time we
replanted."
She
hesitated. "Asar-Suti? The Seker?"
"We
are but aspects of our creators- When there
is evil
among men, look first at those gods from
whom
they inherited it."
Kellin's
belly clenched. "Then he is not dead."
"The
Gate was closed in the destruction ofVal-
gaard.
It takes times to build another. While Asar-
Suti
labors, centuries may pass."
Ginevra's
smile was crooked- "Then I had best
crown
the king before the Gate is rebuilt." She
held it
out, above his head. Flames glinted off
gold.
Clearly she said, "In the name of all the gods,
even
the Seker who is but one among them, I de-
clare
you Mujhar of Homana."
Kellin
bowed his head. The circlet was cool as
she
slid it onto his head with trembling fingers. It
warmed
against his brow.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 517
"Done,"
Ginevra said.
Aidan
smiled. "And so the Lion is chained by
the
witch with whom he lay."
Kellin
picked up the earring. "But this is Ur-
gold!
How could this chain me?"
"Memories,"
Aidan answered. "History and her-
itage,
and an ancestry that reaches across centu-
ries.
When the Lion roars he must recall what
went
before, so he will rule the world wisely. Re-
sponsibility
binds a man; it binds a king more. Do
not
discount its weight."
"No,"
Kellin said. "Not ever again, jehan."
One of
the hammered doors scraped open. A
man
came in, Kellin got to his feet.
"Already,"
Aidan murmured-
Kellin
stared at his kinsman. Hart's hair was
white.
His gaunt face was lined with grief. He
looked
briefly at Aidan and Ginevra, then fastened
an
unflinching gaze on his twin-bom brother's
grandson.
"I came for Brennan," he said, "but it
seems
the gods have seen fit to deprive me of my
rujho."
Mute,
Kellin nodded.
Hart
looked at Aidan. "It would have been
yours,
once. Is that why you are come home at
last?"
Something
moved in Aidan's eyes. "I am come
home
for many reasons, su'fali. I am come to
honor
my jehan, whom the gods have taken; to
offer
strength to my jehana; to pay homage to my
son,
the Mujhar; to witness the coming of the
Firstborn."
The yellow eyes were fierce. "But also
to
grieve. Will you permit me that?"
Abashed,
Hart nodded. He looked from Aidan to
Aidan's
son. "Brennan is gone, and so I come to
you,
his heir." Anguish blossomed a moment, was
damped
down with effort. "I had a son once.
518
Jennifer Roberson
Owain-
Lochiel murdered him. Now I have no son.
I have
come to give you Solinde."
Kellin
was astounded. "You have daughters!"
Hart's
voice was steady. "Biythe has borne only
girls,
and will bear no more. Cluna bore three still-
born
children and will not conceive again. Jennet
died in
childbed. Dulcie was wed to the High
Prince
of Ellas two months ago." Hart's tension
lessened.
"She grew tired of waiting for you."
Kellin
smiled faintly.
"And
so the sons she bears, if she bears sons—
we run
to girls, I fear—will be reared EUasian."
Kellin stood
very still. The back of his neck
prickled.
He looked sharply at his father and saw
the
light in Aidan's eyes. He said he knows things.
He is
"privileged" to know. He knew this would
come.
Realization was a knife plunged deep into
his
vitals. And he knows the others will come.
He
would stop it. He knew the way. He looked
back at
his grandsire's brother. "You will not die
so
soon. This is unnecessary."
Hart
said only, "Brennan died today."
After a
stricken moment Kellin turned away and
stared
hard at the tapestry of lions. He could not
bear
Hart's eyes. He could not bear to see his own
grief
in his great-uncle's face.
Three
When at
last Ginevra slept, wearied from long
labor,
Kellin sat beside her with their son in his
arms,
thinking thoughts of wonder, of pride, of
relief;
of the prophecy of the Firstborn.
Lochiel's
daughter stirred, then slid again into
sleep.
He put one hand into the glorious hair and
stroked
it gently from her face. The long eyes were
lidded,
lost to him in sleep, but he knew what
lived
behind them: the blazing ice oflhlini godfire,
legacy
of Lochiel's power.
Women
had swaddled his son in countless linen
wrappings.
The child, he thought, was ugly, far
uglier
than foal or puppy,-but he supposed time
would
alter the red-faced, wrinkled infant into a
human
child, and eventually into a man.
Kellin
drew in a breath. What manner of power
will
you claim? Will you be human at all?
Sima,
at his feet, sent a lazy suggestion through
the
link that he let the child grow up and discover
for
himself what his tahlmorra was. That a father
could,
if he watered the clay too much, turn it into
sludge
so that no one at all could use it.
Kellin
smiled, /s that what I was? Sludge?
Sima
blinked. Clay with too much grit. You cut
the
flesh of an unsuspecting potter.
Ah. He
laughed softly. And then he thought of
other
children who had no father to water them
at all.
/ will have them come here.
519
520
Jennifer Roberson
Sima
yawned. Be wary of asking too much. You
gave
them to those women; if you mean to take them
back,
you will do more harm than good.
They
are my children.
Bastards.
He
heard the echo of his own arrogance, and
knew
what Sima intended. He acceded to a greater
wisdom
than his own; she was, after all, lir. "Then
I will
give them leave to come whenever they like,
so they
will know their heritage."
And?
He
smiled. And I will go to them, so I will share
their
lives.
Better.
She lashed her tail once. What will you
do with
the others?
What
others? He stiffened. And there more?
I mean
the ones to come later.
Later!
Sima, by all the gods, do you think me a
selfish,
rutting fool? What man in the world would
turn to
another woman with this one in his bed?
Sima
purred more loudly and shut her golden
eyes.
She offered no comment. Her work was done.
Kellin
laughed softly and looked down upon his
son.
Where would a warrior be without a lir such as
Sima?
Or Sleeta? Or Teel? Or Ion's Tasha? Or Blais
Tanni?
He touched his son's brow. What lir will
you
have—if you have a lir at all?
"Kellin."
He
glanced up. Hart stood in the doorway. He
knew
without being told what his kinsman had
come to
say. "They are here," Kellin said. "Conn.
And
Keely."
Hart's
face spasmed. "Did Aidan forewarn you?
Or have
you your own measure of his power of
prophecy?"
It
hurt, but he knew the pain was shared. It
goaded
all of them. "I have no power at all, save
what
any of us do. I know only what we all do—
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 521
that
the Lion shall swallow the lands." He beck-
oned
one of the women, gave her Cynric, and rose.
"You
came to give me Solinde. I think we will find
they
have come to do the same with their own
realms."
In
Hart's eyes was a measure of quiet respect.
"Brennan
wrote me of his fears, of his frustrations.
He knew
very well what you could be, if you per-
mitted
yourself to achieve it, I see now he was not
wrong."
He nodded slightly. "A fitting legacy for
my
rujho. He wrought well, did Brennan. And Ho-
mana
shall prosper for it."
Kellin
paused in the doorway; it was Corin he
saw
first. The Lord of Atvia stood with his back to
the
deep-silled casement. A ruddy fox sat beside
one
leg: Kiri. Midday sunlight glinted off ^r-gold.
The
once-tawny hair had faded, intermixed with
silver,
and the beard Corin yet wore showed traces
of
white, but no sign of age softened the tension
in his
body or the pride in his stance. For all he
had
none of the color, he was Cheysuli to the bone.
Kellin
was aware of them all within an instant
of
entering the chamber: Aileen's solar, with Ai-
leen in
it, seated on a chair; near Corin stood a
dark-haired
woman with eloquent brown eyes he
knew
was Glyn, Conn's cheysula; a second woman
in a
chair with hair a pristine white and eyes like
ice—Ginevra's
eyes—was lisa, Hart's Solindish
queen;
and Keely, Corin's twin, seated nearby with
Scan of
Erinn at her back. The Erinnish lord was
huge,
dominating the chamber. Even in quietude
his
presence was of the kind another man, even a
king,
could not ignore.
And
lastly Aidan, his father, who stood quietly
behind
his mother with a raven close at hand,
watching
the tableau as if he knew very well what
was to
come.
522
Jennifer Roberson
No
doubt he does know. Kellin looked back at
Corin
even as Hart moved by him into the cham-
ber to
join lisa. He wondered what had passed
among
his kinfolk as they awaited his arrival.
They
had spoken of Brennan certainly; a quiet
grief lingered
in Keely's eyes. Her face was tautly
drawn
over high, pronounced cheekbones. The
stubborn
jaw was set. But Kellin saw a softness
there
that she might not acknowledge; she was,
they
all said, a very proud woman.
He
smiled faintly to see her in skirts. He had
heard
the stories of her tempestuous youth. She
belongs
in jerkin and leggings, with a sword in her
hands.
Shona, they said, had been very like Keely.
In the
face of his granddame, he looked for his
mother.
In the face of his grandsire, he looked for
himself.
But
Sean was all Erinnish, bred in the Aerie's
mews;
Kellin was Cheysuli. As well as other things,
which
bring me to this point.
Sean's
rumble broke the silence. "Lad," he said,
"we've
come for other things, but we owe our re-
spects
to the Mujhar of Homana."
"Leijhana
tu'sai," Kellin said, and saw the star-
tled
speculation in Keely's eyes; had she heard
that
Brennan's heir repudiated his race? Well, it
was
time they understood. "In the name of my
other
grandsire, I welcome you to his home."
"Yours,"
Keely said softly.
Corin's
smile was grim. "I came to speak with
Brennan
on a matter of some importance. I find
instead
I must speak to his heir. It may be—
difficult."
Kellin
nodded. "You none of you know me." He
looked
at Keely; at Sean. "Not even you, who
raised
a proud daughter well worthy of my jehan.
And I,
am I fortunate, will be worthy of them."
He
stepped aside and beckoned Sima in. The cat
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS S23
slid
through with a rub against his leg, then pad-
ded to
a deep-silled casement aglow with midday
sun.
She leapt up, curled herself, and settled on
the
sill, "You may have heard nonsense of a
young,
foolish prince desiring nothing of a lir for
fear he
would lose her, or himself if she were
killed.
But that man was ignorant. He did not
know
what manner of gift the gods offered." He
looked
at Sima and saw they did the same. "In
time,
he came to see that a warrior without a lir
is not
a man at all ... and wholly unfit to inherit
the
Lion Throne."
Tension
fled Conn's shoulders. His smile wid-
ened.
"News travels slowly."
"Much
more slowly than rumor."
Ruefully,
Corin laughed. "I know your birthline
as well
as my own, as I am in much of it ... I
have no
quarrel with it. But you are young to be
Mujhar."
"I
am the age you were when you sailed away
to your
island."
Corin
looked at Keely. "A-long time ago, rujhoUa."
Keely's
hair also had begun to silver, altering
the
gold of younger years. "Much too long, I fear,
for
either of us to recall the feelings of youth, and
why we
did what we did." She smiled at her
brother,
then looked to Keltin. "We are informed
there
is a new Prince of Homana."
Kellin
saw no reason to rely on courtesy, or the
traditions
of a culture that now would be altered.
"More
than that," he said easily. "Cynric is the
Firstborn."
Tension
reinfected the chamber. He wondered if
they
believed he would not acknowledge such a
thing;
that he would deny sleeping with an Ihlini
despite
what it had produced.
Kellin
understood; it would be so for years, until
old
prejudices died. "Her name is Ginevra. Among
524
Jennifer Roberson
the
Houses in her blood is our own: she is, as am
I, a
grandchild of Brennan."
The silence
was heavy. Keely broke it. "We do
not
question that. The gods made it clear that one
day it
would happen, though I admit none of us
believed
you might marry an Ihlini." She slanted
a
troubled glance at Aidan, who had served as Cy-
nric's
prophet. "But it is difficult for me to recon-
cile
her as anything other than Lochiel's child. He
killed
my daughter—"
"—and
nearly his own." Kellin saw it register;
marked
startled attention. "When he learned the
child
she carried was Cynric, he tried to murder
her.
Ginevra refused to submit to the sacrifice he
and his
god required. With my help—and the help
of her
unborn child—she killed her father- She de-
stroyed
him in the Gate of his own god." He
looked
at each of them, one at a time, until he
knew he
had them. "We have fought the Ihlini
forever.
It was Ginevra's choice that this war be
ended."
Keely's
gaze did not waver. Her smile was bit-
tersweet.
"If it is possible for you to care so much
for
her, then perhaps I should take instruction in
the art
of forgiveness. I would like to forgive; she
is, by
marriage, my granddaughter. But such
things
do not come easy to a childless woman."
"Childless!"
Kellin looked at Scan and saw an-
guished
affirmation. "But—you also had a son—"
The
upstanding veins of Keely's hand knotted.
"Sean
and Riordan went to Atvia to visit Corin
and
Glyn. This time, I did not go." A spasm of
grief
wracked her face- "This once, I did not go—"
"Keely."
Sean put a big hand upon her shoul-
der.
" 'Twas a storm in the Dragon's Tail- I was
injured
... in saving me, my son risked himself."
His
eyes glazed abruptly though the voice re-
A
TAPESTRY OF LSO!VS 525
mained
steady. "In Erinn, men rule. There is no
one
else left of my line."
Kellin
drew in a breath. "Will Erinn have me?"
Aileen
laughed softly. Grief had deeply marked
her,
but she was still profoundly Erinnish in color-
ing and
speech. "With your eyes, my lad? They'll
be
needing no kivama .. . there's no mistaking
your
blood! They'll be having themselves an Erin-
nish
lord even if he is Mujhar of Homana."
"As
for me," Corin said, "I have always known
I would
go elsewhere for my heir." His hand en-
folded
Glyn's. "A barren queen is worthless, some
men
might declare—but I know better. I would
trade
her for nothing, and no one." He exchanged
a smile
with the woman who could not speak, and
looked
back at Kellin. "It seemed natural to me
that
Brennan be my heir should I predecease him,
despite
the arguments of our youth. He was withal
a
supremely compassionate and competent man,
a man
who understood responsibility; he was far
better
fit to rule than I." For a moment his voice
faltered,
"That now is moot, but there is another
man to
whom I might entrust my realm."
Kellin
did not immediately answer. He was in-
tensely
aware that all of them looked at him ex-
pectantly,
awaiting his response. He knew what
it
would be, but he wondered if they did; if they
understood
at all what was about to happen in the
ordering
of their world.
/; has
nothing to do with me. But they do not see
it;
they see only me, and think of immediacies in-
stead
of the future. They have not yet reconciled
what it
is I have done by siring a son with Ginevra.
I am
Kellin to them, no more—except perhaps to my
jehan,
who understands very well.
He
smiled at Aidan and saw the answer in yel-
low
eyes; indeed, his father knew. The shar tahl
526
Jennifer Roberson
knew
many things. He was, after all, the mouth-
piece
of the gods.
One day
they will know. They will come to under-
stand.
It has nothng to do with me.
Kellin
glanced at Sima. Then he looked back at
the
others and gave them their answer. "/ will
have
none of your realms." Their startlement was
palpable
in the minute stirring of their bodies, the
intensity
in their eyes. "Should you predecease
me, you
may be certain I shall respect and cherish
your
lands, doing what I must to keep the people
content—but
I will name none of them mine. I
will
serve only as regent until such a time as my
son
comes of age." He looked at his father; Aidan's
smile
was content. "The Lion may swallow the
lands,
but it is the Firstborn who shall rule them
in the
name of ancient gods."
Epilogue
The
Lion's claws curled down beneath Kellin's
hands.
His fingers followed the line, tracing gilt-
etched
wood. He sought the Lion's strength to
carry
him through the ceremony that would, in its
celebration,
herald a new age.
His
arms were heavy with /ir-gold; his brow
ablaze
with more. The weight at his left ear, after
its
emptiness, was infinitely reassuring. He was,
at
last, Cheysuli in all things; a /i'r-blessed warrior
who
also knew his balance.
Kellin
drew in a deep breath, held it a long mo-
ment,
then released it slowly. He was aware of
approval
emanating from" beside his right leg,
snugged
between Mujhar and Queen to offer them
both
support: Sima sat in silence with tail tucked
over
paws- Great golden eyes were fixed on those
gathering
to witness the investiture of a new
Prince
of Homana.
So many
people. His kinfolk, of course, grouped
near
the firepit: Aileen first, wearing the fir-torque
Brennan
had given her decades before. Their son,
Aidan,
with a raven upon his shoulder and his
mother's
hand in his. Hart with Rael, and lisa;
Corin
and K-iri with mute Glyn; Keely flanked by
Scan.
And lir, so many lir, in rafters and windows
and
comers.
Others
also: the Homanan Council, complete in
all
regards, and the castle staff; Gavan, clan-leader
527
528
Jennifer Roberaoa
of
Clankeep, with Burr and other shar tahls; plus
the
multitudes of warriors, and women with large-
eyed
children, from all the keeps of Homana. Ih-
lini
also, from Solinde, who did not honor Asar-
Suti.
No one was turned away. Those who could
not fit
into the Great Hall gathered in corridors,
in
other chambers, in the baileys; even, he had
been
told, in the castle kitchens.
The
firepit blazed. The sun beyond stained
glass
slanted into the crowded hall, glinting off
?ir-gold
and other ornamentation, tinting into a
likeness
the fair Homanan faces and dark Chey-
suli
ones.
Kellin
noted it. He noted everything, but noth-
ing
stood out so much as the woman at his side.
She
stood quietly at his right, holding linen-
swathed
Cynric, She wore a velvet robe of deep
bloodied
wine that was, in its folds, in its richness,
very
nearly black. At her ears she wore rubies and
jet;
her slender neck was weighted with the gold
of his
/ir-torque. Unbound silver hair fell in sheets
to her
knees. The white around her face framed
an
exquisite, alien beauty even more remarkable
for her
pride, for the blazing of her spirit, for the
determination
housed in icy Ihlini eyes.
This
was her son. If it be her task alone, they
would
none of them forget it.
Kellin
smiled. They will remember her from this
day. No
matter what else may happen, they will
never
forget Ginevra.
He
looked out again at the multitude, then rose
from
the throne. He extended his right hand. Gine-
vra put
into it her left, as her right arm cradled
Cynric.
Two steps only, and they stood at the edge
of the
marble dais steps.
Aidan
moved out from the throng. His voice was
pitched
quietly, but no one in the hall could not
hear
what he said. "He is the sword." A shower of
A
TAPESTRY OF Lims S29
sparks
rose up from the firepit- "He is the sword
and the
bow and the knife. He is darkness and
light.
He is good and evil. He is the child and
the
elder; the girl and the boy; the wolf and the
lamb."
No one
spoke. No child protested, no lir ruffled
wing.
Aidan's
eyes were black. "/ am no one; I am
everyone.
I am the child of the prophecy; child of
darkness
and light; of like breeding with like until
the
blood is one again."
Stained
glass shattered. Empty casements dis-
played
a sudden darkness: the moon slid across
the sun
and did not depart. Inside, the hall was
black;
outside, the world was.
People
cried out in fear; Homanans, Kellin
knew.
Cheysuli feared no gods.
Aidan's
voice whispered: "The sword—and the
bow—and
the knife."
Flames
roared up in the firepit. The iron lid that
covered
the stairway to the Womb was flung back
on its
hinges, crashing into piled wood. In the
flurry
of ash and flame came a greater, more com-
plex
motion: the rushing torrent of dozens of lir
issuing
from the hole. In the flames they were
creamy
marble, with blind creamy eyes, but as
they
burst forth into the light, into the darkness
of
eclipse, marble shapechanged itself into the
clothing
of living lir.
Ginevra's
hand gripped Kellin's. He felt her
trembling;
sensed the wonder in her heart, and his
own,
that their son could be the inheritor of so
much
power.
"/
am Cynric," Aidan said, "and I am Firstborn
of
those who have returned."
Lir
upon lir, freed of imprisonment, joined brother
and
sister lir in hammer-beamed rafters, in rune-
530
Jennifer Roberson
rimmed
sills, at the edge of the firepit. Others
gathered
near the dais.
Firepit
flames died. The hall was left in darkness.
"Cynric,"
Aidan said, "who will bring light to the
darkness
so all men may see."
The
darkness was complete. Silence was loud.
Then
Kellin understood. He looked at Ginevra,
marking
the sheen of silver hair in the dimness of
the
hall. "Unwrap him."
Her
mouth parted as comprehension filled her
eyes.
Ginevra deftly freed the week-old infant from
embroidered
linen wrappings. With an avid ten-
derness
she handed him to Kellin, who raised him
up,
naked, to the multitudes.
Tiny arms
waved. In the darkness fire bloomed.
A pale,
luminous gold born of infant-etched runes,
that
encompassed the darkness and defeated it. Its
heart
was livid white.
Upturned
faces were illuminated. Kellin heard
murmurings,
saw groping hands reach out to one
another.
Homanans and Cheysuli were bound to-
gether
by awe-
He
looked at his kinfolk standing near the dais:
Aileen,
crying; Hart and lisa; Corin and Glyn;
Keely
and Sean, all clasping hands. Their expres-
sions
were rapt.
Aidan
raised his hands to encompass everyone.
"From
among them shall come a hr worthy of the
Firstborn.
Worthy of the child who had united, in
peace,
four warring realms and two magical races."
His
voice soared above them. "Cynric, child of
prophecy;
the Firstborn come again!"
There
was a shifting among the crowd as war-
riors
looked at Ur, and an abrupt apprehension
that
was palpable. Kellin himself felt it.
He
looked sharply at Sima. What ts this? Will we
lose
the lir after all?
Sima's
eyes were fixed on him in an unwavering
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 531
intentness.
Pupils were nonexistent. You have
wrought
well. Decade after decade, until years be-
came
centuries, the Cheysuli have labored well. It is
time
now for two races to become one; for the power
to be
fixed as it was once before. From you and Lo-
chiel's
daughter will come others, and they in their
turn
shall sire their own, until the Firstborn as a
race is
viable again.
He felt
a clutch of trepidation. What of us? What
becomes
of the Cheysuli and the Ihlini? Do we die
out?
Are we replaced? He cast a harried glance at
the
gathered lir. Desperately he asked. Have I de-
stroyed
my own race to elevate yours?
The tip
of her tail twitched.
Kellin
began to tremble. Sima—am I to lose you
after
all? To my son? He could not bear it. He could
not
bear the idea. Gods—do not do this! Would you
have me
be a monster to my people?
Behold,
Sima said.
"Behold!"
Aidan cried.
Kellin
heard it. At first he was not certain. Then
he
heard Ginevra's gasp and swung awkwardly,
clasping
the infant against his shoulder. He could
not
help himself; he stepped off the dais even as
Sima
preceded him; even as Ginevra fled.
But he
knew. He knew. And his doubts spilled
away.
He looked
at Sima. She was fully grown and
magnificent.
You knew all along.
Golden
eyes blinked. / know many things. I am,
after
all, lir.
"Look,"
Ginevra whispered. "Look what we
have
done!"
Kellin
looked again. Words filled his mind, his
mouth;
too many words. He could not say them
all;
could not think them all.
In the
end, he said the only ones he could man-
532
Jennifer Roberson
age.
"Leijhana tu'sai—" he whispered, "for a lir
such as
this.
With
meticulous precision, the throne unbent it-
self.
Wood split and peeled away; gilt cracked and
was
sloughed as dust. The shoulders broke through
first,
heaving free of imprisonment, and then the
head,
twisting, as it freed itself from an ancient,
rigid
roar. The gaping jaws closed. The crouching
beast
dropped to all fours and shook its heavy
mane,
spraying chips of wood and gilt.
In the
hall, people cried out: Homanan, Cheyuli,
Ihlini.
Some fell to their knees. Others mouthed
petitions
to various gods.
Wood
cracked and popped. From the tattered
prison
emerged a male lion full-fleshed and in his
prime.
Golden eyes gleamed, stripped now of age-
soiled
gilt to display the soul inside. A flame
burned
there, kindling into a bonfire as he gazed
upon
the hall.
The
lion shook himself. Wood chips flew into the
hall;
those that landed in the firepit popped once
and
hissed into smoke.
The
grime of antiquity, the sheen of a thousand
hands,
was sloughed off with a single shrug of
massive,
mane-clad shoulders. Littering the dais
was the
wooden pelt newly shed; what stood be-
fore
them now was the Lion of Homana as he once
was,
before a power wholly perverted had shape-
changed
him to wood.
The
massive jaws opened, displaying fearsome
teeth.
His roar filled the hall. Fragments of glass
still
clinging to their casements shattered into col-
ored
spray.
The
roar died. The lion scented, tasting the air,
then
took note of the tiny infant- Golden eyes
sharpened.
He padded forth to stand at the edge
of the
steps, gazing down upon the child who was
unafraid
of his roar. The rumble deep in his chest
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS 533
was one
of abiding contentment, of a lir newly
bonded.
Ja'hai-na,
Kellin thought. Imprisoned or no, this
moment
alone, here within the hall, has always been
his
tahlmorra.
He
looked down at the infant he cradled in
his
arms- The eyes were not open. The fists were
impotent.
But Kellin knew his son would never
be
measured by such things; he was Cynric, and
Firstborn;
he would measure himself against a
personal
criteria more demanding than any other.
The
lion roared again- The moon moved off the
sun.
Sunlight filled the Great Hall, where a week-
old,
naked infant shaped tiny glowing runes.
Ginevra
cried in silence, Kellin clasped and
kissed
her hand, raising it in tribute; he would have
everyone
know he honored his queen. "Shansu," he
whispered.
"The war is ended,"
As the
Lion lay down behind them, Kellin
turned
to the gathering and raised his son once
more.
"His name is Cynric. In the name of Chey-
suli
gods, who conceived and bore us all, I ask you
to
accept him as my heir, the Prince of Homana—
and the
Firstborn come again!"
He was
met at first by silence. Then a murmur-
ing, a
rustling of clothing, a clattering of jewelry;
and at
last the acclamation, wholly unrestrained,
echoed
in the rafters. The tongues conjoining were
two:
Homanan and Cheysuli. But the answer was
encompassed
in single word said twice.
"Ja'hai-na!"
"Accepted!"
Aidan
came first, followed by Aileen. And Hart,
Corin,
Keely. Sean, Glyn, and lisa. Each of them
approached
the infant Prince of Homana to offer
the
kiss of kinfolk; only they could.
And
then the others came: one by one by one—
Cheysuli,
Ihlini, Homanan—to pay homage to
534
Jennifer Roberson
the
heir, to the son, to the Firstborn, while on the
dais
behind the child, where Deirdre's tapestry
hung,
the Lion of Homana guarded his newborn
lir.
Author's
Note
The
"Chronicles of the CheysuH" was not originally
intended
as a series, but a single book only, titled
The
Shapechangers. It was my first foray into writ-
ten
fantasy, although I'd been reading it for many
years;
I'd written other (unpublished) novels, but
no
fantasy, because I was afraid. I loved the genre
too
much, and feared I couldn't do it justice.
But my
favorite authors—Marion Zimmer Brad-
ley,
C.J. Cherryh, Katherine Kurtz, Patricia McKil-
lip.
Anne McCaffrey, etc.—simply didn't write fast
enough
to suit my reading addiction; I decided the
only
way to survive was to manufacture a "fix"
by
writing my own novel-
And so
I concocted a plot about a race of shape-
changers
and their animal familiars, and a girl
bom of
a mundane culture being absorbed into a
magical
one.
But
plots always require thickening ... I added
royalty,
a prophecy, created the Ihlini. And then
one
day, immediately following a cultural anthro-
pology
class in which we'd spent fifty minutes
drawing
triangles and circles as a generational ex-
ercise,
I decided to apply my newfound knowledge
to my
stand-alone fantasy novel.
A
trilogy was born.
More
triangles and circles got added to the
chart.
The trilogy became a seven-book series- And
when I
realized seven didn't quite cover every-
535
536
Jennifer Robersoa
thing,
I added another and brought it to eight,
whereupon
I promised myself to end it. Finis.
Twelve
years later, it's ended. The prophecy is
complete.
No
author likes to turn her back on a world and
its
people after spending so much time creating
them;
Homana's root, after all, is home. But she
does
it, at least for a while, because to linger
longer
is to risk creative stagnation.
The
"Chronicles of the Cheysuli" have covered
approximately
100 years in the history of Homana
and her
races, blessed and unblessed alike. It's my
belief
Cynric, child of prophecy—the final result
of
centuries of genetic manipulation—had his own
share
of adventures. It's also my conceit to wonder
about
the five undocumented years Finn and Caril-
lon
spent in exile; the boyhoods of Duncan and
Finn;
the adventures facing Keely, Hart, and Corin
after
leaving Homana; the true account of the love
between
Hale and Lindir and the events that
touched
off the qumahlin (although a "prequel"
novelette,
"Of Honor and the Lion," appeared in
DAW'S
1988 anthology, Spell Singers.)
In a
history so vast, there are stories left to be
told.
Maybe someday I'll tell them.
—J.R.
Chandler,
Arizona
1992
APPENDIX
I
CHEYSU1I/OID
TONGUE
GLOSSARY
(with
pronunciation guide)
a'saii
(uh-SIGH)—Cheysuli zealots dedicated to
pure
line of descent.
bu'lasa
(boo-LAH-suh)—grandson
bu'sala
(boo-SAH-luh)—foster-son
cheysu
(chay-SOO)—man/woman; neuter; used
within
phrases.
cheysul
(chay-SOOL)—husband
cheysula
(chay-SOO-luh)—wife
cheysuli
(chay-SOO-lee)—(literal translation): chil-
dren of
the gods-
Cheysuli
i'halla shansu (chay-SOO-lee i-HALLA
shan-SOO)—(lit.):
May there be Cheysuli peace
upon
you.
godftre
(god-fire)—common manifestation of Ihlini
power;
cold, lurid flame; purple tones.
harana
(huh-RAH-na)—niece
harani
(huh-RAH-nee)—nephew
homana
(ho-MAH-na)—(literal translation): of all
blood.
i'halla
(ih-HALL-uh)—upon you: used within phrases.
i'toshaa-ni
(ih-tosha-NEE)—Cheysuli cleansing
ceremony;
atonement ritual.
ja'hai
([French ;'] zshuh-HIGH)—accept
ja
'hai-na (zshuh-HIGH-nuh)—accepted
537
538
Jennifer Robersoa
jehan
(zsheh-HAHN)—father
jehana
(zsheh-HAH-na)—mother
kureshtin
(koo-RESH-tin)—epithet; name-calling
leijharm
tu'sai (lay-HAHN-uh too-SIGH)—(to.): thank
you
very much.
lir
(leer)—magical animal(s) linked to individual
Cheysuli;
title used indiscriminately between
lir and
warriors-
meijha
(MEE-hah)—Cheysuli; light woman; (lit.):
mistress.
meijhana
(mee-HAH-na)—slang: pretty one
Mujhar
(moo-HAR)—king
qu'mahlin
(koo-MAH-lin)—purge; extermination
Resh'ta-ni
(resh-tah-NEE)—(lit.): As you would have it.
rujho
(ROO-ho)—slang: brother (diminutive)
rujhoUa
(roo-HALL-uh)—sister (formal)
rujholli
(roo-HALL-ee)—brother (formal)
ru'maii
(roo-MY-ee)—(lit.): in the name of
Ru'shalla-tu
(roo-SHAWL-uh T00)-~(lit.) May it be
so,
Seker
(Sek-AIR)—formal title: god of the netherworld.
shansu
(shan-SOO)—peace
shar
tahl (shar TAHL)—priest-historian; keeper of
the
prophecy.
shu'maii
(shoo-MY-ee)—sponsor
su'fala
(soo-FALL-uh)—aunt
su'fali
(soo-FALL-ee)—uncle
sul'harai
(sool-hah-RYE)—moment of greatest sat-
isfaction
in union of man and woman; de-
scribes
shapechange,
tahlmorra
(tall-MORE-uh)—fate; destiny; kismet.
Tahlmorra
lujhala mei wiccan, cheysu (tall-MORE-
uh
loo-HALLA may WICK-un, chay-SOO)-—
(lit.):
The fate of a man rests always within the
hands
of the gods.
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS
539
tetsu
(tet-SOO)—poisonous root given to allay
great
pain; addictive, eventually fatal.
tu'halla
dei (too-HALLA-day-EE)—(lit.): Lord to
liege
man.
usca
(OOlS-kuh)—powerful liquor from the Steppes.
y'jahai
(EE-zshuh-HIGH)—(^.): I accept.